Qass. Book .K ^1 OUTLINES OF HISTORY EMBRACING A CONCISE HISTORY OF THE WORLD, THE EARLIEST PERIOD THE PACIFICATION OF EUROPE IN 1816. SECOND AMERICAN EDITION, WITH ADDITIONS AND A SET OF QUESTIONS FOR EXAMINATION OF STUDENTS, BY JoIn . P510ST, 1. M. CAREY & LEA— CHESTNUT STREET. BOSTON : CARTER, HENDEE AND BABCOCK. I83L Entered according to the Act of Congress, in the year 1831, by Carey & Lea, in the Clerk's office of the District Court of the Eastern District of Pennsylvania. yr^r^a NOTICE TO INSTRUCTERS, BY THE AMERICAN EDITOR. An attentive examination of Dr. Lardner's " Outlines of History," on the first appearance of the work, satisfied me that it was well suited to be a text-book of general history in our schools and acade- mies. The author's arrangement is such as to present a clear and connected view of the subject ; the accurate chronology serves not only to fix important dates, but to guard the student from errors which might arise in carrying forward the whole history in connexion ; and the selection of interesting and striking facts, together with the mas- terly style of the narrative, may redeem the study o£ general history from that dry and repulsive character which has but too often been a just subject of complaint. With this view of the merits of the work, I determined to present it to my own classes, in order to show them how the particular periods of which they had been studying in the classical works of Robertson^ Scott, and others, stood related to the whole history of the world ; and to guide them in the selection of periods and works of history for their future study. To insure what seemed to me the largest possible amount of benefit to the pupil, from the study of the " Outlines," I have prepared ques- tions not only for examination on the text of the whole work, but also separate ones to be answered from maps. A moment's reflection will satisfy any intelligent person, that a constant reference to maps is ne- cessary to a correct understanding of history. It is more particularly important in a work like the present, where the transitions from one country to another are necessarily rapid and frequent. The questions in this edition, referring to modern maps, may generally be answered from a school atlas, or from the large maps of Finley or Tanner, which are usually hung up in school-rooms. Those relating to ancient history will require an ancient atlas. Dr. Butler's, which I am happy to learn is shortly to be republished in this city, is the most conve- nient, as it is of the cabinet size, and is furnished with an index, by referring to which, any place named in the atlas may be found in a few moments. In that part of the work which relates to modern his- iv NOTICE BY THE AMERICAN EDITOR. tory, obscure places, not to be found in any common maps, are some- times mentioned in connexion with marches, battles, &c. To ascer- tain the situation of these places, the pupil can have recourse to a gazetteer; but instances of this kind are of such rare occurrence, that a single gazetteer will amply suffice for the use of a whole school. In preparing the questions, I have endeavored not to lose sight of the principle of association by which events, dates, and places are connected and retained in the mind. Upon this circumstance, I found the hope, that young persons who may use the work will acquire, not only an acquaintance with the outlines of history, but a more lasting knowledge of chronology and of ancient and modem geography than is attainable by any other mode of study. The work itself, of which I have thus performed the humble office of an editor, professes to be no more than a sketch. But it is a sketch drawn with a masterly hand. The broad lines — the characteristic features, are all there. The lover of antiquity — the admirer of chiv- alry — the student of modern politics, will alike be struck with its force and truth ; and the tyro may contemplate its bold outline with- out fear of its corrupting his taste or misleading his judgment. J. F. Philadelphia, Feb. 22, 1831. ADVERTISEMENT. The object of the writer of the present volume has been to give a correct, and, as far as the limits would permit, a comprehensive epitome of the history of the world, which accuracy of narration and chronology would render valuable as a book of reference, and in which genera] views and reflections would remove the dryness inseparable from a mere enumeration of facts. As a portion of a Cyclopaedia, it is to the historical volumes what in an atlas the map of the world is to those which follow it, representing in connexion what they exhibit isolated, and displaying the relative pro- portions and importance of the several parts. Its chief utility will be, doubtless, as a book of reference for those who are already versed in history ; yet it is hoped that even the tyro who studies it with attention will find himself, at the termination of his labor, ignorant of few of the great characters and events which occur in the history of the world. Where brevity was a matter of such paramount im- portance, few will expect the graces of style ; and it will, perhaps, be conceded, that the repetition of the same figures and modes of speech was almost un- avoidable where like events so frequently occurred. For the plan of dividing the last two parts into periods, the author is indebted to the celebrated Mul- ler, and has adopted several of the divisions employed by him in his Universal History. That work (the in- accuracies of which are to be regretted), with those of Schlosser, Gibbon, Hallam, and others, has been used VI ADVERTISEMENT. in addition to contemporary and national histories, in the composition of these Outlines. The Oriental por- tion has been chiefly derived from the w^orks of Gib- bon, Malcolm, and Hammer. To prevent any misconception, the reader is requested to bear in mind that the present is a volume of political history, mankind being regarded in it only as divided into great societies ; and that, consequently, when true or false religions are spoken of, it is only in their poli- tical relations that they are viewed. In a work of this kind, theological discussion would have been altogether irrelevant and out of place. The history of any country or people may be read consecutively by consulting the index, where, under its name, will be found reference to the jiages where it is mentioned. The wars and political relations of two countries will be best known by reading the corre- sponding parts of the history of each. ADVERTISEMENT OF THE AMERICAN EDirOR. In preparing the present edition for publication, it was deemed advisable to make some alterations and additions in that portion of the work which is devoted to the history of the United States. This part of the Outlines has therefore been enlarged, so far as was con- sistent with the author's general plan. CONTENTS. PART I. ANCIENT HISTORY. CHAP. I. INTRODUCTION. Of the Earth and its Physical Changes, 11. Of Man, 13. Original Seat of Man — Original State of Man, 14. Ethiopians, 15. Chinese, 16. India, 18. CHAP. II. ANCIENT STATES OF CENTRAL AND WESTERN ASIA. Bactria, 19. Babylon and Assyria, 20. Egypt, 21. Phoenicia, 23. Phi- listines, 23. Arabia — Israelites, 24. Medes and Persians, 28. . CHAP. III. GREECE. Early State of Greece, 33. Dorian Migration, 35. Sparta, 36. Athens, 37. CHAP. IV. GREECE TO HER SUBVERSION BY THE MACEDONIANS. Persian War, 40. Peloponnesian War, 42. Lacedaemonian Dominion, 45. Theban Dominion, 46. Philip of Macedon, 47. CHAP. V. ALEXANDER AND HIS SUCCESSORS. Alexander, 49. Division of Alexander's Dominions, 50. Macedon — Greece, 52. Thrace — Bithynia, 53. Pergamus— Pontus, 54. Armenia — Syria, 55. Judea, 56. Parthia — Egypt, 57. Carthage, 58. CHAP. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WARS. Rome under Kings, 59. Tuscans — War with Porsenna, 63. Dictator — Secession — Tribunes, 64. Spurius Cassius, and the Agrarian Law, 66. The Decemvirs and the Twelve Tables, 67. Spurius Maelius, 68. Wars anterior to the Gallic Invasion, 69. Gauls — Capture of Rome, 70. Rebuilding of the City — Manlius, 71. Licinian Rogations, 72. Samnite War — Latin War, 74. War with Pyrrhus, 75. CHAP. VII. ROME TILL THE TIME OF THE GRACCHI. First Punic War, 76. Illyrian War — Gallic War, 77. Second Punic War, 78. Macedonian and Syrian Wars, 79. Conquest of Macedon — Third Punic War, 80. Acheean War, 81. Spanish Wars, 82, Vlll CONTENTSi CHAP. VIII. kOME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. The Gracchi, 83. Jugurthine War — Cimbric War, 85. State of Rome —Social or Marsian War, 86. Mithridatic and Civil Wars, 87. From the Death of Sulla to that of Mithridates, 90. Catiline's Conspiracy — The Gallic War of Caesar, 92. Civil War of Csesar and Pompeius, 95. Events till the Death of Caesar, 97. Civil War with Brutus and Cassius, 98. War between Octavianus and Antonius, 99. CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. Emperors of the Caesarian Family, 101. Emperors /^hosen by the Army, 103. Flavian Family, 104. Good Emperors, 105. From Commodus to Diocletian, 107. Change in the Form of Government, 112. Cor- ruption of Christianity, 114. CHAP. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. Successors of Constantine, 116. The Huns, 119. Wars with the Goths, 120. Genseric and Attila, 123. Fall of the Western Empire, 125. PART II. THE MIDDLE AGES. CHAP. I. -ESTABLISHMENT OF THE BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. Gotho-Germans, 127. East-Goths in Italy, 128. Lombards in Italy — Burgundians,"130. Allemanni, 131. Franks, 132. Anglo-Saxons, 133. West-Goths in Spain, 134. Byzantine Empire, 135. Persia, 138. CHAP. 11. THE TIMES OF AtOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFSv Mohammed, 140. First Khalifs, 144. Conquest of Syria, 145. Con- quest of Persia — Conquest of Egypt, 147. Invasion of Africa, 148. Ommiyades — Conquest of Africa — Conquest of Spain, 149. Inva- sion of France by the Arabs, 150. France — Lombards, 151. Con- stantinople, 152. Germany — England, 153. CHAP. III. THE TIMES OF CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROON-ER-RASHEED. Italy, 153. Empire of Charlemagne, 155. Feudal System, 156. Eng- land—Constantinople, 158. Abbasside Khalifs, 159. CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES OF THE EAST AND WEST. Empireof Charlemagne, 162. Hungarians, 163. Northmen, 164. France — Germany— House of Saxony, 166. Italy, 168. England, 169. CONTENTS. IX itussia, 170. Constantinople, 171. Decline of the Arabian Empire — Africa, 172. Decline of the Arabian Empire — Asia, 173. Causes of the Decline of the Power of the KhaUfs, 175. Gasnevides, 176. Spain, 177. CHAP. V, INCREASE OF THE PAPAL POWER. Italy — Normans, 178. Italy — Popes, 181. Italy — Lombard Cities, 184. Germany — House of Franconia — France, 185. England, 186. Spain — Constantinople — Seljookians, 188. First Crusade, 191. CHAP. VI. THE PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. Italy — Popes, 193. Italy — Lombard Cities, 196. Italy — Naples and Sicily —^ Germany — • Swabian Line, 197. France, 200. England — Plantagertels, 201. Ireland — Spain, 204. Portugal — Almohades, 205. Persia — Saladin, 206. Mamelukes — Constantinople, 207. Crusades, 208. Mongols — Chingis Khan, 211. End of the Khalifat ht Bagdad, 212. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OP THE PAPAL POWER, AND FORMATION OF GREAT MONARCHIES. Italy — Popes, 213. Italy — Republics, 217. Italy — Naples and Sicily, 220. Germany, 222. Switzerland — France, 224. England — Plan- tagenets, 230. Wars between France and England, 235. Scotland, 239. Scandinavia, 242. Poland, 243. Hungary — Ottomans, 244. Tatars— Timoor, 247. Spain, 249; Portugal, 250. Discovery of America, 251. PART m. MODERN HISTORY. CHAP. I. VIEW OF THE STATE OF EUROPE. England, 255. France — Germany — Russia, Poland, Scandinavia — Switzerland and Savoy, 256. Italy, 257. League of Cambray — Spain and Portugal, 258. Turkey, 259. Persia, 260. CHAP. II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. Accession of Charles V., 261. Reformation, 262. Wars of Charles V. and Francis I., 263. Affairs of Germany, 266. Renewed War with France, 267. Affairs of Germany, 268. England, 270. Spain and Portugal — Italy, 271. Denmark and Sweden — Turkey, 273. CHAP. III. TIMES OF PHILIP IL State of Europe at Philip's Accession, 274. France, 275. Netherlands, 280. England, 284. Portugal, 286. Germany — Poland, 287. Italy, 288. Turkey, 289 X CONTENTS. CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. Germany, 290. France, 295. Spain, 297. Portugal — Italy — England —The Civil War, 298. Holland, 300. Russia— Turkey and Persia, 301. CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XI Y. France to the Peace of the Pyrenees, 302. England to the Restoration — Wars till the Peace of Nimeguen, 303. England to the Revolution, 307. Wars to the Peace of Ryswick, 308. England — Spanish Suc- cession, 310. North of Europe — Peter the Great — Charles XII., 315. England, 316. CHAP. VI. PERIOD OF COMPARATIVE REPOSE. England — Quadruple Alliance, 317. Russia — Turkish Wars, 319. Persia— Nadir Shah, 320. CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC 11. Silesian Wars, 321. England, 325. Russia — Seven Years' War, 326. Suppression of the Jesuits, 329. First Partition of Poland, 330. Turk- ish War — American Revolutionary War, 331 . India — Persia, 338. CHAP. VIII. TIMES OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. State of Europe, 338. French Revolution, 341. Europe to the Peace of Campo Formio, 343. Affairs to the Assumption of the chief Power by Bonaparte, 345. Affairs till the Peace of Amiens, 346. Affairs of Europe to the Treaty of Tilsit, 347. Affairs to the Treaty of Vienna, 348. Progress of the Peninsular War, 350. Invasion of Russia, and FaU of Napoleon, 351. Tabular View of Royal Dynasties, 359. Eminent Persons, 366. Chronological View of Important Events, 369. Index, 373. OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. ANCIENT HISTORY. CHAP. I. INTRODUCTION. Of the Earth and its Physical Changes. The history of man is distinct from, but connected with, that of the earth, his appointed abode. The mightiest revo- lutions of the latter have taken place, for the most part, in a time anterior to the first appearance of man on its surface ; and laws and principles of nature were at that period in operation which have since either totally ceased, or have changed their character. Yet in a history of the origin and progress of the human race, that of the earth cannot be passed flver in perfect silence. Its changes and periods form a ne- cessary part of the great chain of causes and effects estab- lished and conducted by the mighty Being whose power gave existence to all. Modesty and diffidence should be the guides of those who seek to penetrate into the ages antecedent to man and his works. The only sources from which we can expect to derive the oistory of the earth are, the Mosaic records, and the exami- nation, in different countries, of its present surface, and the various strata that compose it. The Pentateuch, however, descends not into particulars : the object of the inspired law- giver was to impress on the minds of his people the great and important truth which was to form the distinguishing charac- teristic of their religion, — namely, the unity of the Deity ; that one sole and mighty Being had given existence to all that was, had shared his power with none, and was alone to be worshipped. The legislator, accordingly, did not depart too far from established opinions, nor seek to introduce truths incomprehensible to those whom he addressed ; yet the ac- count he gives of the gradual progress of creation sufficiently corresponds with that which we now read out of the great 12 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I book of nature. But all attempts to extract a history of thf earth and its revolutions from the Bible have failed, and th( theories only remain as monuments of the genius of thei: constructors. Man, not his abode, is the subject of the sacrec Scriptures ; and we may admire but not question the fact o: the people of Israel, though divinely taught in things relating to mind, being left in things relating to matter in equal igno ranee with less favored nations. The other source of knowledge respecting the history o' the earth has, durmg the last 100 years, been followed witl) continued and vigorous perseverance by men of intellectual powers of the highest order ; and from their discoveries, e& pecially those of the distinguished Cuvier, we learn the fol lowing facts respecting the formation and the revolutions oi the earth. To the origin of the solid nucleus of the earth no date ca:, be assigned. Water invested it; and the acotyledonouh plants, and the testaceous tribes of fish, were the commence ment of vegetable and animal life. A violent revolution of nature annihilated these incipient creations, and their re mains combined with other substances to increase the ston of the earth. In the various successive periods appeared th' mollusca, the fishes, the amphibious animals, all of giganti size ; and all after living their appointed period were de stroyed, and their remains employed as the materials of add; tional surface for the advancing earth. The mammalia of th^ waters, sea-horses, sea-lions, whales, and their whole kindrec, formed the next step of the progression. The violent mc tions and agitations of the waves destroyed these also, th&' they might add their huge carcasses to the inanimate surfac' of the earth, which now attained that state in which it ser. up vegetation adapted for the support of animals of the land. Nature now put forth her strength in the production of tlib monstrous megatheria, mastodons and mammoths, whose re- mains excite our wonder and our curiosity. Thjs race, tof>-, after having possessed the earth for an indefinite period, sav; its appointed end come : the waters rose once more, and in volved them, like their predecessors, in the clay, sand, and gravel, which they swept along ; but no rocky stratum was,' as with the former generations, the result: and the sane- stone, gypsum, clay, and other substances, in which the re mains of this creation are found, occur only in spaces of lim ited extent. The violent revolutions of the earth were nov at an end ; the races of animals, such as at present occupy its surface, appeared ; and, last of all, Man, the perfection o^ nature's works, entered on the scene of his fiiture destinies- CHAP. I. INTRODUCTION. 13 But the violent powers of nature had not yet ceased to oper- ate ; and tradition retains the recollection of at least one great destruction of animal life by water. Of Man. We enter not here into the question of the different races of mankind, and the origin of the surprising differences we find among the members of the same species. We shall not inquire whether the lowest class in point of intellect and form, the Negro, approaching in structure to the ape, be the original type of man, and have thence, by culture and cli- mate, refined to the beauty and mental powers of the Euro- pean ; or whether the reverse be the truth, and climate and want of culture have brought man down from his lofty state, and approximated him to the brute. We confine ourselves to the fact, that there are different races of our species occu- pying the various portions of the earth, and distinguished from each other in corporeal structure and in mental develop- ment. These numerous varieties are, by the ablest investi- gators, reduced to three principal stems, viz. the Caucasian or Europeo-Arabic, the Mongol, and the Negro or ^Ethiopic. The first contains the people of Asia, north and south of the great mountain range of Caucasus and its continuation to the Ganges, of Europe, and of Northern Africa ; the second, the people of Eastern Asia and of America ; the third, the tribes with woolly hair and sable skin that people the African con- tinent. Yet many tribes can with difficulty be brought under any one of these divisions : the endless variety of Nature is as apparent in the human race as in the animal and vegetable kingdoms. Original Seat of Man. It is, perhaps, a useless inquiry to search afler the region in which man was first placed, the paradise of his first days of innocence and happiness. The only historic clew we pos- sess are the names of the four rivers, said in the Hebrew re- cords to have watered the land in which the progenitors of the human race dwelt. But as no four rivers can be found on the present surface of the earth agreeing in all points with those mentioned by Moses, our safest course is to con- fine ourselves to the inquiry after tJie region where those who escaped the last great inundation which has overwhelmed the earth, resumed their destined course of life and occupa- tion. The general opinion, founded on the literal interpretation of Scripture, has long been, that at the time of the flood all B 14 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. mankind perished, save Noah and his family. Some, how- ever, contend, that the words of the inspired writer are not to be taken so strictly, and that as his information was des- tined for a particular portion of mankind, it may have been only intended to instruct them in the history of the race to Avhich they belonged, while that of other races may have been passed over in silence. Hence they would infer that we are not precluded by the Mosaic writings from supposing, that at the time of the great inundation other portions of mankind may have saved themselves in different manners and places. They therefore look to the higher regions of the earth, and find three elevated ranges in the neighborhood of the three distinct stems into which we find mankind divided. The lofty range extending from the Black Sea to the east of India has been at all times regarded as being, either itself or the lands south of it, the original seat of the Caucasian race. Still more east, beyond Tibet and the desert of Gobi, rises another range, regarded as the original seat of the Mongol race which dwells around it : and the Mountains of the Moon and their branches are thought to point out the primitive abodes of the Negro race. America, it is probable, was not, till long after, adapted for the abode of man. These, however, are all questions of curiosity rather than of historical importance. At the. dawn of all history we find the various races of mankind distinct, and no history informs us of the origin of the differences. We have therefore only to consider them in their separate states, or as intermingled with and affecting each other. Original State of Man. Another point which has given occasion to a good deal of ingenious conjecture, is the original state of mankind. Philor sophers, on surveying the human race in its different situa- tions, have traced out four distinct states, — those of the mere fruit and plant-eater, the hunter, the herdsman, and the cul- tivator, — and have generally inferred that man has pro- gressively passed through all these states, commencing at the lowest. Yet this is still but mere conjecture, unsupported by any historic evidence. No tribe has ever yet been found tq civilize itself; instruction and improvement always come to it from abroad ; and experience would rather lead to the in- ference, that the savage is a degeneration from the civilized life. In the very earliest history, that of the Bible, we find the pastoral and agricultural life coexisting almost from the commencement of the world; at all periods we find man possessed of the useful and necessary arts, the master of Chap. i. ' introduction. 15 flocks and herds, the employer of the spade, the plow, and the sickle. It is in vain we seek for commencement, — all is progress. In imagination, we may conceive a time, when the human race was in the lowest degree of culture ; but, on inquiry, we everywhere meet the arts, meet men collected into societies, meet property, legislation, and government. It may perhaps be collected from the testimony of the sacred Scriptures, and from the deductions of philosophy, that man has always existed in society, and that the first societies were families, the first form of government patriarchal : and the following may be stated as the most probable hypothesis ; namely, that man commenced his existence in the social state under the mild and gentle form of government denominated patriarchal ; that his first nourishment was the fruits of trees and plants, which ripened in abundance for the supply of his wants in some temperate and fertile region of the earth, possibly that at the south of Caucasus, or where now extends the paradisal vale of Cashmeer ; that gradually he became a keeper of flocks and herds, and a cultivator of corn ; that families spread and combined; and that from their union arose monarchies, the most ancient form of extended civil government. It is in this last state that we propose to consider mankind, and to trace the great and important events that have taken place among the various stems and branches of the human race; to show how, beneath the guiding energy of the Creator and Rul6r, the great machine of human society has proceeded on its way, at times advancing, at times apparently retrograding, in the path of perfection and happiness. And the final result of our view of the deeds and destinies of man will, we trust, be a firm conviction in the mmd of every reader that private and public felicity is the result alone of good education, wise laws, and just government, and that all power which is not based on equity is unstable and transient. It is to the Caucasian race that the history of the world must mainly confine itself, for with that race has originated almost all that ennobles and dignifies mankind: it is the chief depository of literature, and the great instructor of philosophical, political, and religious systems. We shall re- strict ourselves, therefore, chiefly to the history of that race, briefly premising views of the state and character of the ^Ethiopians, the Mongols, and the Indians. JEthiopians. We have already observed, that under this name are in- cluded all the inhabitants of Africa whose bodily conforma- 16 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PARTI. tion does not prove them to be of the Caucasian race. The indefiniteness of the term JEthiopian employed by the Greeks, and applied by them to all people of a dark complexion, and the similar indefiniteness of the Hebrew Cush, prevent our being able positively to say whether the obscure traditions of the Ethiopian power extending- along the Mediterranean to the straits of Gades, and of that people having, under their king Tearcho, made themselves so formidable to the inhabit- ants of the coasts of the JEgean, are to be understood of a purely Negro empire, or of, what is much more probable, a state like that of Egypt, where the lower orders of society were of Negro, the higher and dominant classes of Caucasian race. Within the historic period of both ancient and modern times, the ^Ahiopian race only appears as furnishing slaves for the service of the Caucasian, to whom it has been always as inferior in mental power as in bodily configuration. Though modern travel has discovered within the torrid wastes of Africa large communities ruled over by Negro princes, and a knowledge of many of the useful arts, yet civilization and policy have never reared their heads in the ungenial clime. As literature has never been theirs, whatever revolutions may have taken place among them are buried in oblivion, and they claim no station of eminence in the history of the world. The Chinese, The Mongols stand far higher in the scale of intellect and in importance than the Ethiopians. As we proceed, we shall find them striking terror into Europe by their arms and their numbers. One nation of this race, the Chinese, has long been an object of curiosity to the western world, from its ex- tent of empire and the singularity of its social institutions. The Chinese empire occupies an extent of surface equal to that of all Europe, containing within it every variety of soil and climate, and natural production ; thus rendering it in itself perfectly independent of all foreign aid. In its social institutions it has presented through all periods a model of the primitive form of government, the patriarchal, and an exemplification of the evil of continuing it beyond its just and necessary period. In China all is at a stand-still ; suc- ceeding ages add not to the knowledge of those that have gone before ; no one must presume to be wiser than his fathers : around the Son of Heaven, as they designate their emperor, assemble the learned of the land as his council; so in the provinces the learned in their several degrees around the governor; and laws and rules are passed from the highest down to the lowest, to be by them given to the people. Every> CHAP. I. INTRODUCTION. 17 even the most minute, circumstance of common life is regu- lated by law. It matters not, for example, what may be the wealth of an individual, he must wear the dress and build his house after the mode prescribed by ancient regulations. In China every thing bears the stamp of antiquity: immovable- ness seems to be characteristic of the nation ; every imple- ment retains its primitive rude form ; every invention has stopped at the first step. The gradual progress towards per- fection of the Caucasian race is unknown in China ; the plow is still drawn by men ; the written characters of their mono- syllabic language stand for ideas, not for simple sounds ; and the laborious task of learning to read occupies the time that might be employed in the acquisition of valuable knowledge. Literature has been at all periods cultivated by a nation where learning (such as it is) is the only road to honor and dignity, and books beginning with the five Kings of Con-fu- tsee, which equal the four Vedas of India in the honor in which they are held, have at all times been common in this empire. A marked feature in the Chinese character is the absence of imagination : all is the product of cold reason. The Kings speak not of a God, and present no system of re- ligion : every thing of that nature in China came from India. The uncertain history of China ascends to about 2500 years before the Christian era ; the certain history commences about eight centuries before Christ. According to Chi- nese tradition, the founders of the state, a hundred families in number, descended from the mountains of Kulcum, on the lake of Khukhunor, nOrth-west of China; and hence the middle provinces of Chensee, Leong, JEIonan, &c. were the first seats of their cultivation. These provinces are in the same climate as Greece and Italy. Twenty-two dynasties of princes are enumerated as having governed China to the present day, the actual emperor being the fifth monarch, of the twenty-second or Tai Tsin dynasty. Of these dynasties, one of the most remarkable is the Song, which ruled over the southern empire at the time China was divided into two, "and fell beneath the arms of the Yver or mingled nomadic tribes, led to conquest by the descendants of Chingis Khan. This line, which reigned from A. D. 960 to 1280, distinguish- ed itself by the encouragement of the arts and sciences ; it 'cultivated relations with Japan, fostered trade and commerce, and in all things went contrary to the established maxims of Chinese policy, and while it lasted the empire bloomed be- lieath its sway ; but the hordes of the desert levelled its glo- ries, and its fate has been ever since held up as an awful warning to those who venture to depart even a hair's breadth B2 18 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART I. from the ancient manners. At an earlier period, under the dynasty of Tsin (248—206 B. C), China first received reli- gion from India ; but the missionaries were not artful or pru- dent enough to adapt it to Chinese maxims of state, and they were unsuccessful in the contest between them and the learned. At a later period, when the Buddhism of India had become the Lamaism of Tibet, it entered China as the reli- gion of Foe, and by the worldly prudence of its bonzes or priests, succeeded in gaining a favorable reception and be- coming the religion of the state. Every thing that hopes for success in this country must fall in with the national charac- ter. China has often been overcome, and its reigning dynasty changed ; but the manners and institutions of China remain unaltered, as different 'from those of the Caucasian race as the features of the Chinese face are from those of the Euro- pean. India. From the Chinese, a nation of cold reason, almost no reli- gion, monosyllabic, unharmonious language, and literature fiill of events and valuable matter, we pass to their neighbors of India, whom every thing but color indicates to belong to the same family with the Europeans. Here we find glowing fancy, and in Brahmanism a luxuriant system of religion, a majestic and richly inflected language, and a literature full to exuberance of the highest poetry. But India has no his- tory or chronology of its own, and it is in the time of the Persian kings that it first appears in the history of the world. Yet the testimony of antiquity, its proximity to the original land of the Caucasian race, and the primitive character of its social institutions, prove it to be one of the most ancient nations of the earth. In India, religion and priestly influence have effected what law and tradition have produced in China — the absolute pros- tr&,tion of the intellect of the nation. The system of castes sets a bar to all ambition and to all energy. No development of mind can take place where every man's station in life is immutably marked out for him. The nation presents at the present day the same spectacle which excited the wonder of the Greeks who accompanied Alexander ; an immense, gentle, and peaceful population; abundance of wealth; all the useful, necessary, and ornamental arts of life ; a manifold, intricate system of religion, abounding in rites and ceremonies, many "?c. his court in the most exact manner. He was devoted to the fine arts, though his taste was none of the purest. As ap-e came on, he grew peevish and cruel ; but the effects of these ill qualities were mitigated by the mildness and gentleness of Antoninus, whom he had adopted on the death of his favorite Lucius Verus. 138. Antoninus, surnamed the Pious, from his afl^ection for his adoptive father, was one of those rare combinations of perfect virtue which the visions of philosophy, rather than real life, present as seated on a throne. His reign flowed on, for a space of twenty-three years, in dignified tranquillity : wars interrupted not the repose of the empire : neighboring na- tions submitted their differences to the arbitration of the virtuous Antoninus. He closed his beneficent career by leaving the guidance of the empire to an accomplished phi- losopher. 161. Marcus Aurelius Antoninus would willmgly have trodden the tranquil course of his predecessor ; but the restless ene- CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE, 107 mies of the empire summoned the philosophic monarch to the defence of the frontiers, and to give a proof that the study of philosophy does not disqualify for action. Nations of Ger- manic race united, as in the days of Marius, to pour in upon Italy ; but Aurelius showed them, that the legions of Rome still retained their discipline and valor. The Parthians broke into Syria : the emperor speedily drove them back within their own limits. Foreign war was not the only calamity that afflicted the empire in this reign ; famine and its constant attendant pestilence, ravaged various provinces. The Ger- mans, though beaten, still renewed their attempts, and the emperor died during his eighth winter campaign against the Marcomanni. Aurelius was, like Augustus, unhappy in hia family: his wife Faustina disgraced him by her licentiousness; and the disposition of his son Commodus afforded slender grounds for pleasing hope. From Commodus to Diocletian. The most vicious succeeded the most virtuous of mankind, a. d. Commodus, the son of Aurelius, was a profligate, foolish boy. ^^• His delight was in the indulgence of low sordid propensities ; he sought for glory in gladiatorial skill ; while he degraded the majesty of the empire, by setting the example of pur- chasing peace from the barbarians. His father had made the Marcomanni feel the edge of the Roman steel ; his degene- rate son bestowed upon them Roman gold. Oppressive taxa- tion once more galled the subjects; the blood of the virtuous was once more seen to flow ; the favor of his father availed not to save ; Salvius Julianus, the great lawyer, whom Au- relius had honored, died by the order of Commodus. The emperor had nothing to fear from the Praetorians, whom he indulged in all their excesses. These were his protectors against all others, and he might mock at all plots of the sen- ate or people ; but he carried his tyranny, whither it was rarely carried with impunity, into his own household, and a conspiracy delivered the Roman world of the wretch who oppressed it. Murder thus, after a long interval, again made its appear- ance in the palace of the Csesars, and now seemed to have made it its permanent abode. Helvius Pertinax, the prefect 192 of the city, a man of virtue, was placed on the throne by the conspirators, who would fain justify their deed in the eyes of the world, and their choice was confirmed by the senate. But the Praetorians had not forgotten their own power on a similar occasion ; and they lik^ not tlie virtue 108 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART L and regularity of the new monarch. Pertinax was, there- fore, speedily deprived of throne and life. Praetorian insolence now attained its height. Regardless of the dignity and honor of the empire, they set it up to auc- tion. The highest bidder was a senator, named Didius Ju- A. D. lianus, a nephew of that very Salvius who had suffered for 193. law and virtue in the reign of Commodus. The legions dis- dained to receive an emperor from the life-guards. Those of Britain proclaimed their general Clodius Albinus ; those of Asia, Pescennius Niger; the Pannonian legions, Septimius 194. Severus. This last was a man of bravery and conduct : by valor and stratagem he successively vanquished his rivals. He maintained the superiority of the Roman arms against tlie Parthians and Caledonians. His reign was vigorous and ad- vantageous to the state ; but he wanted either the courage or the power to fully repress the license and insubordination of the soldiery. 211. Severus left the empire to his two sons. Caracalla, the elder, a prince of violent and untamable passions, disdained to share empire with any. He murdered his brother and col- league, the more gentle Geta, and put to death all who ven- tured to disapprove of the deed. A restless ferocity distin- guished the character of Caracalla : he was ever at war, now on the banks of the Rhine, now on those of the Euphrates. His martial impetuosity daunted his enemies ; his reckless- cruelty terrified his subjects. But the army loved the prince, who set no value on any but a soldier. Alexander the Great was the model this profligate fratricide dared to set before him. No greater insult could be offered to the memory of the Macedonian. During a Parthian war, Caracalla gave offence to Macrinus, the commander of his body-guard, who murdered him. 218. Macrinus seized the empire, but had not power to hold it. He and his son Diadumenianus, an amiable youth of but eighteen years, were put to death by the army, who pro- claimed a supposed son of their beloved Caracalla. 218. This youth was named Elagabalus, and was priest of the Sun in the temple of Emesa, in Syria. Every vice stained the character of this licentious, effeminate youth, whose name is become proverbial for sensual indulgence : he possessed no redeeming quality, had no friend, and was put to death by his own guards, who, vicious as they were themselves, detested vice in him. 222. Alexander Severus, cousin to Elagabalus, but of a totally opposite character, succeeded that vicious prince. All es- timable qualities were united in the noble and accomplished CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. 109 Alexander. He delighted in the society of the learned and the wise ; the statues of the sages of all countries adorned his library ; and their works, destined for the improvement of mankind, formed his constant study. But the love of learning and virtue did not in him smother military skill and valor; he checked the martial hordes of Germany, and led the Ro- man eagles to victory against the Sassanides, who had dis- placed the Arsacides in the dominion over Persia,* and re- vived the claims of the house of Cyrus over Anterior Asia. Alexander, victorious in war, beloved by his subjects, deemed he might venture on introducing more regular discipline into the army. The attempt was fatal, and the amiable monarch lost his life in the mutiny that resulted. Maximin, a soldier, originally a Thracian shepherd, distin- a. d. guished by his prodigious size, strength, and appetite, a 235. stranger to all civic virtues and all civic rules, rude, brutal, cruel, and ferocious, seated himself on the throne of the noble and virtuous prince, in whose murder he had been a chief agent. At Rome the senate conferred the vacant dignity on Gordian, a noble, wealthy, and virtuous senator, and on his son, of the same name, a valiant and spirited youth. But scarcely were they recognized, when the son fell in an en- gagement, and the father slew himself Maximin was now rapidly marching towards Rome, full of rage and fury. De- spair gave courage to the senate; they nominated Balbinus and Pupienus, one to direct the internal, the other the exter- nal affairs. Maxhnin had advanced as far as Aquileia, when his horrible cruelties caused an insurrection against him, and he and his son, an amiable youth, were murdered. The army was not, however, willing to acquiesce in the claim of the senate to appoint an emperor. Civil war was on the point of breaking out, when the conflicting parties ag reed in . the person of the third Gordian, a boy of but thirteen years of age. Gordian ITI. was an amiable and virtuous youth. In affairs 238. of state he was chiefly guided^ by his father-in-law, Misitheus, who induced him to engage in war against the Persians. In the war Gordian displayed a courage worthy of any of his predecessors ; but he shared what was now become the usual fate of a Roman emperor. He was murdered by Philip, the captain of his guard. Philip, an Arabian by birth, originally a captain of free- 244. hooters, seized on the purple of his murdered sovereign. Two rivals arose and contended with him for the prize, but accom- plished nothing. A third competitor, Decius, the commander * See p. 57. K 110 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART I. of the army of the Danube, defeated and slew him near Verona. During the reign of Philip, Rome attained her thousandth year ; and the games to commemorate the dura- tion of the city of -Romulus, Brutus, and Caesar, were cele- brated by the native of a country scarcely known, even by name, to the kings and consuls ! ^. u. Decius, a prince of rigid virtue and primitive simplicity of 249. manners, sought to restore its ancient tone to the Roman character ; but the time for reformation was long gone by ; a new character was now completely and fixedly formed. The well-meant projects of the emperor failed, and himself fell in battle, in defence of his country against the invading Goths. 251. In the space of two years reigned and fell four emperors', 253. Gallus, Volusian, Hostilian, son of Decius, and MmlYioji, The Germans still pressed on Italy, the Persians on Syria. 253. Valerian succeeded. His rigor and virtue as a censor had been applauded ; as an emperor, he showed feebleness and in- capacity. He associated his son Galhenus in the empire with him. In the war against Shahpoor of Persia he was defeated and taken prisoner. The haughty Persian subjected the cap- tive emperor to every indignity. The Roman spirit was gone; he submitted with patience, and his luxurious col- league revelled heedless of his father's sufferings. 260. Gallienus, devoted to sensual indulgence, lived tranquilly in Italy. But in the various provuices, Britain, Gaul, Spain, Syria, Africa, &c., and even in Italy, numerous claimants of the imperial dignity arose. Some of these were men of merit, almost all persons of military skill and valor. Though the empire was thus torn and confused, its constant enemies, the Germans and Persians, were unable to seize any part. This is usually denominated The time of the thirty tyrants^ though (as far as we can collect from coins) they did not ex- ceed twenty-one, and are unjustly designated as tyrants. But some fancied analogy to Critias and his colleagues at Athens presented itself, and mankind love analogies and round num- bers. None of these rivals gave much uneasiness to Gallie- nus, who would have been well content with Italy alone, till Aureolus threatened to deprive him even of that. He then marched to battle against him at Milan ; but ere he took the city, he was murdered, naming, with his last breath, the most worthy to be his successor. £63. Claudius was the most worthy. He delivered Italy from the Goths, by a victory such as Rome had not seen since the days of Marius. But his reign was of short duration, and would have been more deeply lamented were it not for th© virtues and talents of his euecessor. CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. Ill Aurelian, a man bred in camps, brought to the throne the a. r valor, activity, and vigor that it required. He introduced or- ^^^' der into the state, and restored the empire to internal tran- quillity. He defeated the Germans, and even pursued them into their forests, vanquished all his rivals, and among them Zenobia, or Zeinab, the heroic queen of Palmyra, who, in chains of gold, adorned the triumph in which the emperor entered Rome. Aurelian never lost a battle : he was clement to the conquered, indulgent to the people and the army, but averse to the senate. He was murdered on his way against the Persians. The army was now either satisfied with the long exercise of its power in appointing emperors, or it saw the evils likely to arise to the empire in general from each army investing its leader with the purple. Accordingly, on the death of Aurelian, they restored its privileges to the senate, who, after an interreign of eight months, bestowed the purple on 275. Tacitus, a man of virtue and probity. Tacitus was far ad- vanced in years when he was placed on the throne, which he occupied for a few months with honor, and then died a natu- ral death. After the ideath of Tacitus, his brother Florianus, who lit- tle resembled him, aspired to the empire. Neither senate nor army approved of him, and the latter bestowed the pur- ple on their virtuous and able commander, Probus, who, to the more rigorous virtues of Aurelian, united a gentleness 276. and moderation, to which that able prince had been a stranger. The senate approved of the choice of the army. Probus de- feated the Germans on the Danube and the Rhine. He in- troduced into their country the culture of the vine, and em- ployed the legions in the labors of the field and the vineyard. This, united with the strict discipline he sought to revive, excited their indignation: they rose in munity, murdered, and then lamented their excellent emperor. Carus, the commander of the body-guard, was raised to the 282. empire, in which he associated with himself his two sons, Carinus and Numerian, the former of a dissolute, the latter of a more gentle and cultured disposition. Carus was es- teemed a good general, but his reign was short ; he was killed by lightning in his tent, or possibly murdered by those who spread that report. His son Numerian was shortly afterwards murdered by his father-in-law Aper, the praetorian prefect. , The traitor expiated his crime by death. Carinus was slain by a man whose conjugal honor he had insulted. 113 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PARTI. Change in the Form of Government. 884! After the death of Carus and his sons, th^ reigns of empire fell into the firm hands of Diocletian, by birth a Dalmatian, a wise and able prince. The enemies of the empire pressed now with redoubled force on the frontiers, and Diocletian saw that the vigilance and activity of one mind could not suffice to attend to the multifarious concerns of the state. The events of the last reigns had also taught him the danger of committing the command of the legions to officers who might so readily become competitors for the throne. He therefore resolved to share the imperial dignity with his friend and comrade in arms, Maximianus Herculius, to whom, as being of a rugged active character, he committed the West, while himself took charge of the East. Each bore the title of Augustus, and each appointed a successor under that ef Caesar. The Caesars were younger and more active men, and the more exposed parts of the empire were committed to them. Diocletian administered Asia; his Caesar, Galerius, rough and soldierly, governed Thrace and the countries on the Danube. Maximian retained Italy, Spain, Africa, and the islands; his Caesar, Constantius Chlorus, a worthy de- scendant of the late emperor Claudius, governed Gaul and Britain. Rome ceased to be an imperial residence : that of Maximian was mostly at Milan; Diocletian resided chiefly at Nicomedia. A farther innovation made by this emperor was the introduction of the oriental splencor of attire and adora- tion of the emperors. He and his colleague with great so- lemnity assumed, on the same day, the diadem and other insignia of eastern royalty. Perhaps nothing better could have "been devised for main- tainixjg the em.pire than this partition of power. The expe- rienced monarchs could give attention to internal affairs, while the younger and more active emperors elect, away from the corruption of capitals, might keep up the discipline and military virtues of the legions. Accordingly we find that the Goths were held in check, the Allemanni defeated, Brit- ain, where Carausius had in the late reign raised a rebellion, reduced to obedience, and the Persians forced to a peace ad- vantageous and honorable to the empire. But it was not to be expected that four princes could reign together in una- nimity, or that Caesars would patiently wait till death made way for them to the higher rank. It was not long, therefore, before contention and war broke out among them. While Diocletian ruled, he kept his colleagues in bounds, exerting over them the influence of a superior mind. But CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. 113 after a reign of twenty years, feeling- the infirmities of age approach, he resolved to abandon the cares of empire, and retire to pass the evening of his life in seclusion in his native province. He signified his intention to Maximian, who re- luctantly assented to a joint abdication. The Caesars were raised to the rank of Augusti: Constantius was assigned Severus for his Caesar ; Galerius conferred that dignity on his nephew Daza. Constantius did not long enjoy the dignity he adorned. Ga- a. d. lerius soon became odious to the Romans ; and Maximian 306. took advantage of this circumstance to make his son Maxen- tius master of Italy. Severus was forced to yield. In the mean time, Constantine, the son of Constantius, had com- pletely won the hearts of the British and Gallic legions, by his military and civil virtues, and he soon forced Galerius and Maxentius to acknowledge him as joint-emperor. The debauchery and cruelty of Maxentius were now grown intolerable to the Romans. The nobles fled from the city ; the labors of agriculture were neglected; his own father was forced to fly from him and take refuge with Constantine, who had married his daughter. But the restless and depraved old man could not abstain from machinations against his son- in-law and protector ; and Constantine, not to be himself the victim, compelled him to end his unquiet life by voluntary death, the mode of which was left to his own choice. Invited by the Roman nobles, Constantine marched against Maxen- 312. tins. A battle took place in the neighborhood of Rome : Max- entius fell, and the whole West obeyed Constantine. Galerius was now dead, and his nephew; Maximianus Daza, whom he had raised to the rank of a Caesar, had follow- • ed him. Constantine associated with himself Licinius, a man who by military merit had risen to the dignity of a Caesar. They named their sons, Crispus and Licinius, to be their Ceesars. The old emperor Diocletian died, as was said, by his own hand, about this time. Constantine now openly professed himself a Christian. He 311. put an end to the persecution which had raged against that sect for the last ten years with all the violence of the ex- piring storm. His conversion, perhaps, was sincere : piossibly 313. he saw that the Christians were become the most powerful body in the empire, and that the wisest policy was to give way to what could not be resisted without imminent danger. He issued two edicts ; one assigning them the temples of the ?ods, in places where they had not suitable churches; the Dther, giving them the preference in all appointments to civil md militarv offices; and thus, in less than three centuries^ K2 114 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. from its origin, Christianity became, in effect, the established religion of the empire. Constantino, however, deferred his baptism till a little before his death. Unanimity did not long subsist between the emperors. Wars broke out, and Licinius was eventually deprived of his A. D. dignity and life by his victorious colleague, who now reigned 324. alone. Seeing that the North-east, where the powerful nation of the Goths was settled, was the quarter from which most danger was to be apprehended, and also the growing strength of Persia, Constantino deemed Rome too remote a residence 330. for the sovereign, and he fixed on Byzantium, which he en- larged and named from, himself, as the seat of imperial power. This measure has been blamed, as leaving Italy ex- posed to the irruptions of the barbarians ; but continuance at Rome, or any other plan to ward oli the inevitable evil, would have been equally exposed to censure. The virtue and energy which had gained the empire were gone ; the tribes of the North had added skill and discipline to their numbers, strength, and courage. Corruption of Christianity. The Christian religion, as given to man by its divine Au- thor, was perfect in truth and simplicity; but it was sent forth into a world in which error abounded, and the stream had hardly left the fountain when it became defiled with mundane impurities. Earnestly and repeatedly does the zealous Paul inveigh against those who mingled what he called the " beggarly elements" and the " fables" of Judaism with the spiritual precepts of the Gospel ; and strongly does he warn to avoid " profane and vain babblings, and oppositions of knowledge, falsely so called." But the evil was not to be checked, and Oriental and Grecian philosophy rapidly mingled with Gospel simplicity. The heat of eastern climates inspires indolence and the love of contemplation. The human mind becomes absorbed in rapturous visions of light and expanse, and men learn to regard the soul, the commencement of whose existence they cannot conceive, as having descended from the realms of su- pernal light into the body, its present darksome dungeon, whence it was to reascend to its former blissful abode. Hence the body being a prison, and matter evil, the object of the soul was to emancipate itself from their infiuence. This was to be best effected, it was thought, by mortification of the flesh and senses ; and hence the voluntary mutilations, the corporeal tortures, rigid abstinence, and all that system iof self-torment which distinguishes the yogee, the fakeer, and CHAP. IX. RO]V|E AN EMPIRE. 116 the monk. Others, but fewer in number, drew a contrary conclusion, and maintained that the acts of its impure com- panion were indifferent to the pure soul ; and they freely in- dulged in the practice of the grossest sensuality. This eastern doctrine, mixed with the Persian one of the two principles, entered, under the name of Gnosis, or know' ledge, into Christianity, even in the days of the apostles ; and it was, perhaps, already, not unknown to the Essenes. All the heresies of which we read in the early days of the church were founded, more or less, on the Gnosis ; and one of the favorite doctrines of these sects was, that this world and its creator were evil, and that Jesus was a being produced by wis Jom, who took the appearance of a body, in which he was apparently crucified by the agents of the creator of the world. With this knowledge of the East the philosophy of the West combined to debase the truth of the Gospel. This phi- losophy was the New Platonism, which had fixed its chief seat at Alexandria, in Egypt, a country ever fertile of error and corruption. Its followers undertook the defence of the old religion ; they allegorized all its indecent and extravagant legends, and set it in opposition to the new faith. Some of these philosophers became Christians, and retained their love of mystery and word-straining artifices: some Christians were educated in their schools. The Jews of Egypt had, as the works of Philo show, long since been familiar with the allegorizing system, which was now unsparingly applied to the simple precepts and narrations of the Old Testament : and the sober Christian of the present day would stare with amazement at the numerous and marvellous senses they were made to bear in the writings of the learned Origen. By this system any words could be made to bear any sense ; and what a field for corruption this gave, is too evident to need proof Yet, as evil has always its attendant good, this very corruption of Christianity may have aided its diflTusion, by procuring it a more ready acceptance among the educated classes of society, whose taste had long lost all relish for truth and simplicity. A veneration for departed excellence is one of the most natural and praiseworthy principles of our nature ; hence no one can blame the early Christians for visiting with respect the tombs of those who died beneath heathen tortures rather than renounce their faith. But, gradually, simple respect was converted into religious adoration; the bodies and relics of the martyrs and confessors were taken from their peaceful and obscure places of rest, and solemnly enshrined in stately churches, where, by the devout, they were viewed with aw- 116 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PARTI. ful veneration, and to whose sanctity they were held largely to contribute. If such honors were paid to the mortal remains of the champions for Christ, of how much greater were they them- selves to be held worthy ! It soon became an established ar- ticle of faith, that the apostles and other eminent saints were at once admitted to the beatific vision and immediate presence of God, where they enjoyed an extent of knowledge and a measure of power to which limits could not easily be set. The transition was easy to an invocation of them, to exert their own power for their suppliant, or intercede with God in his favor ; and the worship of saints was speedily dissemi- nated through the Christian world. The bodies which the saints had occupied when on earth were supposed to retain or to have acquired a portion of this power : they too were adored ; and, shortly after, this honor was extended to their images. Each saint was held to be most easily propitiated at the place where his relics lay, or his life had been spent, and hence the origin of pilgrimages. In effect, the theory devised by Euhemerus, to account for the origin of Grecian polytheism, was exactly applicable to a great part of the religion now called Christianity ; and we shall have completed the picture when we add the number of pretended miracles that were every day asserted with the most unblushing assurance, and the quantity of Jewish and heathen ceremonies that was rapidly introduced into the church. This is the religion which will appear in the next twelve centuries of our history, and to which our future remarks will apply. We must, however, in justice add, that the tor- rent of corruption was nobly stemmed by some, such as Vigilantius ; that many of the corrupters knew not what they did ; and that much of the gold still remained among the dross. CHAP. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. Successors of Constantine. 337. Constantine II. obtained Gaul and Britain : Constans Italy, Illyria, and Africa ; Constantius had the East. Their cousins, Dalmatius and Hannibalianus, had been made Caesars by their uncle : the former governed Thrace, Macedonia, and Greece; the latter, Armenia. CHAP. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. 117 The CfiBsars were murdered by their soldiers, not without the approbation of the emperors, each of whom thirsted for absolute sway. Constantino attempted to deprive his brother of Italy, and lost his life in a battle against him near Aqui- a. d leia, Constans, a prince not devoid of talent, was devoted to 340 and passed his days in the practice of unnatural lusts. Ma^- nentius conspired against him, and he was surprised and slain in a wood at the foot of the Pyrenees, whither he was in the 350 habit of retiring with his favorites. Magnentius attempted to seize his dominions; but Illyria refused obedience, and made Vetranio, an old and worthy officer, emperor. Constantius, committing the war which he was waging, with little success, against Shahpoor, king of Persia, to his cousin Gallus, whom he had made Caesar, marched to the West. Vetranio cheerfully resigned his dignity for an annual pension. Italy declared for Constantius ; and Rome suffered a cruel vengeance from Magnentius, ere he marched to meet his rival. A series of bloody engagements ensued. On the plains of Hungary the last decisive one was fought, which re- united the empire under a single sceptre. Magnentius, to save them from disgrace, slew his own mother, and one of his brothers, and then himself; and his example was followed by his brother Decentius. The Ceesar Gallus was executed 354 shortly afterwards for some offences, by order of the emperor. Julian, the brother of Gallus, had been reared up at the court of Constantius. His habits were studious, his senti- ments virtuous. Disgusted with what he saw around him, he sought relief in the contemplation of the noble characters of Greek and Roman story, whom he made his models. He carried his veneration for his loved antiquity so far as to re- nounce the Christian religion in which he had been reared, and secretly to embrace the ancient system of Greece and Rome, refined by the allegorizing subtilty of the school of the New Platonists ; and resolved to restore it to its former dignity, if ever the empire should fall to him. The Franks and Allemanni were now causing extreme un- easiness to Gaul, and the emperor was obliged to send thither, with the rank of CsBsar, his nephew, whom he held cheap as a book-learned dreamer. But Julian showed, as other men of mental power often have done, that study and learning disqualify not for action. He arranged the most judicious plan for conducting the war, and gave the Allemanni, whose troops under their chief Chnodomar were three times the number of his army, a most decisive defeat in the neighbor- hood of Strasburg. He marched all through their territory, reduced tliem and the Franks to sue for peace, and restored 118 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. the frontiers of the empire. He diminished the burdens of Gaul, and caused justice to be administered with speed and impartiality. His army saluted him Augustus ; and Constan- tius, on receiving- the intelligence in Cilicia, died, it is said, of grief and mortification. X. D. Julian, when seated on the throne, openly professed the 361. ancient religion of the empire. The temples of the gods were again opened, the priests restored to their ancient dignity, and the zealous emperor sought to purify their morals. All practices and institutions to which Christianity appeared to him to have owed its success were engrafted on the old reli- gion : preachers were placed in the temples ; excommunica- tion employed against obstinate sinners ; large sums distributed in alms among the poor. An example of strict and rigid mor- als was set by the emperor ; the utmost moderation prevailed in the palace; the eunuchs and other ministers of luxury were removed. Favor in the distribution of employments was naturally shown to those who agreed in sentiment with the monarch ; but Julian, though superstitious, was too politic, if not too humane, to persecute the Christians. Toleration prevailed ; bishops who had been deposed from their sees were restored ; the cessation of mutual persecution for opinion en- joined ; Arians and Athanasians — for the dispute respecting the divine nature of Jesus Christ had split the church into these parties — compelled to live in peace. The politic em- peror hoped, perhaps, by division to weaken his opponents. From these cares Julian was called away to the defence of the eastern frontier against Shahpoor, who, probably aware of the growing disaffection of the Christians, had begun to make inroads. Julian marched to Mesopotamia, where, de- ceived by a pretended deserter, who undertook to lead him by a nearer road, he got into the deserts, where his army was exposed to the attacks of the light cavalry of the enemy. He resolved on giving battle ; but just as he was preparing for action, he was mortally wounded, and he died, encouraging his officers to do their duty. A. 0. On the death of Julian, the army invested with the purple 363. Jovian, a Pannonian, a man of talent, and so zealous a Chris- tian, that he had thereby incurred the displeasure of the late emperor. He was compelled to surrender the strong fortress of Nisibis to Shahpoor, as the condition of peace. Before he reached Constantinople, he died. 364. The army chose another Pannonian, Valentinian, to suc- ceed ; and he, with their assent, shared the dignity with his brother Valens, to whom he committed the care of the eastern part of the empire, himself taking charge of the West, Va- CHAP. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. 119 lentinian was a valiant prince ; and he distinguished himself in war against the Saxons, Allemanni, and Sarmatians, and built fortresses along the Rhine. Want of self-command was his great defect. Valens was of a less noble character, and he exercised great cruelty against those who set up claims to his empire, or differed from his theological sentiments. The internal corruption and weakness of the empire still increased ; the court more and more every day approximated to the idle pomp, the secret influence of women and eunuchs, the inaccessibleness of the monarch, the horrid cruelty which distinguished those of the East. Barbarous punishments, such , as Rome had hardly seen under the worst of her heathen ; monarchs, were inflicted by these emperors. The discipline , of the legions continually relaxed ; their armor was lightened, [ the infantry diminished, and cavalry increased. The garrisons • of frontier towns took to civil occupations. The best of the 5 legions were composed of barbarians, who had been taken into I the imperial pay. These often refused to fight against their own countrymen; often betrayed the Romans; mocked at all ^discipline; robbed and plundered the country; forced their ocmperors to give battle when it pleased them, how unfavora- .ble soever the circumstances might be. When military virtue j,was lost, all was gone, for civil virtue had long since departed. ijThe view given by contemporaries of the then state of the [empire is heart-rending. Corruption, injustice, and oppres- sion, in the government and its officers; swarms of barbarians rcontinually pouring in and devastating the provinces; and jffamine and pestilence to fill up the picture of misery. The Huns. A new enemy now appeared in Europe. Wars and com- notions in the distant East caused a tide of mingled Turks iind Mongols to pour itself on the West. In the reign of Salens, the Romans heard of tribes of Mongol deformity, be- gotten, some reported, by the devil, who in countless swarms )ressed on the eastern frontier of the Goths. This dreadful 9)eople was named the Huns. All the country from the Black Sea to Livonia was then uled by the venerable Hermanric, chief of the Goths. He ?vas shortly afterwards murdered. The Goths were divided snto two great portions, the West-Goths (Visigoths,) governed ly the house of t!:e Balti : the East-Goths (Ostrogoths,) by ■hat of the Amali. The Huns rarely venturing to meet the iiVeet-Goths in battle, continually carried oflT their wives and children. In the confusion that ensued on the death of Her- nanric, and the invasions of the Huns, the West-Gothic 120 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. princes, Alavivus and Fridigern, proposed to the emperor Va- lens, that if he would give their nation lands south of the Danube, they would undertake the defence of that frontier. Valens consented ; he j^ave the lands, and, through Ulphilas, had them instructed in the Arian form of Christianity. During a period of fifty years the Huns pastured their herds, and pur- sued the chase, in the woods and plains of Russia, Poland, and Hungary, without molesting the West-Goths. The East-Goths were among their subjects ; but Safrach and Aleth led a portion of them over the Danube. Wars with the Goths. The Goths soon found themselves straitened for room in their new abode. They applied to the emperor for permission to trade. He gave orders to the neighboring governors to conduct it, which they did in such a spirit of monopoly, that the Goths had soon sold their cattle and slaves, and were re- duced to part with their children for food. The governors attempted treachery against Fridigern, the Gothic prince ; he summoned his countrymen to arms ; blood and devastation tracked the march of the Goths from Mcesia towards Con- stantinople. The orthodox emperor of the West refused aid to the Arian Valens ; Terentius, governor of Armenia, did the same ; the imperial general, Trajan, was defeated ; the populace despaired of victory under an emperor who was the enemy of the Son of God. Meantime the Goths advanced ; the flames of the villages were seen from the walls of Con- stantinople. Valens marched and encountered the Goths in the plains of Adrian ople. Cavalry now composed the main strength of the Roman armies. They could not stand against the firm Gothic infantry ; the imperial troops gave way and fled. Va- lens, wounded, sought refuge in a peasant's cottage, which j^ D. was set fire to, along with the rest, by the pursuing Goths, 378. and the emperor perished in the flames. The Goths approached the walls of Constantinople, and the empress Domnina prepared for a vigorous defence. Un- used to sieges, and daunted by the strength of the walls, they retired. Fridigern marched into Greece. Safrach and Aleth turned back to ravage Pannonia. 375. Valentinian was dead, and his sons, Gratian and Valentin- ian II., a child of four years, had succeeded him. Gratian associated in the empire Theodosius, a Spaniard by birth, a descendant of Trajan, whose virtues he emulated. The East 379. was committed to the new emperor. His first efforts were to excite discord among tlie Goths, and to gain them over to CHAP. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. 121 himself. Fridigern shortly after died, and the emperor pro- posed a conference with his successor Athanaric: a peace was agreed on, a regular subsidy assigned the Goths, and a number of them taken into pay as auxiliaries. The Gothic chief died at Constantinople ; and such was the idea the Goths had conceived of the talents and virtues of the emperor, that they declared that so long as he lived they would not appoint another prince. Gratianus was an able and enlightened prince : he fought with valor and success against the Allemanni ; but his army disliked him, because he gave a preference to foreign troops. They set up Maximus against him, and Gratian was treache- a. d. rously murdered. 383. Maximus drove the young Valentinian out of Italy. He secured the passes of the Alps, and posted himself with a large army near Aquileia ; but Theodosius took advantage of his neglect, and defeated him. Maximus fell in the action. 388. The two emperors now reigned undisturbed, till Valen- tinian was murdered by the Count Arbogastes and the secre- tary Eugenius. Theodosius speedily came to avenge him, and defeated his murderers at the foot of the Alps. 394. A few months after he had obtained the sole power, Theo- 395. dosius died, to the great misfortune and grief of the empire, which he had governed with justice, moderation, and pru- dence. He was the last who ruled over the whole Roman world. Theodosius had two sons : Arcadius, the elder, a youth of eighteen, was left the East ; and Rufinus, a native of Gaul, became his director : Honorius, a boy of eleven years, held the West, under the guardianship of Stilicho, a Vandal. These ministers, for private ends, introduced confusion into the empire. The Goths, on the death of Theodosius, had appointed Alaric, of the house of the Balti, their prince. Finding their subsidy ill paid, and perceiving that the justice and valor of Theodosius no longer swayed the sceptre, they meditated war. Rufinus deemed it a great stroke of policy to throw the evil on Italy. He secretly advised the Goths to turn their arms tliat way, promising to send no aid to that country. Stilicho, on the other hand, rejoiced at the prospect of war ; he took no pains to secure the passes against Alaric, and a Gothic prince was surrounded and slain in the mountains near Fie- Bole. The nation of the West-Goths, with wives and children, 403. flocks and herds, broke up from their seats in Moesia and Hither-Dacia, and advanced through Illyrium, Istria, and the 122 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1. north-east of Italy, without meeting any opposition. They arrived within a few miles of Milan, at that time the impe- rial residence, and sent a message to inform the emperor that the West-Gothic nation was arrived in Italy, and prayed him either to assign them land, or to try the strength of the two nations in the field. Honorius replied, that they might take land in either Gaul or Spain. Alaric accepted the permission, though in the one country he might have to contend with the Franks, in the other with the Vandals and Suevians. With- out committing any act of violence, he marched towards the Alps leading into Gaul, and the Goths celebrated Easter in the mountains of Piedmont. In the midst of the festival, they were astonished to see that they were followed by a Roman army. The Goths were attacked and defeated by the assail- ants, and Alaric, filled with rage, turned back on Italy. He ravaged Liguria and all the country to Tuscany, and hastened towards Rome. Her fate was averted for a season ; but on the 26th August, of the year 1164 from the supposed era of her foundation, Rome surrendered for the first time to A D. a foreign enemy, and saw herself at the mercy of Alaric. 409. The imperial palace and the houses of the great were plun- dered ; much blood was spilt, and many houses fired. He bestowed the purple on one Attalus, then stripped him of it, marched southwards, and subdued Campania and Calabria, as far as the strait. He was meditating, it is said, a passage to Sicily and Africa, and the conquest of that country, when death surprised him at Cosenzo in his 35th year. The whole West-Gothic nation mourned for him, and the neighboring river was diverted from its course to aflbrd a grave for the Gothic monarch in its bed, and then turned back to its usual channel, that the tomb of Alaric might never be discovered. His brother-in-law, Adolf, (Athaulf) was chosen to succeed him. Adolf marched back to Rome, where his troops did great injury to the public buildings and works of art. The empe- ror was forced to give him his sister in marriage. He con- tinued his march to Gaul. All opposition gave way before 410. Gothic valor. The country bounded by the Rhone, Loire, and Pyrenees, submitted to the West-Goths, and Toloza (Toulouse) became their capital. They crossed the Pyrenees, and drove the Vandals, Suevians, and the Slavonian Alans to the moun- tains of Gallicia and Portugal. The Spaniards retained their ancient valor ; but the government of the empire was not so beneficial as to deserve to be defended. This kingdom of the West-Goths in Spain lasted till the year 711. The Caledonians meantime pressed upon Britain ; Phara- mond (Warmund) and his Franks had settled in the Nether- GHAP. X. DECLINE Ot' THE EMPIRE. 123 lands; Gundicher (Giinther) and his Burg-undians, seized the country on the Upper Rhine. His capital was Worms. Heruli and Ruffians came down into Noricum (Austria ;) the Lango- bards took Pannonia (Hungary and a part of Austria ;) the East-Goths, a part of Thrace. Sebastian and Jovinus raised the standard of rebellion in the empire. Heraclianus, gov- ernor of Africa, kept back the corn-ships destined for Rome. In this state of the public affairs Honorius died, leaving" the ^, p. throne of the West to his nephew Valentinian, a child of six 4?C years of age. Genseric and Attila. In the reign of Valentinian III, Africa was lost to the western empire; the cause was the ambition and art of iEtius, the imperial general. Galla Placidia, the mother of the young emperor, governed for him with wisdom. Boni- facius was governor of Africa. yEtius wished to cause en- mity between him and the regent. He wrote to Bonifacius, telling him he had been traduced to her, and that she would re- call him and put him to death ; he represented to Placidia that Bonifacius was meditating rebellion, and that the only way to check was to recall him : she did so ; he refused obedience : it was resolved to make war on him. Bonifacius, diffident of his own resources, cast his eyes on the Vandals, now masters of Andalusia : he offered land on the coast of Africa, as the price of their assistance, to their prmces Genseric and Gon- deric. Genseric, an able, enterprising, and ambitious youth, immediately crossed the strait. Terror and devastation tracked 427. his route. Bonifacius perceived his error : aided by some forces gent by Theodosius II. emperor of the East, he armed in de- fence of the country. Genseric defeated both him and the im- perial general Aspar. He took Carthage, plundered it, de- stroyed the nobility, and tortured all ranks to make them discover their treasures. Being an Arian, he relentlessly persecuted the orthodox. His son Hunneric was married to a West-Gothic princess. As Genseric grew old, he became suspicious : he took it into his head that his daughter-in-law meditated poisoning him, and he cut off her nose and ears, and sent her home to her own country. Then, fearing the vengeance of the West- Goths, and a union between them and the Roman emperor against him, he sent ambassadors to Attila, king of the Huns, tx) induce him to invade the western empire. The whole nation of the Huns was united under this able prince. He ruled from the Volga to Hungary; Gepidas, Langobards, East-Goths, and nations of southern Germany obeyed him; the emperor Theodosius paid him tribute; 124 OUTLINES OP HISTORr. PART I. 700,000 warriors marched beneath his banners, each Hunnish tribe under its chief. One soul animated the whole ; all yielded implicit obedience to the mandate of their great Tanjoo. Attila was generous, and not averse from mercy. Attila resolved on war. He prepared the way by artifice ; he wrote to Theoderic (Dietrich,) the West-Gothic king r^ siding at Toulouse, inviting him to unite in a partition of the empire of the Romans, his sworn foes. He wrote to the im- perial court, exaggerating the fidelity of the Huns, and pro* posing to restore the integrity of the empire by a union of their forces to expel the West-Goths from Gaul and Spain. The imperial court saw through the artifice. Valentinian called on all the barbaric monarchs of the West to join in averting the common danger : his call was attended to. The valiant West-Gothic monarch, the Burgundians who dwelt in the modern Burgundy, Dauphine, Savoy, and West Switzer- land, Sangiban, king of the Alans, on the Loire, the towns of Armorica, the community of Paris, the Ripuarian Franks between the Maese and Rhine, the Salian Franks ruled by Meroveus, and the Saxons beyond the Rhine, ail took arms to repel the Huns. From his village-court on the banks of the Theiss, Attila^ pursued his march through Austria, Styria, the borders of RhsBtia and Allemannia, passed the Rhine, defeated at Basil the king of the Burgundians, rapidly advancing, till on the- Marne in the plains of Croisette, not far from Chalons, he en- countered the army of the confederates. A. D. The lejft wing of the confederates was commanded by 450. iEtius, the Roman general, the right by Theoderic, the centre by king Sangiban. One wing of the army of Attila was led by the king of the Gepidse, the other by the princes of the East-Goths. Attila ordered the principal efforts to be directed against the West-Goths and Alans, and desired all to fix their eyes on him. The fight was long and bloody. Theoderic fell, encouraging his men. At the approach of night, Attila found it necessary to retreat. The West-Goths burned to avenge the death of their king, ^tius judged it more politic to reserve the Huns as a counterpoise to them; he also, wished to prolong the war, and his own command. Attila, as the country was unable to support his troops, returned home. 452. Vengeance, or, as is said, the invitation of a sister of the emperor, who offered him her hand, drew Attila to Italy. Aquileia resisted in '^ain : it was levelled to the ground ; its male inhabitants put to the sword, the women and children led into slavery. All the towns of northern Italy were taken and plundered. He entered Ravenna through a breach made . by the citizens in thfir walls, to testify their submission. Leo, ttlAV. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. 125 ^ the venerable bishop of Rome, came to meet him, bearing gifts, and accompanied by nobles. He besought him to spare the city where the apostle had preached, and which Alaric had not violated. Attila was moved : he drew off his army, laden with spoil, to pasture their herds once more beyond the Danube. Dreaded by the East and West, Attila died soon a. d. after, on the night of his marriage with the fair Hildichunde, 453. and with him expired the power of the Huns. Fall of the Western Empire. Valentinian III. was a luxurious and superstitious prince. He had violated the wife of Maximus, a noble Roman. Bent on vengeance, Maximus, to deprive the emperor of support, contrived to make him put the brave ^tius to death. This incensed the guards, whose prefect ^tius had been, and Valentinian was murdered by them. Maximus was made 455. emperor, and he married Eudoxia, the widow of his predeces- sor. In a moment of unguarded confidence he revealed to her the secret of his being the chief agent in the death of Valentinian. Eudoxia, who had loved the husband of her youth, resolved to avenge him. She wrote to Africa to Gen- seric, calling upon him to avenge the murder of him, who had so many years left him in undisturbed possession of the fertile regions of Africa. Genseric obeyed the summons. On intelligence of his approach, all the principal citizens of Rome fled to the Sabine and Tuscan mountains. Maximus was put to death by the people. No resistance was offered to the Vandals. Fourteen days they abode in Rome, which Leo, its bishop, with difficulty saved from conflagration. The empress and her daughters, the flower of the youth, the artists and mechanics, were brought to Africa. The works of art were embarked for the same place, but were lost on the passage. All the south of Italy was wasted by the Vandals. Avitus, a man of noble descent and virtuous life, was ele- 456. vated to the purple in Gaul, but almost immediately laid down his dignity. The Romans then chose Majorianus, a 457. brave warrior. He marched against the Alans, who were threatening a descent into Italy, but was murdered by his own 461. soldiers. His successor was Severus. The Alans, who were a tribe of Slavonian race, had settled on the Loire in Gaul. Finding themselves straitened between the Franks and the West-Goths, they abandoned that country, passed the Alps, and reached Bergamo. Here they were defeated by the imperial general, Richimir, who shortly afterwards deposed the em- 3eror, and raised his own father-in-law, Anthemius, to the 467. L2 126 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART I. throne. He designed to govern under the name of the em- peror. Anthemius was refractory : a battle was fought near Rome. Richimir was victorious ; he put Anthemius to death, wasted and plundered the city in a dreadful manner, and sur- A. xx vived hut forty days. Olybrius, married to a daughter of 473. Valentinian, was raised to the throne, which he occupied but seven months. Glycerius, a lord of the court, was chosen by the Romans ; but the Eastern emperor set up Julius Nepos 474. against him, and Glycerius retired and took orders, and be- came bishop of Porto. The emperor sent his general, Orestes, to defend the pas- sage of the Alps against the barbarians, who were continually advancing. By means of his army Orestes forced him to re- sign, and he invested with the purple his own son, Romulus 475. Augustus, a youth of amiable manners and cultivated mind. The Heruli, a people whom we first find seated in Pome- rania, on the shores of the Baltic, had gradually proceeded southwards. They fed their herds in Pannonia, then roved into Noricum, and now appeared in Italy, with other tribes, headed by the valiant Odoacer. Pavia, defended by the father of the young emperor, resisted. It was taken, and Orestes beheaded. All the cities opened their gates at the approach of Odoacer. Romulus laid down sceptre, purple, and crown, and entered the camp of the Herulian chief. His life was spared, and he was sent to a castle in Campania. 476. Thus, in the days of a prince of the same name as her supposed founder, in the 1229th year of the city, fell the empire of Rome. She had by valor and prudence risen from the smallest beginnings ; had step by step enlarged her do- minions, absorbed one after another all the nations of the civilized world that surrounded the Mediterranean, had adopted their vices, had lost her strength by internal corrup- tion. The mighty colossus had long tottered on its base ; each tribe of the Gotho-German stock had by turns agitated it : the last and decisive effort was reserved for the dwellers of Riigen and Pomerania, a tribe unheard of in her days of glory. We here quit the ancient world. New scenes open, new manners appear ; the gods of Greece and Rome have vanish- ed : a different religion is dominant, before which another ancient system also gives way ; while the wilds of Arabia send forth another religion, which, in its rapidity of diffusion and extent of dommion, will vie with that which emanated from its vicinity six centuries before. We shall meet limited monarchy the prevalent form of government ; view the amaz- ing fabric of ecclesiastical dominion ; and contemplate feu- dalism, with its chivalry and its martial spirit. , OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. THE MIDDLE AGES. CHAP. I. ESTABLISHMENT OF THE BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. Introduction. Hitherto the stream of history has run in one nearly continuous channel, varying its appellation as the chief power fell into the hands of a different people. Assyrians, Modes, and Persians, have succeeded each other in the possession of Asiatic empire. Greece has risen on their ruins ; and all have been finally absorbed in the wide dominion of Rome. The minor streams of smaller states have only contributed to swell the current of empire. The tace of history now alters ; the last great empire is dissolved ; no state will ap- pear of such magnitude as to absorb all others ; numerous states will run a parallel course, mutually affecting each other. Our plan must suit itself to the altered condition of the world : henceforth we shall divide the course of events into periods, under each of which we shall view the then state of human affairs. The middle ages occupy ten centuries of the history of man. Of these, the six first are justly denominated the dark ages. A long night succeeded to the brilliant day of Rome, whose sun had set in blood and gloom. In the four last cen- turies of this period, it will brighten more and more into the perfect day of modern cultivation and refinement. Religion will purify, law will resume its empire, manners will soften, literature and science will revive. The Gotho- Germans. The tribes that overturned the western empire were all of this great race, which overspread nearly all the northern part of Europe. Their original seat was probably east of the Caspian. The afiinity between their languages and those of 128 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART It. India and Persia is striking- ; but the date of their migration is anterior to occidental history. They were distinguished by their huge stature, blue eyes, and fair complexions. Their religious system was a deification of the powers of nature ; it still subsists in the Icelandic Eddas. We shall now give a concise view of the states founded by them on the ruins of the empire of Rome. East- Goths in Italy. On the death of Attila, the East-Goths threw off their sub- jection to the Huns. Under their princes of the house of the Amali, they dwelt from the Danube to the Save. They received gifls from the Eastern emperors ; they gave hostages in return. Among these was Theoderic (Dietrich), a natural son of their king Theodemir, a youth of talent and hope. Theodemir extended his conquests to the Alps. His son re-, turned at the age of eighteen, accomplished in the knowledge of the Romans, and, unknown to his father, defeated a Sar- matian prince. The Goths now extended into Illyria and Macedonia, and Theoderic succeeded his father. The em- peror Zeno, a weak prince, feared the ruler of the Goths : he invested him with the consular robe, and allowed him to tri- umph. But the Goths still felt themselves straitened ; and Zeno adopted the resolution of formally bestowing on Theo- deric Italy, now bowed beneath the sceptre of the king of the Heruli. The Gothic nation, accompanied by their families, flocks, and herds, joyfully set forth under their prince, of twenty-, four years of age, to take possession of the blooming region- assigned them. Twice on the borders of Italy were the sub- jects of Odoacer defeated. The Gothic warriors marched through the future Venetian territory. Odoacer fled to Rome, but found its gates closed against him. He shut him- self up in Ravenna, defended by its morasses, works, and 20,000 men. In the third year of the siege, Odoacer was mur- ^ jj dered, and the city surrendered. Theoderic forthwith assum- 493.' ed the Roman purple. At Rome, where he was received with every demonstration of honor, he sought to restore every thing to its state under the emperors. He governed with justice : though an Arian, he persecuted not the orthodox, but testified all becoming respect for their bishops. Though so illiterate as not to write, he encouraged learning : his chancellor was the learn- ed Cassiodorus ; the philosophic Boethius was one of his min- isters. Allied to most of the barbaric princes, he was a father and mediator among them. His wife was daughter to Childe- CHAP. I. BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 129 berti king of the Franks ; his sister was married to Hunneric, king of the Vandals; his niece, to the king of the Thurin- gians; his daughters to the monarchs of the Burgundians and West-Goths. Theoderic left no son. When he felt the approach of death, he summoned his nobles and officers, com- mended to them his daughter Amalaswinde, and her son Athalaric, a child of ten years ; advised regard to order, and a. d. to the senate and people of Rome, and the maintenance of ^26. peace with the Eastern empire. The ambition of the mother of Athalaric induced her to associate with her m the regency her cousin Theudat. Her son died of disease, and her ungrateful colleague deprived 534, her of life. Meantime the Vandal kingdom in Africa had fallen beneath the arms of Belisarius, the able general of the emperor Justi- nian, and Gelimir, its last sovereign, had been led in triumph in Constantinople. Orders were now issued to Belisarius to avenge the daughter of Theoderic. Theudat was dethroned 536. by the Gothic nation, and Vitig seated on the throne of the Amali. Belisarius denied the right of the Goths to elect a king over a country originally Roman. From Sicily, which had already submitted, he passed over to Italy, took Naples, then Rome, which he fortified ; advanced into Tuscany, and defeated the Goths at Perusia. Milan and the neighboring towns rebelled against the Arian Goths; and Vitig called from Burgundy, now under the Franks, 10,000 volunteers 538. against them. The defence of Milan was long and obstinate ; the inhabitants endured the extremities of famine ; but at length the Frankish arms were successful, and neither age nor sex was spared in the carnage. Vitig lay fourteen months before Rome, which was relieved by Belisarius; Ravenna was taken, and Vitig led a captive to Constantinople. 539. The Franks fought in Italy with the success which has ilways attended their arms in that country — victory, then iefeat The Goths were still animated by their usual heroism: wo kings were elected and dethroned. In the person of 540. Totila, the third monarch, the fame of Theoderic revived. Victory attended his arms ; he took the towns, and levelled ,heir walls, Belisarius was absent quelling an insurrection n Africa : he returned to see Rome taken before his eyes. ier fortifications were destroyed ; her inhabitants of all ranks Iriven from their homes, that she might never again be able o resist the Gothic arms. Master of Italy, Totila now emu- ttted the mildness of Theoderic ; he recalled her population o Rome, and lived as a father among his people. Court intrigue had recalled Belisarius ; the conduct of the 130 OUTLINES OF HISTOAY. PART tl. Italian war was committed to the valiant eunuch Narses. With the title of proconsul, and with Langobardic auxilia- A. D. ries, he entered Italy. The Goths were defeated near Tajina, -552. and Totila slain. The nobles of the nation raised Teias to the throne in Pavia; but Nocera soon beheld his end, and that of the Gothic dominion. A feeble attempt on Italy was made by the Allemanni, now subject to the Franks. Under the administration of Narses, Italy enjoyed abun- dance, tranquillity, and happiness. Rome, too, gradually rose again. But Narses fell under the displeasure of the emperor Justin II. He left Rome and retired to Naples, whence he 568. sent letters inviting Alboin (Albwin), king of the Lombards, to the invasion of Italy. The Lombards in Italy. The Longobards or Lombards had occupied the abandoned seats of the East-Goths in Pannonia. Alboin had lately con- quered the Gepidae, a kindred tribe, drunk from the skull of their king Kunimund, and married his daughter, Rosamund, when he received the invitation of Narses. On the 22d April, 568, the whole nation of the Lombards, with 20,000 Saxon confederates, abandoned Pannonia. On a lovely morn- ing of Spring, they with rapture first beheld, from the summit of the Alps, the magnificent region which was to become their own. Their march through the country was orderly and peaceful ; no plunder or devastation took place ; nothing was omitted to conciliate the affections of the inhabitants. Pavia fell before their arms, and became their capital. In a short time no part of Italy remained to the empire but Ra- venna, Rome, and some of the eastern sea-coast. This prov- ince was governed by exarchs or proconsuls. The authority of the emperors gradually diminished in Rome, and was trans- ferred to the popes, of whom the virtues of many rendered them worthy of the authority they enjoyed ; and Rome might justly esteem herself happy, when directed by the meekness, piety, and zeal of her more distinguished pontiifs. The Burgundians. Bordering on the Lombards were the Burgundians, who possessed the ancient country of Sie Allobroges. On entering this country the Burgundians had required of the former pos- sessors to give up to them two-thirds of the lands, one-half of the woods, houses, and gardens, and one-third of the slaves. Agriculture and pasturage were the occupation of the free Burgundians ; the arts were exercised by the servile classes. Thev were one of th.e first of the barbarian nations to form ft I CHAP. I. BARBARIANS IN THE WEriTERN EMPIRE. 131 icode of laws; and the Burgundian code is disting-uislied from ■that of the other nations, by not allowing- a composition for ,1 blood. When they entered Gaul, they had themselves in- ostructed, during seven days, in the principles of Christianity j Ion the eighth they were baptized. I The princes of the Burgundians sought and obtained from the court of Constantinople the Patriciate or government over •the original inhabitants: their office and their large posses- fsions assured them authority over their own countrymen. A jipowerful nobility controlled their authority. Gondebald, one jsof their sovereigns, attempted to raise his Roman subjects to ,an equality with the Burgundians, to diminish their influence; but all ranks of the latter assembled at Geneva, and forced him to abandon his project. To secure the crown to his son Sigmund, his father, Gon- Idebald, had him, during his own lifetime, elevated, after their a. d, •ancient manner, on the shields of the Burgundians, and pro- 515, cured for him the patriciate from the emperor. Sigmund was married to the daughter of the great Theoderic, the East- ; iGoth. After her death, he sacrificed her son to the calumnies Ibf his second wife. Theoderic sent troops to avenge his 'grandson, and he roused the sons of Clovis (Chlodvig) the j'Frank to gratify the vengeance of Clotilda, their mother, jiwhose father had been put to death by his brother Gondebald, the father of Sigmund. The Franks entered the country: jlSigmund fled to a convent he had founded; he was taken ' and slain. His brother Gondemar and the nation carried on the struggle during ten years. At last Gondemar wus over- come, and the race of Clovis ruled over Burgundy. The 534. I national independence, the laws, and manners still remained. The Allemanni. Northwards of the Burgundians, the Allemanni had estab- lished themselves along both sides of the Rhine, from its source to its confluence with the Moselle and Maine. They Qeglected the arts of civil life ; their herds occupied and sus- tained them : they loved the agitation of war, and their rude policy caused them to demolish the walls of conquered towns. Cologne, the territory of the Ripuarian Franks, having 496. been invaded by them, Clovis, the Salian, marched to the aid I :>f his allies. He met the Allemanni near Ziilpich. A long I and desperate battle ensued ; victory was declaring for the Allemanni, when Clovis, still a heathen, raised his hands to heaven, and invoked the God of the Christians. His Roman soldiers were stimulated to increased exertion ; they threw themselves impetuously on the foe. The Allemanni were 132 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. broken, their king was slain, and the people submitted to the rule of the king of the Franks. The Franks. In the third century, the warlike association of the Franks, seated on the marshy confines of the Lower Rhine, began to overrun Gaul. They had been gradually acquiring a firm ; footing in that country. They were divided into several tribes, | governed by different chiefs of the family of Meroveus. Clovis 1 (Chlodvig) son of Chilperic, succeeded, at the age of fifteen, i| to the command of the Salian tribe. Ambitious of conquest, i he led his warriors from his little kingdom of the Batavian I island into Gaul. Numerous auxiliaries crowded to a stand- ii ard which held forth the prospect of conquest and plunder- i| Clovis, with rigid impartiality, divided the booty of each vie- ;■ A. D. tory among his followers ; but indiscriminate plunder was se- , 486. verely prohibited and punished. Syagrius, who ruled as king ' over Soissons and the neighboring country, and whose equity and justice had gained him a mild and beneficial influence over the Burgundians and Franks, was the first potentate at- tacked by the Frankish chief A battle decided the fate of Syagrius, who fled to the court of Toulouse, where his life was sacrificed to the menaces of Clovis. The district of Tongres was the next acquisition of Clovis, made in the tenth year of his reign. The battle of Ziilpich, just narrated, gave him the sovereignty over the Allemanni. His queen, Clo- tilda, was a Burgundian princess, and a Christian : her en- treaties, the victory at Ziilpich, or politic views, perhaps a union of all these motives, led Clovis to yield a willing ear to the arguments of the Christian bishops, and he was fol- lowed to the font by 3000 of his warriors. The form of Christianity embraced by Clovis, was the Cath- olic. Nothing could have been more advantageous to.him» at least in a temporal point of view. The West-Goth and Burgundian princes were Arians ; and though they treated their Catholic clergy and subjects with the utmost gentleness, the latter could not endure patiently the dominion of here- tics. A large portion of their subjects, therefore, looked up to the orthodox king of the Franks, and were ready to aid his enterprises against their Arian sovereigns. Alaric, king of the West-Goths, was young ; his subjects had for many years enjoyed the luxury of peace ; his realms were fair and fruit- ful ; he and his Goths were Arian sectaries. In an assembly of his nobles and warriors at Paris, now the seat of his gov- ernment, Clovis expressed his grief, that the fairest part of Gaul should be in the hands of Arians, and invited his war- CHAP. I. BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 133 riors to join in the conquest and division of it. Such motives were not to be resisted ; a numerous army soon took the field. Alaric roused his Goths to arms : his troops outnumbered the Franks; but the influence and the arts of the clergy were with Clovis. Miracles, it was even said, came in aid of the righteous cause. The river of Vienne was swollen ; but a white hart appeared to conduct the Catholic army to a ford. A bright meteor hung each night over the cathedral of Poi- tiers ; and its flame, like the pillar in the wilderness, served to guide the true believers towards the station of the infi- dels. Ten miles beyond that city the armies encountered. Alaric fell by the hand of his rival, and the rout of the Goths was complete. The whole of Aquitain was conquered and colonized by the Franks, and the Gothic dominions in Gaul reduced to the province of Septimania, a strip extending along the Mediterranean. The emperor of the East conferred ,on Clovis the dignity of consul and patrician; titles of no in- jtrinsic value, but which gave him estimation in the eyes of his Gallic subjects. a. d I On the death of Clovis, his extensive dominions were di- 511 ..vided among his four sons. Thierry (Dietrich) had Austrasia, jlhe eastern portion, embracing a great part of western Ger- ,pany: his capital was Metz. Clodomir resided at Orleans; iPhildibert, at Paris; Clotaire, at Soissons. These princes .reduced Burgundy, in the conquest of which Clodomir fell. ^i,rhe dominions of Clovis had again a single master, in the ijperson of Clotaire, his youngest son by Clotilda. The valor 558 bf Thierry, the eldest, had added Thuringia to his domin- ions. The empire was again divided, and again reunited, in |j,he person of another Clotaire, great-grandson of Clovis. His !on, Dagobert I., was an able prince ; but after him the sove- 613. I'eigns of the Merovingian house became utterly insignificant, rheir dominions were divided into two portions, Austrasia l^|.nd Neustria ; the latter containing the former kingdoms of l^aris, Orleans, and Soissons. Burgundy was dependent on jVeustria ; but Aquitain was separated from the time of Dago- *^ert, and governed by dukes descended from his brother Ari- Liert. Officers, called Mayors of the Palace, whose original employment had been the presentation of petitions, gradually ^isurped all power, and eventually the throne. The Anglo-Saxons. On the decline of the empire, the Roman legions were !l/ithdrawn from Britain. The inhabitants, enervated by civili- j-iation and a long peace, were assailed by tlie Picts and Scots, ijid their coasts were infested by the incursions of the tribes M 134 OUTLINEri OF HISTORY. i»ART it. of the north. Vortigem, who at that time enjoyed the su- premacy over the Britons, deemed it the wisest policy to gain the alliance of some of these last, and he engaged Hengist A. D. and Horsa, two Saxon chiefs, who were sailing with three 449. ships along the coast, to enter his service. With their aid the Caledonians were reduced to peace. The isle of Thanet , was assigned to these useful allies. A large body of Saxons ; sailed from Germany and joined them in that place. The Saxon chiefs then persuaded the British king to invite over more of tlieir countrymen, and plant them in the north. He assented, and a third fleet sailed from Germany. Peace did not long continue between Vortigern and his allies. Saxons, Jutes, Angles, poured over in vast numbers : adventurers from all parts joined them. A long and bloody contest ended in giving the Saxons possession of all the plain country of Brit- ain : the original natives could only maintain themselves in Cornwall, Wales, and the district along the western coast, in the north : a portion passed over to Armorica, and gave that country its present name — Bretagne. In the conquered dis- tricts, the origmal natives were reduced to a state of thral- ; 582. dom, and nearly exterminated. f Their conquests were divided by the Saxons into a num*- I ber of separate and independent kingdoms. The greatest I number at any time was eight ; but conquest, inheritance, or ' other causes, frequently reduced them to seven, six, five, four, three, which were again dissolved, and the number increased. , The usual train of murders, usurpations, tyranny, and op- pression that accompanied the various lines of barbarian princes settled in the Roman empire, distinguished the Anglo- Saxon monarchies ; but, with their barbarism and their vices, they retained their freedom, and the germs of those institu- tions of which England is now so justly proud. The West-Goths in Spain. i The nature of the country has always favored the defence ' of Spain. Its conquest engaged the Roman legions during 171 years ; and the same period elapsed from the arrival of 414. the Gothic king Adolph in Catalonia, before the last kmg of the Suevi in that country was taken, and the whole peninsula submitted to the Gothic rule. The history of the Gothic monarchs in Spain is a tissue of murders, usurpations, and all the evils attending elective monarchy among an uncivilized people. In 117 years. Leu- ,! vigild, the first monarch of all Spain, had seventeen succea- | sors. When the monarchs embraced the Catholic faith, the f] influence of the clergy greatly increased ; and though the ar- CHAP. I. BARBARIANa IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 135 dent zeal of the prelates, in their numerous councils, incul- cated persecution, many laws beneficial to the people in gen- eral were enacted in them ; and the Visigoth code breathes a more enlightened policy than those of the other states founded on the ruins of Rome. During a great part of this period the coast of Spain was ; under the dominion of the Byzantine emperors, who encour- aged the disaffection of the orthodox subjects of the Arian - Goths. WJien Rec?red, one of these monarchs, embraced ; the Catholic faith, the pretext for refusing allegiance was re- ; moved, and the Gothic monarchy had only its own internal ^ weakness to dread. ' The Byzantine Empire. The eastern or Byzantine empire, so called from the an- I cient name of its capital, continued to exist to the end of the P middle ages ; but greatly declined from the rank of the Roman I empire, and now only one among many of equal power and , dignity. Through the early part of this period it possessed . nearly all that was apportioned to it by Theodosius ; and, in the reign of Justinian, Africa, the greater part of Italy, and . the coast of Spain, were annexed to it. Its external enemies , were the Persians, the Huns, and other tribes on its northern . frontiers ; internally it was agitated by the contention of reli- gious parties, for which a remedy was vainly sought in the 'assembling of general councils of the prelates to settle by '_ their votes what was incapable of being determined ; and the I conduct and character of the majority of those who met in solemn assembly at Ephesus, Chalcedon, and Constantinople, to decide on the nature of the Son of God, showed how small ^a portion of his spirit was abiding among them. The city of Constantinople was continually thrown into disorder by the furious contentions and mutual massacres of the blue and green factions of the Hippodrome, and their respective parti- ,sans and Favorites. \ Arcadius, the son of Theodosius, was a weak, insignificant a. d 'I prince, entirely governed by his empress and his faithless ^^^• /jminister Rufiinus, His son, Theodosius II., partook of his 408. father's weakness of character; and eunuchs and monks ex- ercised unlimited power over his mind. The powerful Attila 'jthreatoned the throne of Byzantium, and the feeble successor (Of Constantine trembled and paid tribute ; but his father had _"had the good sense and magnanimity to commend his tender [youth to the regard and protection of Yezdejird, the able ^monarch of Persia, the enlightened tolerator of Christianity ; ^.and during his reign the empire wa5 unmolested on that side. 136 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART II. The hours of Theodosius were devoted to study, to the chase, and to the occupations of his court ; and he has the honor of bein;^ the first monaj-ch who caused a collection of the laws of the empire to be made. The repose of his latter days was disturbed by the first council of Ephesus; wherein the turbu- lent Cyril of Alexandria, by violence and cruelty, settled the disputed question of the nature of the meek and lowly Jesus, in opposition to his rival, the less fortunate, but perhaps more X. D. pious, Nestorius, of Constantinople. 450. Pulcheria, the wise and talented sister of Theodosius, suc- ceeded. Feeling' the necessity of masculine energy at the helm of the state, she gave her hand to Marcian, a senator, who had in early life distinguished himself in the Persian and other wars. With true Roman spirit, Marcian refused to continue the tribute of his feeble predecessor to the king of the Huns. Attila stormed and vowed vengeance; but his attention being at that time drawn towards the West, he con- fined himself to threats against the Byzantine monarch. 457. On the death of Marcian the throne was filled by Leo, a prince not unworthy of it ; but he stained his fame by his in- gratitude to Aspar, to whom he owed his elevation. His in- fant grandson succeeded, whose father, an Isaurian by birth, but who had taken the Grecian name of Zeno, governed in his stead. The infant emperor dying prematurely, suspicion fell on his father ; and Verina, the widow of Leo, drove him from his throne, which she bestowed on her brother Basil icus. But this prince, having offended his sister, a conspiracy de- livered him and his family into the power of the relentless 491. Zeno, who recovered his throne. On the death of Zeno, his widow, the virtuous Ariadne, bestowed her hand and the em- pire upon Anastatius, a domestic of the palace, whose charac- ter is expressed by the popular cry at his accession : " Reign as you have lived !" After a reign of twenty-seven years, Anastatius died, leav- ing no heirs. The eunuch Amantius determined to give the purple to some one in whose obsequiousness he might confide. To assure his measures, he intrusted a large sum of money, to be distributed by way of donative among the guards, to Justin their commander, originally a Dacian peasant. Justin was false to his trust : he gained the suffrages of the soldiers 518. for himself; and the illiterate peasant was seated on the throne of the Csesars, which he occupied" not discreditably during a reign of nine years. 627. Justinian succeeded his uncle Justin. - The talent of this prmce lay in the selection of fit persons to execute his plans of war and legislation ; for he never himself appeared in the CHAP. I. BARBARIAN'S IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 137 field, and his mind was narrow and confined. Yet Justinian has the fame of fofming- a regular and copious body of juris- prudence, embracing-, digesting, and simplifying the mass of judicial wisdom, which had accumulated under the kings, consuls, and emperors. This important work was executed by the ablest lawyers of the age, under the superintendence of the great Tribonian. The emperor discerned also in the camp the merit of Belisarius, a general worthy to stand in competition with those of any age. The Roman arms, under the conduct of Belisarius, checked the pride of Persia ; over- turned the Vandalic kingdom in Africa, and reduced that country to a province of the empire ; conquered the East- Goths of Italy, and led their king a captive to Constantino- ple. But the great military and private virtues of Belisarius were shaded by too slavish a submission to the arbitrary will of an ungrateful court, and too great blindness to the vices of his wife, the wanton and vindictive Antonina. The emperor himself was the slave of his passion for the empress Theo- dora ; who, from the condition of the vilest of prostitutes and most shameless of pantomimists, had been elevated to a share of the imperial throne. Justinian had a thirst for fame ; he adorned the capital with stately buildings. The church of St. Sophia, now a mosch, remains a monument of his taste. One of his nephews, Justin II., was the successor of Jus- a.d. tinian. In liis reign Narses, the valiant eunuch, offended, as ^65. is said, by an expression of the empress Sophia, invited the Lombards into Italy ; and that country was lost to the empire. Disease afflicted Justin : he was unable to leave his palace and attend to the affairs of his people ; his mind was over- whelmed with the magnitude and responsibility of his office ; he .resolved to appoint a successor, and abdicate. The em- press recommended Tiberius, the captain of his guard. Justin transferred to him his diadem, in the presence of the patriarch and the senate ; and during the four years he survived, he ex- perienced every attention from the worthy object of his gen- erosity. Tiberius governed with every kingly virtue. Success 578. crowned the arms of his generals in the Persian war ; but a fatal disease seized on the excellent monarch, and, in four years after the death of Justin, carried him offj amidst the tears of his people. He gave his daughter and his diadem to Maurice, a prince worthy to occupy his throne. But in a 682, war against the Avars, a tribe of Turkish race, Maurice re- fused to redeem the prisoners who had fallen into their hands. The army mutinied, and invested Phocas, a centurion, with MS 138 OUTUNES OP HISTORY. PART II. the purple ; and by his order Maurice and his children were ^ J, murdered. 602. The vices and tyranny of Phocas disgraced the throne ' which had been adorned by the virtues of his predecessors. Every province was ripe for insurrection. Heraclius, the exarch of Africa, refused tribute and obedience to the tyrannic centurion. Crispus, the son-in-law of Phocas, who trembled for his life, joined the senate in calling upon Heraclius to save the empire. The task was committed by Heraclius to his son of the same name. An African fleet appeared before Constantinople : the tyrant was deserted, taken, and put to death. 610. The reign of Heraclius was a series of struggles against foreign enemies. Chosroes (Khosroo), the Persian monarch, under pretext of avenging the death of Maurice, had made war on Phocas. The first intelligence Heraclius received was that of the capture of Antioch. Jerusalem was next taken by the victorious Persians ; they poured into Egypt, and the Persian standard was carried as far as Tripoli. An- other Persian army lay during ten years encamped on the Bosphorus, in view of Constantinople. The Avars occupied Thrace, and pressed the capital ; and Heraclius narrowly es- caped becoming the victim of their perfidy. A peace was at length granted by the Persian king, on the condition of a most enormous tribute. During tlie time allotted for the col- lection of it, Heraclius prepared for a desperate struggle : he put forth the soul and energy of a hero, and in six glorious campaigns retrieved the honor of the empire ; Assyria, and the regions beyond the Tigris, then beheld, for the first time, the victorious standards of Rome. Meanwhile the heroism of the emperor was caught by his people, and the Avars and their allies were driven with loss from before Constantinople. But while Heraclius and Chosroes were thus mutually ex- hausting their strength, a new enemy, who meditated the overthrow of both, was looking on with secret satisfaction ; and in the heart of Arabia a storm was preparing to burst over both their empires. Persia. We have seen that the Parthians had recovered the greater part of the original dominions of the Persian kings from the descendants of Seleucus, and had long proved the most for- midable enemies of them and of the Romans. Their empire had gradually declined ; and Ardeshir, or Artaxerxes, a Per- sian, and an officer of reputation in the army of Artaban, the Parthian king, and who was, or gave himself out to be, a CHAP. I. BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 139 lineal descendant of the ancient Persian monarchs, through his valor and conduct succeeded in wresting- the sceptre from a. jj. the feeble grasp of the Arsacides, and the empire again be- 226. came Persian. The restoration of every thing to its original state in the glorious days of the ancient monarchs, was tlie first object of Ardeshir. The Mobeds or priests of the national religion were summoned from their retirement to consult on the re- establishment of the worship of Ormuzd in its original purity ; for though the ancient religion had not undergone any perse- cution from the Arsacides, it had not been held in honor, and its ministers had languished in obscurity. But now, under a prince who regarded himself as the son of the'Kaianides, the religious system, which had animated the soul and nerved the arm of that illustrious houso, was again to flourish ; the disciple of Zerdusht (Zoroaster) again to combat beneath the banner of Ormuzd, against Ahriman and the powers of dark- ness ; and the sacred fire to flame once more on a thousand altars. By the side of religion stood military renown. Ardeshir put tbrth a claim to all the countries once contained in the Persian empire, and carried on heavy wars with the Romans for Anterior Asia, where, in Armenia, they still maintained on a throne the remnant of the Parthian royal family. Shah- poor (Sapores,) the son of Ardeshir, continued the wars of his father, and extended his empire towards the west. The Ro- man emperor Valerian ended his days a captive in the hands of this monarch. Galerius, whom Diocletian raised to the dignity of Caesar, forced the Persian king, Narses, to a peace, which lasted forty years, and gave Osrhoene and Nisibis to the empire. The Persian Yezdejird was the friend of the emperor Ar- cadius, and was suspected of Christianity by his orthodox sub- jects. Bahram, the succeeding king, was one of the best and greatest of the Sassanides. Feroze made war on the Neph- thalites, or White Huns, whose king had been his friend and protector, and lost his life in battle against them. His son, 488. Cobad, waged war with the emperor Anastatius. His more illustrious son and successor, known in the West as Chosroes, in the East as Noosheerwan the Just, continued the wars of his father through the reign of Justinian; but in Belisarius he met an opponent such as the empire had never yet opposed to the generals of the Persian kings. The struggle was maintained throughout the life of Noosheerwan with mutual loss, and the final gain of neither. Hormuz, his son, in despite 579. of the careful education bestowed by his father, became a 140 OUTLINES OF HI3T0RT. PART 11. tyrant : the provinces rose in rebellion ; the Roman arms ad- ^, jj. vanced on one side, the Turkish Khan on another. A hero, 65U. Bahram, saved his country, and usurped the throne. Hormuz died in prison ; his son, Khosroo, fled to the protection of Maurice ; the Roman arms and his faithful subjects restored him to the throne of his fathers : Bahram fled to the Turks, and there died by poison. Khosroo, as we have just seen, took arms to avenge the murder of his protector Maurice, and 628. carried on a long and bloody vi^ar with Heraclius. Defeated by the Romans, he was murdered by his son Siroes. The parricide enjoyed the fruit of his crimes but eight months. Twelve years longer the empire was agitated by anarchy and bloodshed, tillthe victorious arms of the Arabian khalifs ended the dominion of the house of Sassan in the person of Yezde- jird m, CHAP. II. THE TIMES OF MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. Mohammed. While Chosroes of Persia was pursuing his dreams of re- covering and enlarging the empire of Cyrus, and Heraclius was gallantly defending the empire of the Csesars against him ; while idolatry and metaphysics were diffusing their baleful influence through the church of Christ, and the sim- plicity and purity of the Gospel were nearly lost beneath the mythology, which occupied the place of that of ancient Greece and Rome, the seeds of a new empire, and of a new religion, were sown in the inaccessible deserts of Arabia. 569. At the time when the sceptre of Constantinople was swayed by the pious nephew of Justinian, and that of Persia by the vigorous hand of Noosheerwan the Just, was born in the city of Mecca, in Arabia, Mohammed, the son of Abdallah, and grandson of xA.bd-ul-Motallib, one of the richest and most gen- erous chiefs of the Koreish. Mohammed was early left an orphan ; his uncles were numerous and powerful, and, in the division of his grandfather's property, his share was but five camels and a female slave. Plis uncle Aboo Taleeb reared him: at the age of twenty-five he entered the service of KJia- dijah, a rich widow of Mecca ; and with her merchandise ac- companied the caravans to Damascus, The honor and fidelity of the factor to his mistress was exemplary ; the person of Mohammed was handsome and dignified, his aspect majestic, CHAP. II. MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. 141 his eye penetrating, his smile irresistible, his voice harmoni- ous, and eloquence flowed from his tongue. Khadijah admired and loved ; the generosity of Aboo Taleeb made up the defi- ciency of his nephew's fortune : she gave him her hand and her wealth, and thus raised him to his proper rank in society. The gratitude and affection of the son of Abdallah caused the noble matron never to regret her act. Mohammed was of a serious contemplative mind. He had long been convinced of the great truth of the unity of the Deity, and he mourned over the idolatry of his countrymen. In the solitude of a cavern near Mecca, whither he used to retire for meditation, he reflected on the best mode of bring- ing them to an acknowledgment of the truth. Arabian tra- dition spake of ancient prophets sent to reclaim men from error ; Moses and Jesus were, he knew, commissioned from heaven to teach ; he may have expected a similar commission ; his enthusiasm may have beguiled his imagination, and in ecstatic vision the angel Gabriel possibly may have appeared to descend to him : but it is far more probable that he con- ceived that the end justified the means ; that the arguments of reason, which he had, perhaps, already tried, would have no effect on the obtuse minds of the adorers of J360 idols ; that only as the envoy of heaven could he look for attention, and that his first vision of Gabriel was as fictitious as his latter ones notoriously were. a. d. In the 40th year of his age, Mohammed announced to his 609. wife "Khadijah, his slave Zeid, his pupil Ali, and his friend Aboo Beker, a direct commission from God to preach the doctrine of his Unity. They may have believed, they may have seen the distant prospects of temporal power and glory that awaited them ; they acknowledged the prophet. During the next three years, ten of the principal citizens of Mecca embraced the new faith. In the fourth year, he offered the blessing to hi^own kindred, the race of Hashem ; and was warned in vain by Aboo Taleeb, the father of Ali, to abandon his impracticable project. Ten years longer he preached publicly and privately in Mecca to the inhabitants and as- sembled pilgrims, warning them to embrace the truth, and to remember the fate of the tribes of Ad and Thamood, whose impenitence had brought down the vengeance of offended heaven. Persecution was at length employed against him and his disciples. As long as Aboo Taleeb lived, he protected his nephew, though he rejected his prophetic claims; but he died : the faithful Khadijah soon followed him ; Aboo Sofian, a declared enemy, succeeded to the place and power of Aboo 142 OUTLIxXES OF HI3TORV. PART It. Taleeb ; and the death of Mohammed was resolved on. Timely information enabled him and his friend Aboo Beker to fly to the concealment of a cavern; where, durino- three days, they escaped the perquisitions of their enemies. They then mount- ed their camels atid fled towards Yatreb : on the road they A. D. were overtaken ; but by prayers and promises they escaped. L2J. This memorable event, denominated the Ilejira, or Flighty gave name and origin to the era by which years are counted in all countries professing the tenets of Islam. At Yatreb, henceforth called Medinat-en-Nabi {the City of the Prophet),, he was received with every testimonial of respect. Its principal citizens had already formed with him at Mecca a treaty of conversion and alliance; and the people had ratified the compact, and now submitted to his rule as propliet and king. War ensued between his new subjects and his foe? at Mecca: the white banner of the prophet was soon seen to float before the gates of Medina ; and his sacred person was not unsparingly exposed in the tumult of the conflict. Mohammed may have been originally only an enthusiast^ and have dreamed of no other weapons for the diffusion of his faith than those of eloquence and persuasion. At the head of an army he became a fanatic. The sublime doctrine of the Unity might, he saw, be made the foundation of temporal dominion. The Koran — the book of his law — now breathes a fiercer tone, and the sword is to be called to the aid of the truth. Henceforth we are to contemplate the prophet as a 623. prince and conqueror at the head of armies. The battle of Beder was the commencement of his career of victory. Aboo Sofian was, with only thirty or forty followers, conducting a caravan of 1000 camels : a party of the troops of the prophet, . in number f313, lay in wait for it ; the Koreish, to the amount of 100 horse and 850 foot, advanced to its protection. The prophet and his troops lay between the caravan and the troops of Mecca : he determined to assail the latter; exhorted his men, ascended a pulpit, and called on God for the aid of Gabriel and 3000 angels. His troops were yielding; the prophet mounted his horse, cast a liandful of sand into the air, crying, " Let their faces be covered with confusion." The Koreish were panic-struck, and fled ; 70 were slain, an equal number taken prisoners. A second battle was fought at Mount Ohud, near Mecca. The Koreish were 3000 strong, the followers of the prophet numbered but 950 ; and, notwith- standing his military skill and valor, he was forced to abandon the field, and the bodies of 70 of the saints. Next year 10,000 62S. men sat down, in vain, before the walls of Medina; tempests CttAP. II. MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST IvIIALIFS. 143 and dissension forced them to retire without fame, and the iKoreish lost their hopes of overcoming the exile. The Jews -formed several tribes in Arabia. Mohammed at first sought to g-ain them to his faith ; but, finding them in- flexible, he unsheathed the sword against them. Everywhere their resistance was overcome, and' their treasures divided among the victorious Mus-sulmans. The conquest of Liecca was the object next the prophet's heart: he advanced against it ; but awed by the martial appearance of the Korcish, he negotiated and concluded a truce for ten years, stipulating a permission to enter the city the following year to perform his devotions. In the pilgrimage made in consequence by him and his followers, Khaled and Amroo, the bravest war- riors of the Koreish, embraced the faith of Islam. The Kore- ish were soon accused of breach of truce ; 10,000 Moslems marched against the holy city ; resistance was not to be at- tempted ; and Aboo Sohan in person presented the keys to ^. p, Mohammed, and confessed him to be the prophet of the one 629. true God. The last great effort in the sinking cause of the idols was made in the valley of Honain, in the war called that of the Idols. A confederacy was formed, at the head, of which stood the people of Tayef, a strong fortress, sixty miles south- east of Mecca : 4000 of the confederates occupied the valley of Honain ; 12,000 Moslems advanced with rash confidence, and were speedily throv/n into confusion : the prophet was surrounded, and only saved by the devotedness of ten of his disciples; his own Voice, and that of his uncle Abbas, re- stored the battle. The idolaters were finally routed ; Tayef taken, and their temples destroyed. The whole of Arabia now acknowledged that " there was but one God, and that Mohammed was his prophet;" and a train of 114,000 True Believers attended his last pilgrimage to the Caabah. When the Moslem ambassador waited on Heraclius to invite him to the profession of Islam, a degree of amity en- sued between the emperor and the prophet." The murder of a Moslem envoy in the empire gave the Arabs tlie wished-for pretext for invading the country east of the Jordan, The command of 3000 men was intrusted to Zeid, and in case of his death to Jaaffer, and. then to Abdallali. In the battle of Muta the three leaders fell gallantly fighting. Khaled re- stored the battle, and repulsed the Christians. At the head of 10,000 horse, and 20,000 foot, the prophet advanced towards Syria, in the hottest season of the year. Their sut^ ferings were intolerable ; and when they reached the fountain of Tabook, midway between Mecca and Damascus, he de- 144 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 11 clared himself satisfied of the peaceful intentions of the em- peror; perhaps he dreaded the number and valor of the ^ jj Roman troops. 630." In the 63d year of his age, Mohammed, after beholding his religion spread over the Arabian peninsula, felt the approach of death: he comforted and instructed his friends and the people, manumitted his slaves, gave orders about his funeral, appointed Aboo Beker to pronounce public prayer in his place, and then calmly expired. The disconsolate Moslems would not believe him dead till their clamor was silenced by the 632. scimitar of Omar and the arguments of Aboo Beker. The First Khalifs. On the death of the prophet, it might have been expected that Ali, his cousin and earliest disciple, and who was mar- ried to his daughter Fa tenia, would have been appointed Khalif, i. e. successor ; but Ayesha, the favorite wife of Mo- hammed, was his mortal enemy. Discord was on the point 632. of breaking out, when Omar proposed the election of the venerable Aboo Beker: he was accepted, and during two years governed with justice and impartiality. In his reign, the indefatigable Khaled continued his conquests in Syria, and from the Euphrates to the M ■'diterranean the khalif was obeyed. 634. The sceptre was bequeathed by the khalif to Omar, one of the oldest of the companions of the prophet. In the twelfth year of his reign, Omar perished by the dagger of an assas- sin. Ali still forbore putting forward his claims; and six electors, of whom he himself was one, chose Othman, the 644. secretary of the prophet. Othman was unequal to his high situation : old age had enfeebled his mental powers. The subjects became discon- tented. A large army assembled beforfe Medina ; the khalif was forced to surrender, and he fell with the Koran in his lap. The brother of Ayesha headed the assassins. The public 655. choice now fell on Ali. Ali in old age displayed all the daring courage of his youth. Two pow^erful chiefs, Telha and Zobeir, erected the standard of revolt in Irak : they were joined by All's implacable enemy, Ayesha, and, mounted on her camel, she appeared in the thickest of the battle, encouraging the rebels, but in vain ; they were slain, and she was taken. The khalif reproached her, and then dismissed her to pass the remainder of her days at the tomb of the prophet. A more formidable enemy now appeared in Moawiyah, son of Aboo Sofian, and governor of Syria, who aei^umed the title of khalif, and gave himself out CHAP. II. MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. 145 as the aveno^er of Othman, whose bloody shirt he exposed in the mosch of Damascus. The cause of Moawiyah was em- braced by Amroo, the conqueror of Egypt. Ali took the field with an inferior force, and during 110 day§ a war was waged on the plain of Siffin, on the western bank of the Euphrates, to the advantage of Ali, till the superstition and disobedience of his troops forced him to yield to a treaty. Ali did not long survive. Three fanatics met in the temple of Mecca, and agreed to murder Ali, Moawiyah, and Amroo, as the only means of restoring peace to the church and state. Each chose his victim : he alone succeeded who selected Ali, who fell by his dagger in the mosch of Cufa, in the 63d year of his age. Moawiyah was now acknowledged khalif, and the seat of em- a. d. pire transferred to Damascus. 660. The virtues of the first four khalifs are acknowledged ; but, by a large portion of the Mohammedan church, the first three are looked on and cursed as usurpers. Those that hold this opinion are denominated Sheeahs, and it is an article of their faith, that Ali is the vicar of God. This is the estab- lished religion of Persia. The Soonees, or orthodox, to whom the Turks belong, regard all the four as rightful successors of the prophet, but they assign the lowest degree of sanctity to Ali. It is almost needless to add, that the hatred of the rival sects is most cordial and intense. Conquest of Syria. During the reign of the first four khalifs, Syria, Persia, and Egypt were conquered by their lieutenants, and the law of the Prophet embraced, or tribute yielded, by the inhabit- ants. On the accession of Aboo Beker, he dispatched an army, 632. under the command of Aboo Obeidah, for the conquest of Syria. The first object of their attack was the fortress of Bozra, eastward of the Jordan. The false confidence of the people, and the treachery of the governor, delivered it into the hands of the Moslems. Damascus was distant but four days' journey ; its siege was undertaken ; but intelligence of the approacli of a large army to its relief, induced the Mo- hammedan chiefs to suspend their operations till they had encountered the imperial forces. All the forces scattered on the borders of Syria and Palestine were summoned to the standard of the faith. On the plains of Aiznadin, the troops of the klialif, 45,000 633. in number, and guided by Khaled, Amroo, and their most dis- tinguished leaders, encountered the Christian host of 70,000 men. Liberal offers of peace were made by the Greeks, and N 146 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. f ART 11. disdained by the Arabs. The conflict began j it continued throughout the day with doubtful success ; in the evening, Kiialed made a furious onset, and victory declared for the Moslem arms : the field was covered with the bodies of the Christians, and inestimable booty rewarded the victors, Da- mascus was again invested. Animated by their brave gov- ernor, Thomas, a nobleman allied to the emperor, the garrison and citizens offered a gallant resistance ; till after experienc- ing the inutility of all the efforts of valor, they capitulated to the mild and upright Aboo Obeidah, on condition of those who chose being permitted to depart with as much as they could A. D. carry of their effects, and those who stayed being allowed to 634. retain their lands, houses, and seven churches tributary to the khalifs. A large number departed. Urged by the im- portunity of a Syrian renegade, whose mistress was among the fugitives, Khaled pursued them with 4000 horse. The ill-fiited Damascenes were overtaken ; not a soul, save one, escaped the Arabian scimitar; but the traitor to his country and his faith perished by the dagger of his indignant mistress at the moment he attempted to embrace her, 635. The following year saw Heliopolis, or Baalbek, the capital of the rich valley of Hollow Syria, and Hems, or Emessa, the chief city of the plain, in the hands of the khalifas lieuten- ants. 636. The banks of the Yermuk, a stream that flows from Mount Hermon into the lake of Tiberias, was the scene of the last great battle for the possession of Syria. Eighty thousand of the imperial troops stood with 60,000 Christian Arabs of the tribe of Gassan against the Moslems. It was the most doubt- ful day the faithful had yet seen ; but the Sword of God (so Khaled was styled) was victorious. Countless was the loss of the Christians ; 4030 Moslems lay on the plain. After a month spent at Damascus, to recruit their vigor and divide the spoil, the impatient host marched to invest the sacred walls of Jerusalem. The siege lasted four months; a surrender was then offered to the khalif in person. The sanctity of the place moved Omar, and he undertook the jour* ney from Medina through the waste. The holy city received the khalif, and on the site of the temple he laid the founda^ 637. tion of the mosch named from himself. 638. Aleppo and Antioch, the only remaining places of strength, submitted to the victorious arms of the Arabs, and all Syria obeyed the successor of the prophet. Heraclius abandoned that portion of his dominions in despair, and the ravages of the Moslems extended to within view of Constantinople. C«AP. II. MOHAMMED AND THE PIRST KHALIFS. ^ 147 Conquest of Persia. In the first year of Aboo Beker, Khaled appeared on the 632.' banks of the Euphrates. In the same year with the conquest of Syria, 30,000 Moslems eng-aged the numerous host of Yez- 638. dejird III., the youthful grandson of Khosroo, on the plains of Cadesia, on the edge of the desert, 61 leagues from the future Bagdad. The troops of Persia were commanded by '^ Iloostem, a namesake of the national hero; the Direfsh-€- Kawanee, or Apron of Kawah, the banner of the empire, blazed in their front. On the fourth day of the battle, the flying Roostem was overtaken and slain, and the jewel-set Direfsh-e-Kawanee was captured. All Irak, the ancient As- syria, submitted, and the city of Bassora was founded, to com- mand the trade of Persia. In the third month after the battle, the Tigris was passed ; Madain or Ctesiphon, the capital of the empire, was taken by assault, and immense plunder enriched the faithful. Yez- dejird had fled to Holwan, at the foot of the hills of Media. The loss of the fortress of Jaloola made him fly to the moun- tains of Farsistan, the country of Cyrus. At Nahavend, to the south of Hamadan, 150,000 Persians made a final effort for their country and their religion. The appellation, Victory of victories, bestowed on this battle by the Arabs, proves the fatal result. All the cities and towns of Persia submitted to the conquerors. Their banners approached the Caspian and the Oxus. Yezdejird had fled to Chorasan, and taken refuge in Merv. The governor of that city invited the khakan of the Turks to take possession of his person. The Turks en- tered, and made themselves masters of Merv. Yezdejird es- caped during the confusion, and sought shelter with a miller, who murdered him while he slept, for the sake of his rich 651. arms and robes. Conquest of Egypt. The year in which the conquest of Syria was completed 638 that of Egypt commenced. Amroo marched from Gaza with 4000 Arabs. After a siege of thirty days, Pelusium surren- dered. Memphis held out seven months against the Saracen army, now double its original number. It was taken by as- sault. The city of Cairo rose on the spot, where the Arabs had encamped. Religious enmity facilitated the conquest of the country. The Egyptians hated the creed and the government of the emperors. A treaty was entered into between Amroo and Mokawkas, a noble Egyptian. It was agreed that, for a raod- 148 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 11. erate tribute, the Christian inhabitants should be left in the full enjoyment of their religion and their property. The whole nation fell off from the Greeks, and every assistance was rendered to the Arabs. The city of Alexandria remamed to be conquered; an achievement, perhaps, surpassing in difficulty any the Arabs had yet attempted. Its inhabitants were numerous and resolute, its supplies abundant, the sea was open, affording a facility of relief The Saracens strained every nerve ; the tribes of the desert crowded to the standard A. D. of Amroo ; the Egyptians labored strenuously, and, at the 639. end of fourteen months and the loss of 23,000 men, the Mos- lems saw themselves masters of the capital of Egypt. The khalif rigidly forbade pillage ; a tribute was imposed on the inhabitants. The truth of the destruction of the library of the Ptolemies has been questioned. The loss of Alexandria hastened the death of Heraclius. In the space of four years two fruitless attempts were made to recover it. Invasion of Africa. 647. Under the reign of Othman the conquest of Africa was attempted by the Moslem arms, led by Abdallah, the foster- brother of the khalif. At the head of 40,000 men, he ad- vanced from Egypt into the west. After a toilsome march they appeared before the walls of Tripoli ; but the approach of the prefect Gregory, with a numerous army, called the Saracens from the siege to the field. For several days the two armies encountered from morning till noon. The daugh- ter of Gregory fought by his side, and her hand and 100,000 pieces of gold were offered to the warrior who should bring the head of the Arab general. Zobeir, who afterwards fell in rebellion against the khalif Ali, joined his brethren : his stratagem defeated the army of Gregory, who fell by his hand. The town of Sufatula, 150 miles south of Carthage, was taken. The country on all sides implored the clemency of the conqueror; but his losses and the appearance of an epidemic disease prevented a settlement bemg formed, and after a campaign of fifteen months, the Saracen army re-en- tered Egypt with their captives and their booty. From the battle of Beder till the death of Ali, a period elapsed of 37 years, during which the arms of the Arabs had penetrated from the heart of Arabia to the banks of the Oxus and Indus, and the shores of the Euxine and Caspian. The Nile rolled withm their dominions ; Africa, Cyprus, and Rhodes, had been visited and plundered by their victorious warriors. CHAP. n. MOHAMMEt) AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. 149 The Ommiyades. When All was murdered, his rights passed to his son Has- san, who was induced by Moawiyah to abandon his claim and retire to Medina. The khalifat was now established in the house of Ommiyah, in which it continued during seventy years through fourteen khalifs, and extended its sway from the Pyrenees and the Atlantic to the borders of Turkestan and India, the largest empire and most powerful monarchs of the globe. This dynasty derived its appellation from Ommi- yah, one of the chiefs of the Koreish : Aboo Sofian, his de- scendant, long resisted the prophet ; his son, Moawiyah, be- came his secretary, and Omar made him governor of Syria. The first Ommiyah Khalif was a man of courage, though he declined the proposal of the chivalrous Ali, who offered to decide their dispute by single combat : his son Yezid, and his successors, were princes of little merit, and never partook in the toils and glories of war. Conquest of Africa. Oppressed by the exactions of the court of Byzantium, the people of Africa invoked the aid of the Arabs. The lieuten- ant of Moawiyah entered Africa, defeated an imperial army of 30,000 men, and returned laden with booty. Akbeh, a valiant warrior, marched from Damascus with 10,000 Arabs ; his army was joined by numerous African auxiliaries ; victory led him to the shores of the Atlantic, and he founded the city of Cairoan, fifty m'les south of Tunis, to secure his con- quests. But Akbeh fell in battle against the revolted Greeks and Africans. His successor, Zuheir, shared his fate. The final conquest v/as reserved for Hassan, governor of Egypt, who took and destroyed Carthage, and subdued the Berbers a., d. of the desert. Musa, his successor, broke their power ef- 709. fectually when they rose in rebellion. Conquest of Spain. The Gothic monarchy in Spain was now utterly enfeebled. Having no foreign foes, military discipline had been neglect- ed, and luxury had quite altered the descendants of Theo- deric. Roderic, a nobleman, had, on the death of Witiza, ascended his throne, to the exclusion of the two sons of that monarch: their uncle, Oppas, was archbishop of Toledo; Count Julian, a partisan, was governor of Ceuta and Andalu- sia ; tlie malcontents were numerous. It is added, that Rod- eric had given farther offence by violating Cava, the daughter of Julian. N2 160 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. Julian had repulsed Musa from the walls of Ceuta, but soon after he entered into correspondence with the Arab A. D. chief, and offered to g-ive him entrance into Spain. The per- "710. mission of the khalif, Walid, was obtained. A small body of troops, commanded by Tarif, passed over and advanced to tlie castle of Julian, at Algeziras, where they were hospita- 711. bly entertained and joined by the Christians. The following spring- 5000 Moslems, under the command of Tarik, passed over and landed at Gibraltar, named from their chief They defeated the Gothic commander sent against them. Roderic collected an army of near 100,000 men ; the Saracens were augmented to 12,000, besides their Spanish and African aux- iliaries. On the banks of the Guadaleta, near the town of Xeres, the battle was fought which decided the fate of the Gothic monarchy. Three days were occupied in bloody but undecisive skirmishing, the fourth was the day of general conflict. The Saracens were yielding to multitudes ; Tarik still animated his men, when Oppas and the sons of Witiza, who occupied the most important post in the army of the Goths, passed over to the enemy, and turned the fortune of the field. The flight and pursuit lasted three days. Roderic fled on the back of his swiftest horse, but escaped the battle only to be drowned in the waters of the Guadalquivir. The whole country submitted without resistance to the victorious Tarik. Toledo, the Gothic capital, opened her gates, stipulating only for freedom of religion and internal ^-/government. Within almost as short a time as a traveller could traverse Spain, the general of Musa beheld the bay of Biscay. Envious of the fame of Tarik, Musa hastened his passage to Spain at the head of 18,000 men : the cities of Seville and Merida resisted ; and the defence of the latter was obstinate, and only subdued by famine. The Tarrago- nese provmce was speedily overrun by Tarik, and the Goths were pursued into their Gallic province of Septimania. A valiant remnant of the Goths maintained their independence 714. in the rugged mountains of Asturia. All the rest of Spain obeyed the successors of the prophet. : ' At the same time that the khalif Walid received intelli- 1 1 gence of the conquest of Spain, messengers from the East ' ■ arrived to announce the first successes of the Mussulman arms in India. Invasion of France by the Arabs. J 668. The Arabs of the East had twice besieged Constantinople : ' & each time they had retired with dishonor. The commander i • of the faithful had even paid tribute to the Eastern emperor. j CHAP. II. MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. 151 Five years after the raising of the second siege of the a. d. Eastern capital, the kingdom of the Franks was menaced '721. with destruction by the khalif's viceroy in Spain. Eudes, duke of Aquitaine, was a prince nearly independent of the feeble successors of Clovis. The Moslems claimed Septima- nia from him as a part of the Spanish monarchy. An army passed the Pyrenees, but was defeated, and its leader slain, before the walls of Toulouse. A second appeared, and re- duced all France from the Garonne to the Rhone. The valiant Abd-er-rahman resolved on the conquest of the whole of the dominions of the Merovingians : he laid siege to Aries, and defeated an army sent to its relief: to the north of Bourdeaux he encountered and slaughtered the army of Eudes. The Moslems appeared before Tours and Sens in Burgundy : their troops were beheld from the walls of Lyons and Besancon. Fortunately there was a hero in France. Charles the son of Pepin was mayor of the palace in Neustria : he collected an army of French and Germans, and encountered the Arabs on the plains between Tours and Poitiers. On the seventh day 732. of the conflict victory declared for the Europeans : Abd-er- rahman fell ; the Saracens retired, fell into dissension, and evacuated the country, to which they never returned. More than 300,000 Moslems are said, with gross exaggeration, to have fallen ; and the epithet of Martel, the Hammer, bestow- ed on Charles, proves the vigor of his arm in the conflict. France. The degenerate descendants of Clovis had during this period sunk into utter insignificance. All power was in the hands of the mayors of the palace : these officers headed the armies, and disposed of lands and offices. The kings, retired in their palace, enjoyed the luxury of a well-furnished table, and on the May meetings (Champs de Mai) of the nation, they were drawn in their chariot by four oxen to receive the homage of their people, and follow the directions of the mayor. The dignity of mayor was transmitted from father to son. Pepin Heristal appointed his illegitimate son Charles to succeed him, in preference to his lawful issue ; and the field of Tours justified his choice. The Lombards. Authar, king of the Lombards, governed his people with 684. wisdom and equity, and fought with success against the im- perial exarchs and the Franks. His widow, Theudelmda, 690. married Agilulf, duke of Turin : the nation received him as king. Pope Gregory I. mediated peace between him and 699. 152 OUTLINES OP HISTORV. PART II. the exarchs ; and he also cultivated peace with the Franks and Avers. His queen encouraged the beneficent svvray of ^. D, the Christian religion, and gradually brought the Lombards 616. to relish the delights of peace. Agilulf was succeeded by his son Adelwald; but losing his senses by drink, the sceptre 625. was transferred to his brother-in-law Ariwald. On the death of Ariwald, Rother, another son-in-law of Agilulf, was elect- 636. ed. This prince first collected the laws of the Lombards into a code. His son and successor, Rodwald, was murdered by a man whose wife he had abused ; and the nation elected Ar - 652. bert, nephew of queen Theudelinda. Aribert sought to leave his sons Perthari and Godibert joint sovereigns : they fell into 661. discord. Godibert was slain by Grimwald, duke of Benevento, one of his own partisans : Perthari, on hearing this, fled to Hungary. Grimwald reigned with justice, and defeated the Franks who came in aid of Perthari : this latter succeeded 671. him, and reigned with great mildness and equity. After va- rious transitions, the crown was placed on the head of Ans- 710. brand, a Bavarian, a man advanced in years and wisdom. His son, Liiprand, was the most powerful and one of the ablest of the Lombard monarchs. Great friendship prevailed between him and Charles Martel, who sent his son to have his hair first cut by the Lombard king, who thereby, according to the ideas , of the Franks, became a second father to the young Pepin. Constantinople. 641. Heraclius was succeeded by his son Constantine II., with whom the queen Martina had her own son Heraclionas asso- ciated. Constantine died after a short reign of 103 days. Heraclionas and his mother were banished, and Constans II., the son of Constantine, a boy of twelve years, placed on the throne. He caused his brother Theodosius to be murdered ; passed over to Italy ; waged an unsuccessful war against the Lombards ; plundered Rome and several other cities of Italy 662. and Sicily of the works of art, which he collected in Syracuse, and embarked for Constantinople; but the ships which car- ried them were taken by the Saracens and brought to Alex- andria. Their precious freight was dispersed and lost. Con- 668. stans was murdered, after a six years' residence in Sicily. In the reign of his son Constantine IV. Africa was lost, and 685. Constantinople besieged. Justinian 11. succeeded, was ex- pelled, returned, and exercised the most savage cruelty. Phihppicus Bardanes avenged humanity on the tyrant ; but 711. was himself dethroned and blinded. Anastatius followed. 713. The army raised a native of Adramyttium to the throne, be- CHAP. III. CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROON-ER RASHEED. 153 cause his name was Theodosius : he laid down his dignity as a. p. soon as he safely could ; and Leo, an Isaurian, a brave man, 717. was placed on the throne of Constantinople, which he gal- lantly defended two years against the arms of the khalifs. Germany. Germany received during this period the first beams of the beneficent light of the Gospel. An Englishman, named Win- fred, went through the country preaching the faith, and drawing the people from the worship of idols : he collected them into towns, where afterwards cities rose. The pope Gregory II. beholding his zeal, bestowed on Wuifred, now called Boniface, the dignity of a bishop, and the office of legate. Mentz became the see of this first bishop, whence, as the sword of Charles Martel smote the rude tribes of Ger- many, the bishops invited them to receive the religion of Rome, and the more polished rnanners of the Franks. The sword and the Gospel went together in Germany, as the sword and the Koran in Asia. Monasteries, those asylums of peace, amidst the storms of the middle ages, were founded in Germany by the labors of Boniface. England. In the pontificate of Gregory the Great, the Gospel was preached to the Anglo-Saxons by Augustine and his com- panions, sent by the zealous pontiff" from Rome with that de- sign. Their first efforts were in the kingdom of Kent, whose king, Ethelbert, was married to a Christian princess of the house of Meroveus. The king and his nobles embraced the new faith, which was gradually extended to the other king- doms into which the Anglo-Saxons had partitioned the island. It is a remarkable feature in the character and piety of the Anglo-Saxon princes, that continually the world was edified by the sight of one of them quitting his throne, and all the pomps and cares of royalty, and retiring to pass the evening , of his days in the shade of a monastery, or in the holy city of the supreme pontiff! CHAP. III. THE TIMES OF CHARXEMAGNE AND HAAGON-ER-RASHEED. Italy. Among other practices of the ancient heathenism which had gradually crept into the church of Christ, was that of the v/orship of images. When Leo, the Isaurian, mounted the 154 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. J'ART It imperial throne, either guided by reason, or by early preju- dices, he warmly espoused the side of the Iconoclasts, image- breakers, who opposed their worship, and a council assembled at Constantinople pronounced it to be heretical. When the im- ^ P. perial edict arrived in Italy, obedience to it was refused ; and, 728.* at the exhortation of Pope Gregory IL, all Italy, save Naples, rose in arms to oppose the profane emperor : his troops were massacred when they landed m that country ; and the pope, in the plenitude of his power, was about to direct the election of a new emperor. The authority of the Byzantine emperors in Rome was little more than nominal : the city had nearly returned to its republican form ; the bishop was considered as the first magistrate ; and thus the temporal power of the popes was founded on the best of grounds, the- free choice of the people. A series of able, enterprising, and dignified pontiffs, the three Gregories, Zachary, Stephen, Paul, firmly established this sacerdotal dominion, Liitprand, king of the Lombards, took Ravenna, and men- aced Rome. This prince aimed at uniting all Italy under one sovereign ; but the policy of the popes, and the resistance of the princes and states, prevented the execution of his designs. 744. The iron crown passed, after the death of his nephew and successor Hildebrand, to Rachis duke of Friuli, who shortly after, with his wife and daughter, abandoned the cares of 749. royalty, and retired to the monastery of Monte Casino. The choice of the nation fell on his brother Astolfo (Aistulf ). This prince made the final conquest of the exarchate of Ravenna, and summoned Rome to acknowledge his sovereignty. The pride of Rome and the pope disdamed submission; but their strength was unequal to the conflict : they turned their eyes for aid beyond the Alps ; and Stephen III. in person crossed those mountains to implore the compassion of the pious Franks, and of Pepin, the illustrious son of Charles Martel. He im- plored not in vain : an army, led by Pepin in person, entered Italy, and Astolfo swore to respect the possessions of the church ; but hardly was Pepin gone, when the Lombard forgot his vow. Pepin was again called on, and Astolfo was again 756. reduced to submission. Astolfo was succeeded by Desiderius, duke of Tuscany. Falling into a dispute about their frontiers with pope Hadrian II., the latter called on his powerfull ally, Charlemagne, son of Pepin : the passes of the Alps were betrayed, the vassals fell off", the Lombard king was shut up in Pavia, his capital, his valiant son Adelgis vainly implored, in person, aid at By- 774. zantium. After a siege of tvvo years, treachery gave Pavia '*'CHAP. Iir. CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROON-ER-RASHEED. 155 to'the French, and Lombardy became a part of the empire of a. d. the son of Pepin. A grateful pope (Leo) crowned the French 800. monarch emperor of the West. Rome did homage to his power : the duke of Benevento, whose duchy embraced the modern kingdom of Naples, acknowledged himself his vassal ; the Venetians, who, since the days of Attila, had dwelt in their isles and lagunes, revered his authority. The Lombards retained their laws and usages; each person and each district of Italy was governed by local or adopted laws. The great cities were governed by dukes, aided by a council of bishops, abbots, counts, knights, and gentlemen. The pope exercised at Rome the power possessed by the dukes in the other cities. He was chosen by the clergy and people, and the choice confirmed by the emperor. Empire of Charlemagne. On the death of Charles Martel the kingdom of the Franks w^as thrown into some confusion. The German provinces armed in favor of his son Grypho, against his brothers Carlo- man and Pepin. The latter were victorious in the contest, and an end was put to the duchy of Allemannia. Chilperic occupied the seat of Clovis ; the power of the monarchy was wielded by Pepin. Pope Zachary pronounced that it was lawful for the title to follow the power ; and at Soissons, where, 266 years before, the empire of the Franks had been founded by Clovis, his last descendant was formally deposed in an assembly of the nation, and sent to end his days in a 752. convent, and Pepin crowned in his place. The new monarch quickly destroyed his brother Carloman, and humbled the great. His chief exploits were against the Lombards in de- 768. fence of the popes. At his death he divided his dominions be- tween his sons Charles and Carloman. The latter lived but three years, and suspicion of having hastened his end fell upon his brother. 771. Charles, afterwards called Charlemagne, or Charles the Great, early in his reign overturned the kingdom of the Lom^ bards. During thirty years he carried on an obstinate war against the Saxons, on whom he sought to impose his yoke and Christianity. Headed by Wittikind, a second Arminius, the gallant nation resisted with vigor and perseverance. Gott- fried, king of Denmark, aided and gave refuge to them ; but the Obotrites of Mecklenburg joined the Franks, and Witti- kind and his people were at last forced to receive the religion and the law of Charlemagne. Several abandoned their coun- try and took refuge in Denmark, whence their descendants united with the Northmen issued, and avenged the blood of 156 OUTIJNES OF HISTORY. PART 11. their fathers on the descendants of their oppressors. In Spain, Charles appeared as the ally of the emir of Zaragoza, find es- tablished the Spanish March, extending from the Ebro to the Pyrenees. Barcelona was the residence of the French gov- ernor. In Germany, he extended the French dominion to the Elbe, and added the kingdom of Bohemia to the Germanic body. A conflict of eight years against the Avars of Pan- nonia gave him the possession of that country. His empire thus extended from the Ebro to the Elbe, from the ocean to the Vistula, and the Teyss and Save. The duke of Bene- vento acknowledged his supremacy; the king of England was his friend ; the Christian princes of Spain regarded him as a patron. Haroon-er-Rasheed honored him by gifts as an equal. Master of two-thirds of the Western Roman empire, he was crowned emperor of the Romans by Leo, on the fes- tival of Christmas, A. D. 800, in the sacred temple of St. Peter. His dynasty, called the Carlovingian, from Charles Martel, formed the second in France. After a long and vic- A. D. torious reign he left his empire, which he had widely ex- 814. tended, and to which he had given a code of laws, to his son Louis the Debonair. Feudal System. As France was the chief seat of this celebrated system, the present period seems not unsuitable for giving a slight view of it. The Franks, like the Burgundians, Lombards, and others of the barbarous nations, carried their original Germanic ideas with them into the countries they conquered. The land was divided into a number of districts, over each of which was a count to administer justice and collect the revenue in peace, to lead the military contingent in war. Several of these counties were under a duke. These offices were ori- ginally precarious, but gradually became hereditary in fami- lies, and the foundation of power and independence. At the conquest, the lands which had been seized were distributed into portions, accordmg to the rank of the occu- pant. That of the king was considerable, and those of the principal officers proportionably large. These lands were allodial, held in propriety on the sole condition of serving in the defence of the country. The owner of three mansi* was obliged to serve in person ; where there were three possessors of single mansi, one served, the others contributed to equip * A mansus contained twelve jugera of land. Ducange. CHAP. III. CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROON-ER-RAgllEED. 157 him. All served at their own expense, and the period of ser- vice was limited. Of the Romans, or original inhabitants, some retained their lands in propriety ; others farmed those of the Franks. They were governed by their own laws. But the Franks stood higher in the eye of the law, and the Weregild, or composi- tion for homicide, was always much greater in the case of a Frank than of a Roman. The demesne lands of the crown were very extensive. They were the private estate of the sovereign, whence he was to support his dignity. Portions of these lands were frequently granted by the kings to favorites, under the name of benefices, under the usual condition of military service, which service appears to have differed from that of the allo- dial proprietors in this, that that of the latter was rather va- tional, that of the former rather due to the monarch person- ally. These benefices were granted for life, and then re- turned to the crown ; but the son of the beneficiary was gen- erally continued in his benefice, and under the feeble Mero- vingians the benefices mostly became hereditary. The hold- ers of hereditary benefices now began to bestow portions of their benefices on others to hold of themselves, under a simi- lar tenure of military service. This practice, called sub-in- fcudation, spread greatly afler the death of Charlemagne, and we have here the germ of the wliole feudal system, with its burdens and obligations. The dukes, counts, and marquisses, or margraves, who guarded the marches or frontiers, gradually encroached on the royal dignity. They made their dignities hereditary; they sought to appropriate to themselves the crown lands within their jurisdiction ; they oppressed the free proprietors. These last were hitherto the strength of the state, and shared in the legislature, owing no duty but military service against the public enemy. They now were exposed without protec- tion to the tyranny of the count or duke. The protection of a powerful man was the only security ; the allodial lands were surrendered and received back as feudal; fheh owner 'sc- knowledged himself the vassal of a suzerain, and took on him the feudal obligations. These obligations were mutual, as those between patrons and clients at Rome : the vassal was bound to follow his lord to war during a limited period, usually forty days, and that even against a superior lord or the king ; he was not to di- vulge his lord's counsel, to injure his person or fortune, or the honor of his family. In battle he was to give his horse to his lord if dismounted, to give hunself as a hostage for him if 158 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. taken ; he was to attend his lord's courts as a witness or a judge. He was to pay a fine on receivinof, and another on alienating his fief; and he was to pay an aid to redeem his lord from captivity, to enable his lord to pay his own fine to his superior lord, on taking- possession of his fief, &c. The aids varied in number in different places, and these obliga- tions mostly grew up gradually, as the power of the lords enabled them to encroach. On the part of the lord,*the prin- cipal obligation was that of protection. The church, though rich in lands, and hallowed by super- stition, did not escape the universal outrage and spoliation. Though the clergy were often martial, they could not meet the feudal lords on equal terms. The rich abbeys, therefore, usually adopted the practice of choosing an advocate in the person of some neighboring lord, on whom they bestowed sun- dry privileges, and generally some good fief; and who was, in consequence, bound to defend the interest of his clients in courts of law, and in the field of battle. The feudal system did not arrive at full maturity during the time of the Carlovingians, and we have here somewhat anticipated. It was confined to the dominions of Charle- magne, and to countries which, like England, borrowed it from them. England. Nothing remarkable happened in England during this pe- A. D. riod, except the union of all the Anglo-Saxon kingdoms, un- 827. der the sceptre of Egbert, king of Wessex. The Vikingar, or pirates of Scandinavia, now began to send forth those large fleets which were soon to spread devastation on the coasts of Europe, and Charlemagne shed tears at the sight of the first of them that appeared in the Mediterranean. Constantinople. Superstition, ignorance, and feebleness increased in the ■742. eastern empire. Leo the Isaurian was succeeded by his son Constantine V., who carried on the war against the images with apparent rather than real success. The short reign of Leo rV, was terminated by poison, as was supposed ; and his widow, Irene, who governed under the name of her inlknt 780. son Constantine VI., gave a final triumph to the monks by solemnly establishing the worship of the images. This monk- lauded empress stained her hands with the blood of her own son, and then contrived to reign alone, the first sole regnant 802. empress; but she lost her throne to the daring courage of Nicephorus. This emperor set himself resolutely but vamly CHAP. m. CMAIILEMAGNE AND HAUOON-ER-RASHEED. 159 against the imag-e worship ; the evil had come to too great a head. His son and son-in-law possessed the throne but three a. d. years. A soldier, Leo Bardanes, next ascended the throne ; 813. but court intrigues and monkish arts impeded his judicious policy. His successor, Michael of Amorium, was feeble and unfortunate. The external enemies of the empire during this period were the Arabs under the Abbasside khalifs, who ravaged Lesser Asia, and the Bulgarians, a Slavonian tribe, who ad- vanced southwards towards the Adriatic, where they subse- quently occupied Dalmatia. They were now on the southern bank of the Danube, in the country named from them. The emperor Nicephorus lost his life in a battle with this nation. 810 The Abbasside Khalifs. The house of Ommiyah failed in gaining the affections of its subjects. The family of the prophet was esteemed best entitled to his throne and pulpit. Of the line of Hashem, the Fatemites, or descendants of Ali by Fatema, the daughter of the prophet, had the prior claim ; but they were wanting in 746. courage or talent. The Abbassides, the family of the proph- et's uncle. Abbas, were numerous, prudent, and united : their partisans were chiefly in Persia, where Aboo Moslem, their chief support, first gave them dominion by the conquest of Khorassan. Persia was from east to west a perpetual scene of conflict between the rival parties of the white and the black, as they were styled, from the colors of their ensigns. The Ommiyades unfurled the white banner of the prophet ; their rivals displayed the opposite hue. Ibrahim, the chief of the house of Abbas, was waylaid on his pilgrimage to Mecca by the troops of Damascus, and he expired in the dungeons of Haran : his brothers, Saffah and Almansor, escaped to Cufa. Saffah was there proclaimed khalif Mervan IL, the Ommi- yade khalif, collected a large army, and met the host of Saffah on the banks of the Zab. The Abbasside troops were least in number ; but fortune favored them. Mervan fled to Egypt ; and in another engagement at Busir, on the banks of the Nile, he lost both life and empire, 750 The unfortunate race of Ommiyah was now sought out and slaughtered. One youth alone, Abd-er-rahman, escaped the perquisitions of the Abbassides, and he fled to Africa. He was invited over to Spain by the friends and servants of his house. The governor, Yussuf, was forced to yield to his arms ; 755. and from the city of Cordova the sceptre of the Ommiyades ruled during 283 years over the eight provinces into which Spain was divided. 160 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. After a short reign, SafTah was succeeded by his brother Almansor. The royal residence had at first been Medina : Ali transferred it to Cufa; and Moawiyah to Damascus. Per- sia was the chief seat of the Abbasside power ; and Almansor A. D. laid, on the eastern bank of the Tigris, the foundations of 762. Bagdad, the royal seat of his posterity for five hundred years. Tlie arms of Almansor were successful against the nomades of Toorlcistan ; but his expedition against the Ommiyade khalif of Spain encountered only disgrace and defeat. The Greeks had taken advantage of the civil dissensions of the Moslems to recover a portion of their dominions. Mo- hadi, the successor of Almansor, retaliated during the reign of Irene and her son. Haroon, his second son, at the head of 95,000 Persians and Arabs, invaded Lesser Asia; and from the heights of Scutari, withm view of the imperial city, dic- tated the terms of an ignominious peace. 781. Five years after this war, Haroon-er-Rasheed, or the Just^ ascended the throne of his father and his elder brother. Du- ring a reign of twenty-three years, this active prince eight times invaded the Grecian territories. In vain the emperor Nicephorus sent haughty defiances and denials of tribute ; in vain he assembled large armies : his troops fled in dismay before the disciplined bands of the commander of the faithful ; and the Byzantine gold was annually poured into the treasury of Bagdad. The memory of Haroon is renowned alike in both the East and West, as the hero of history and tale; but it is indelibly stained by the slaughter of the princely and guiltless Barmecides. 804. On his death his throne was disputed by his three sons ; and, in the civil conflict, Al-Mamoon, the son of the filthy slave of the kitchen, triumphed over the issue of the haughty Zobeide. The memory of this prince is dear to literature and science, of which he was the zealous patron ; and his peaceful acquisitions eclipse the martial deeds of his father. Under the first khalifs and the house of Ommiyah, no literature was attended to but the Koran and their native po- etry. Almansor began to encourage the acquisition of foreign literature : it was also patronized "by Haroon ; but Al-Mamoon far outstripped all his predecessors in its cultivation. At his command, his agents and his ambassadors collected the best works of Grecian science, and his translators gave them an Arabic dress. The astronomy of Ptolemy, the medicine of Galen, the metaphysics of Aristotle, were read and commented on in the language of Arabia. The Ommiyade khalifs of Cordova, the Fatemites of Africa, vied with those of Bagdad in the collecting of books, and the encouragement of science; CHAP. III. CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROON-ER-RASHEED. 161 and from the schools established by them proceeded chiefly the medicine, physics, and metaphysics of Europe during the middle ages. But the poets, the orators, and the historians of the Grecian republics, never learned to speak the language of Mohammedan despotism. ^ ^^ In the reign of Al-Mamoon, Crete and Sicily were con- 823.' quered by the Moslems. A piratical fleet of ten or twenty galleys from Andalusia entered Alexandria at the solicitation of a rebellious faction. They spared neither friends nor foes ; they pillaged the city, and it required the forces and the pres- ence of the khalif Al-Mamoon to expel them. They ravaged the islands to the Hellespont. The fertility and riches of Crete attracted them : they invaded it with forty galleys. They entered and pillaged the country ; but as they returned to their vessels, they found them in flames by the orders of their chief, who exhorted them to seize and keep the fertile land. They obeyed from necessity, the island submitted, and for 138 years their depredations harassed the eastern em- pire. A youth had stolen a nun from a cloister in Sicily. He was 827. sentenced to the loss of his tongue. He fled to Africa, and exhorted the Arabs to invade his country. They landed, in number, 700 horse, and 10,000 foot. They were repulsed be- fore the walls of Syracuse, and reduced to great straits, when they received a reinforcement from Spain. The western part of the island was quickly reduced, and Palermo became the Saracenic capital. Fifty years elapsed before Syracuse sub- 878. mitted, after a siege worthy of her old renown. The Gre- cian language and religion were eradicated throughout the island. From the ports of Sicily and Africa the Mohamme- dan fleets issued to ravage and pillage the cities and prov- inces of Italy. While the Arabs were engaged in the conquest of Sicily, 846. one of their fleets entered the Tiber, and the Moslems plun- dered the temples of St. Peter and St. Paul. Fortunately for the Romans, their pope died, and Leo IV., a man of the old Roman spirit, was chosen to succeed. By his care the city was fortified, and an alliance formed with Gaieta, Na- ples, and Salerno. Soon after, a large fleet of Saracens came from Africa, and cast anchor before the Tiber. The allies of 849. the pope soon appeared ; the engagement commenced, and a tempest finally decided it in favor of the Christians. The Saracen fleet was utterly destroyed, and those who escaped to shore were slaughtered, or reduced to slavery. 02 A. D. 162 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART II. CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES OF THE EAST AND WEST. Empire of Charlemagne. 814, Charlemagne was succeeded in his dominions by his son Louis the Debonair, or good-natured. His eldest son, Pepin, had died before him, leaving an illegitimate son, Bernard, who retained the kingdom of Italy, which his father had held. Re- 817. belling against his uncle, he was sentenced to the loss of his eyes, which caused his death. Louis associated his eldest son, Lothaire, in the empire, and conferred Bavaria and Aqui- taine on his two other sons ; but having had a son, Charles, by his second wife, Judith of Bavaria, he was naturally anxious to provide for him also. This could only be done at the ex- pense of Lothaire and his brothers. They rose in rebellion, and deposed their father : their discord caused his restoration. 840. At his death, all his sons were in arms against each other. A bloody battle at Fontenoy, in Auxerre, forced them to come to an agreement, and the empire was, by the treaty of Ver- dun, divided among them. 843. In this partition, Lothaire got Italy, Provence, and the country running along the Rhine, afterwards called Lorraine. Louis had all the German dominions eastward of the territo- ries of Lothaire ; and Charles, surnamed the Bald, had France. Pepin, their nephew, had Aquitaine, which his father had held : of this he was afterwards robbed by his uncle Charles. 855. Lothaire, filled with remorse for his rebellions against his father, retired to a convent. His three sons took arms to di- 859. vide their inheritance. By the treaty of Orbe (in the Vaudois,) Louis got the crown of the Caesars, Italy, and Rhastia ; Lo- thaire II., Burgundy, Alsatia, and Lorraine ; Charles had Provence. 8G8. Lothaire II. dying the victim of a lawless amour, without legitimate issue, his two uncles made a treaty of partition of his dominions, which was finally decided in favor of the king 879. of Germany. Lothaire II. had already divided with his 863. brother, Louis II., the dominions of Charles of Provence, who 875. had died without heirs ; and on the death of Louis II. Rhstia came to the king of Germany ; but his younger brother, the king of France, contrived to make himself master of Italy and the imperial crown. 876. The two brothers soon died. Louis the Stammerer suc- ceeded his father, Charles the Bald ; but followed him to the tomb within half a year after his accession. The legitimacy CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OP THE GREAT EMPIRES. 163 of his children was doubted ; and in a council of Burgundian bishops, held at Geneva, the sovereignty of that country was offered to Boson, who was married to Imogene, daughter of a. u Louis II., and he was crowned king of Burgundy by the 879. archbishop at Lyons. Charles the Fat, the son of Louis of Germany, united Italy 880. to his German dominions ; and on the death of the elder sons of Louis the Stammerer, and the minority of their brother Charles the Simple, he was made king of France, and Boson received his kingdom of him as a fief The empire was now once more under one head ; but Charles becoming deranged, he was deposed, and the unity of the empire of the Franks 888. dissolved for ever. The German dominions of Charles were taken possession of by Arnulf, the illegitimate son of his brother Carloman, a prince deeply imbued with the best spirit of the Carlovingi- ans; but he died, leaving a son of only seven years. Eudes, count of Paris, which he had gallantly defended against the Normans, was chosen king of France ; but on his death it came to the rightful but incapable heir, Charles the Simple. After the death of Boson, two kings reigned in Burgundy ; his son Louis, and Rodolph, son of the powerful Count Con- rad, and that kingdom was divided, never to be reunited. In Italy, Widon, duke of Spoleto, and Berenger, duke of Friuli, contended with each otlier for the restoration of the kingdom of the Lombards, and discord and turbulence agitated the whole country. Such was the internal state of the empire of Charlemagne at the close of the ninth century : externally it was harassed by the Arabs, the Hungarians, and the Northmen. The Hungarians. Beyond the Ural mountains a tribe of Turks, it is thought, had intermixed with the Finns, the original race of Northern Asia and Europe. Pressed on from the East by other tribes set in motion by war or want, they broke up their camps, and advanced towards the West. They forced their way through the Russian tribes, penetrated the passes of Mount Krapak, and spread themselves over Pannonia, their future country. They called and still call themselves Majars : by the Euro- peans they were termed Turks and Hungarians. Their gov- ernment had been hitherto administered by a council of Voi- vodes, or hereditary chiefs ; they now chose a sovereign in the person of Almus, the father of Arpad. The empire of Charlemagne had extended to Transylva- nia. The king of the Moravians, who dwelt in western 164 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. Hungary, refused obedience to Amulf, king of Germany, and even invaded his dominions. Unable to reduce him, K. D. Amulf invited the aid of the Hungarians, and the Moravian 340. prince was speedily humbled. Arnulf being succeeded by his infant son Louis IV., all restraint, which gratitude or fear had laid on the Hungarians, was removed. They rushed into and wasted Bavaria, overthrew the Christians at Augs- burg, swept over Swabia and PVanconia, spread to the Baltic, and laid the city of Bremen in ashes. Durmg a period of more than thirty years Germany paid tribute to these bar- barians. The Hungarians passed the Rhme, and ravaged southern France to the Pyrenees. Italy attracted them : they encamp- ed on the Brenta ; but, dreading the strength of the country, they asked permission to retire. The king of Italy, Beren- ger, proudly refused, and the lives of 20,000 men were the penalty of his rashness. Pavia was soon in flames, and all Italy, to the point of Reggio, was ravaged. The Bulgarians, a Slavonic tribe, had been converted to Christianity, and they formed the north-western barrier of the eastern empire. Their resistance was overcome, and the rapid bands of the Hungarians were soon seen before the gates of Constantino- ple. By arts and presents they were induced to retire. The ravages of the Hungarians extended through a period of nearly half a century (889 — 934). The valor of the Saxon princes, Henry the Fowler and his son Otho the Great, at length delivered Europe from them. The Northmen. Scandinavia had been originally peopled by the Finnic race. In very remote ages the Goths, whose primitive seat was, probably, the great central mountain-range of Asia, had penetrated thither, and expelled the less warlike Finns. We have already seen them recross the Baltic, and eventually establish themselves in Spain and Italy. Everywhere they appear as conquerors. In Scandinavia they were generally divided into small independent states : their land was poor ; they had little agriculture and less trade to occupy them : they loved war, were bold mariners, and early began to com- mit depredations on each other and on strangers. In this period, Gorm the Old in Denmark and Harold Fair- hair in Norway had reduced several of the independent chieftains of these countries, and established their respective monarchies. Several of the high-spirited reguli scorned to own as masters those whom they had regarded as equals ; they embarked in their ships, sought and colonized the dreary CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES. 165 shores of Iceland or the Feroe, Shetland, and Orknc}'^ islands, whence they annually ravag-ed the coasts of their forsLiken country. By these and by the younger sons of tlie Yarls (earh) of the north, piracy was gradually committed on a more extensive scale than hitherto : the coasts of England and France were now richer and more inviting, and annually the fleets of the Northmen spread desolation along them. Tow^ards the time of Charlemagne their depredations on tliese countries had begun. The date of their appearance in England is the year 787, and shortly afterwards they rav- aged the coast of France. During the reign of Louis they were more frequent in their visits. The unsettled state of the country in the reign of Charles the Bald favoring them, they grew more bold, sailed up the navigable rivers, and plundered the interior. In 872 they pillaged x'Vngiers; in 888 they laid siege to Paris, which, but for the efforts of Gosselin, the bishop, and Eudes, the count of that city, would have been their prey. But the number and boldness of their invasions continually increasing, Charles the Simple was finally forced to cede to Rolf, or Rollo, one of their leaders, a. d. the large province since called from them Normandy. This 918. was a wise measure, for Rolf and his subjects embraced the Christian religion, and guarded the kingdom from farther in- vasion. In England, where they were called Danes, they harassed the coasts in a similar manner, and gradually formed perma- nent settlements. Even the great Alfred was obliged to yield to them the kingdoms of Northumbria and East Anglia, and at length they placed monarchs of their nation on the throne of England. But the Northmen also extended their name and their power eastwards. The coasts of the Baltic were among the scenes of their depredations ; and the Russians, a Slavonian tribe, who had subdued the original natives of its eastern shores, admired and feared them. As allies, they employed them in their wars against the tribes of the interior. These Varangians, as they were called, like their Anglo-Saxon 862. brethren, made themselves masters of the people that invited their aid, and Ruric, one of their chiefs, established a dynasty which endured for seven hundred years. The house of Ru- ric, at first depending on the arms of the Varangians for sup- port and safety, new adventurers continually flocked to them, and were rewarded by grants of lands and subjects; but when they felt themselves firmly seated, they found they could dispense with these expensive auxiliaries, and Vladimir I. recommended to them the service of the Greek emperors, 166 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART H. as more profitable. They followed his adviC6, and from that period till the end of the empire, the Varangians were the faithful guards of the throne of the Byzantine Csesars. France. The power and authority of the Carlovingian princes con- tinually decreased. France was now divided among several dukes and counts, who, though acknowledging themselves vassals of the crown, exercised all the rights of independent sovereigns. Louis IV. and Lothaire, the successors of Charles the Simple, though of more energetic character, were unable to restore the royal dignity ; and on the death of Louis V., a feeble youth, though his uncle Charles duke of Lorraine was heir, Hugh Capet, son of Hugh duke of France, Orleans, and Burgundy, and descended from Eudes and Robert the Strong, who had defended Paris from the Northmen, had himself A. D. crowned king at Rheims, and when Charles of Lorraine came 987. in arms to claim his right, he met with defeat and captivity. Thus, after a period of 235 years from the deposition of Chilperic (752) to the coronation of Hugh Capet (987), the Carlovingian, like the Merovingian dynasty, expired by its own feebleness. Would it not appear that great families, like fruit-trees, become with time effete, and incapable of pro- ducing the similitude of those powers to which they owed their original elevation 1 So little reason is there to be proud of a long line of noble ancestry ! Hugh, though king of France, was in reality only master of his own demesnes, and feudal superior of the great vassals of the crown. Even this superiority was not acknowledged south of the Loire, and in his own fiefs of Paris and Orleans, which by his accession were regarded as reunited to the crown, he and his successors were frequently defied and made war on by their refractory barons. He used the pre- caution of getting his son Robert crowned during his own lifetime, a plan which was followed by his two successors, Robert and Henry L Under the reign of Philip L the monarchy was grown sufficiently strong to dispense with this custom. Germany — House of Saxony. On the death of Louis, son of Arnulf, the German branch of the Carlovingians was extinct. Charles the Simple, king of France, was doubtless of that race ; but the present situa- tion of Germany demanded a sovereign of more energetic character. The Germans were divided into five nations, Franks. Swabians, Bavarians, Saxons, Lorrainers, These CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMI»iIlES. 107 nations met to appoint a successor, and the choice of the as- a. n. sembly fell upon Conrad of Franconia, descended through 911. females from Charlemagne. Conrad did not long enjoy his dignity. Feeling the neces- sity there was for the sceptre being grasped by a vigorous hand, he sought not to perpetuate it in his own family ; but when dying, he recommended, instead of his brother, Henry duke of Saxony, also descended on the female side from Charlemagne, to the choice of the electors. Henry, surnamed the Fowler, was son of Otho, who had 91^- reduced Thuringia, and extended his dominion to the Elbe. This able and politic prince was at first obliged to continue the tribute to the Hungarians ; but he surrounded the hitherta open towns and villages with walls and ditches, obliged every tenth man in each district to reside in them, gave them privi- leges, and encouraged industry and arts of every kind : the courts of justice were held in them, and they were the de- positories of a third of the produce of the lands of the district. He established the march of Meissen against the Slaves, and erected bishoprics there for their conversion. Thus prepared, when the years of truce with the Hungarians were expired ; he suffered them to come with arms to demand tribute ; and he rose from his bed of sickness to meet them, and drove 934, them out of his dominions with slaughter. On the death of Henry, the princes and people assembled 936. at Aachin, and elected his son Otho, deservedly styled the Great, It being a principle of the German empire, that an emperor should neither retain a fief nor add one to the domain, Otho bestowed Saxony on Herman, a brave warrior j but he sought to indemnify himself by granting archbishoprics and dukedoms to his own family ; a policy that availed him but little, as. they were frequently in rebellion against him. In the discord that pervaded Italy at this period, Adelaide, widow of Lothaire, son of Hugh of Provence, who had been king of Italy, invoked the aid of Otho against Berenger II., who had seized on the throne. Otho crossed the Alps, married Adelaide, and Berenger did homage to him for his kingdom. 952. Troubles afterwards breaking out in that country, Otho, at the call of Pope John XIL, again descended from the Alps, deposed Berenger, and was crowned by the Lombards. The next year he visited Rome, and was there received and crowned as Charlemagne had been. But the pope, seeing the power of his ally, sought to raise up enemies against him. Otho sent ambassadors to complain, and at last came himself to Rome. The pope fled, and the people swore never to re- 963. ceive a pope without the consent of Otho and his successors. 168 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART IJ Three days after, the emperor in an assembly of bishops and nobles, had John deposed, and Leo VIII. chosen in his place. The party of John v/as, however, still strong- : the Romans rose against the Germans and their friends. Otho came a third time to Rome : an injured husband had slain John : famine forced the Romans to surrender ; and thus originated the right of the emperor to nominate the pope. During the reign of Otho I. the Hungarians, assisted by domestic faction, penetrated to the heart of Flanders. All the forces of Germany and all the aids of superstition were arrayed against this dreadful enemy ; and the neigliborhood ^ J) of Augsburg, which some years before had witnessed their 955. triumph, now beheld the final ruin of the Hungarian might 974. Otho II., son of Otho the Great, married Theophano, step- daughter of the Byzantine emperor, Nicephorus Phocas, who made over to him all the imperial rights and claims on Lower Italy. Otho was an able prince ; but he had many enemies to contend with, and sometimes endured the mortifi- cation of defeat. 983. Otho III., educated by his mother Theophano, was a prince of amiable temper and cultivated mind. He loved to reside in Italy ; but the turbulence of the Romans gave him con- tinued uneasiness and occupation. During his minority they rebelled against him and the pope; but when he came of age he besieged and took the city. He treated it with se- verity, and hung the consul Crescentius, the leader of the popular party. »«)02. Otho dying without issue, his kinsman, Henry, duke of Bavaria, was elected to the vacant dignity. Henry 11. was successful in his foreign wars. He passed less of his time in Italy than his predecessors had done. With him ended the 1024. Saxon line of emperors. Italy. The great vassals had in Italy succeeded in making them- selves independent. Of these the principal were the dukes of Benevento, Tuscany, and Spoleto, the marquises of Ivrea, Susa, and Friuli: the pope ruled the turbulent Romans: Apulia and Calabria were governed by the Catapan of the eastern emperors : the republics of Amalfi and Naples ac- knowledged their supremacy ; and Salerno and Capua were under their own princes. When the Carlovingian princes had lost their power, the dukes of Spoleto and Friuli contended for the kingdom of Italy. Berenger of Friuli governed with the title of king, but amidst continual factions, for thirty-six years. His adver- CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES. 169 saries called in Rudolf II., king of Burgundy. In a battle Berenger defeated him; but in the pursuit, Boniface of Spo- a. d. leto, Rudolf's nephew, fell on him ; and Rudolf turning, Be- 923. renger was defeated, and soon after murdered. Rudolf was now made king of Italy, but did not long enjoy his crown. Hugh, count of Provence, who had driven the grandson of Boson out of the kingdom of Aries, laid claim to Italy ; and, supported by the clergy and the great, he forced Rudolf to 926. resign, and accept a part of the kingdom of Aries in exchange. Hugh reigned over and oppressed the nobles of Italy for six- teen years. Berenger II., of the house of Ivrea, succeeded, . and was nearly as tyrannical ; and, as we have seen, the aid of Otho the Great was invoked against his oppression, and 945. the German monarchs became kings of Italy. The dukes of Spoleto and Tuscany generally directed the election of the popes. Virtue and piety were little considered in the candidates : political motives and female influence de- cided each election. The infamous Theodora and her daugJi- ter Marozia disposed of the cliair of St. Peter at their pleasure : mere boys were chosen : sons succeeded their fathers : scanda- lous vices disgraced the heads of the church; and some suffered shameful deaths. Among the charges against John XII. were several which would disgrace the most licentious layman in the most barbarous age of history. The duchy of Benevento had been greatly diminished by the formation of the states of Salerno and Capua; and at this time the Normans established themselves at Aversa, a town given to them by the duke of Naples. The Saracens possessed Sicily, and had settlements in Calabria. Egbert had united all England under one sceptre ; and, in- 828. ternal warfare being thus checked, the country might have advanced in civilization and the arts of peace ; but the Danes 832. now began to visit the coasts with large fleets, carrying havoc and desolation wherever they appeared. The reigns of his successors are chiefly marked by their struggles with these 871. formidable foes. When Alfred mounted the throne, they were masters of the greater part of England. This monarch, one of the ablest that ever adorned a diadem, spent a great part of his reign in doubtful conflict with them, which ended by the Danes embracing Christianity, and Alfred ceding to them Northumbria and East Anglia. Peace being restored, the wise king turned all his thoughts to the formation of such institutions and regulations as might increase the power, the wealth, and the civilization of his subjects. He established P 170 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. schools, regulated the police, built ships of war, and encour- aged trade and navigation. Three able princes, EdAvard, Athelstan, and Edmund, pursued the victories of Alfred : under them the monarchy became coextensive with the present England ; and Edgar the Peaceable was the most powerful of the Anglo-Saxon kings. The Danes still continued their hostilities. The successors of Edgar were feeble, the great subjects intractable, the Danes in the kingdom numerous : the custom was introduced of buying them off, and then of employing the Normans against them. In the reign of Ethelred II. the savage and fatal mea- sure of murdering the Danes throughout England was adopted. Filled with rage at this base treachery, Sueno, king of Den- mark, invaded and conquered the kingdom. His son Canute (Knut) was king of both Denmark and England, and he is justly placed in the list of great princes. He was succeeded by his .sons Hardicanute and Harold. On the death of the last, the English nation returned to the Anglo-Saxon line, in the person of Edward, surnamed the Confessor, an amiable but feeble prince. An injudicious practice had been introduced of giving the government of large provinces, the former kingdoms, to par- ticular noblemen. Hitherto each shire had been governed by its alderman, and the moderate size of a shire prevented its governor acquiring any very formidable power. But a man who wielded the forces of such a state as Mercia or Wessex, might easily defy his sovereign. Godwin, a man of ability, had gained for himself and his sons the government of seve- ral provinces ; and on the death of Edward, his son Harold, a man of many noble qualities, had himself chosen king by the Witena-gemot, or great council of the nation, to the exclu-; sion of the lawful heir. He was opposed by his own brother Tosti, by the king of Norway, and by a still more formidable rival, William duke of Normandy. The former two he van- quished : in the battle of Hastings he lost to the latter both life and crown, Russia. Russia under her Scandinavian princes became known to Europe. The Russians appeared at Constantinople at first as traders, exchanging the furs, hides, bees'-wax and honey of the North for the productions and manufactures of the em- pire. Their cupidity was excited, and they sought to take by force the wealth of which they got but scanty supplies by trade. Their fleets repeatedly assailed Constantinople, and their armies mvaded the empire and Bulgaria. Nicephorus CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES. 171 fought ill vain against them, but the heroic John Zimisces vindicated the lienor of the empire and the wrongs of Bulga- ria, and the Russian grand-duke Svatoslof and his army, sur- a. p, rounded by the galleys and the legions, was forced to surren- 973. der, and retire on honorable terms. Olga, the mother of Svatoslof, a princess of mind as mas- 955. culine as the Catherines or Elizabeths, had come to Constan- tinople and received baptism. At Kiev and Novogorod she persisted in her new faith. Her grandson Vladimir, at first a 980. zealous votary of the gods of his country, at length embraced the religion of his grandmother, and a marriage with Anna, sister of Theophano, wife of Otho II., confirmed him in his new faith. Olga had sought to improve her country: she made roads, built bridges, and introduced social order. Vladi- mir erected schools, opened new sources of trade, had rela- tions with foreign courts, was active in the introduction of the Christian religion, — was, in fact, the Peter of the tenth century. - . l^aroslof, son of Vladimir, w^as the legislator of Russia. 1015. He caused books to be translated from the Greek. He was the ally of the German emperors against the Hungarians, and his daughter Anna was married to Henry I. of France. Alexius Coramenus, the Byzantine emperor, sent the impe- rial insignia to the grandson of Yaroslof, Vladimir Monoma- chus, and Kiov swore always to choose the Tsar from his house. Constantinople, Theophilus, son of Michael the Stammerer, was a virtuous 829. prince, and an enemy to the images. On his death his widow Theodora, like Irene, during the minority of her son Michael 842. III., finally re-established them. Michael was a weak prince ; but his uncle Caesar Bardas administered the empire with 867. •prudence and ability. Basilius murdered them both, and mounted the throne. His governnient was vigorous and ac- 886. tive. His son Leo followed his maxims. The sceptre passed 911.. to the infant son of Leo, Constantino Porphyrogenitus, under whoso name first his uncle Alexander and then his mother Zee governed. By perjury Romanus Lacopenus obtained the 919. direction of affairs ; but he guided them with ability. Con- stantino, apparently devoted to books and wine, managed to deprive Romanus of his power, and became sole ruler. Ro- 959 manus II. reigned after him with little credit. Nicephorus Phocas distinguished himself in war against the Persians, tlie Sarn.cens of Crete, and the Russians. His succes,sor, .John Zimisces, was tlfc conqueror of the Russian 969. 172 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. X. D. duke Svatoslof. The sons of Romanus II., Basil 11. and Con- 975. stantine VIII., reigned in conjunction, with reputation. Basil completely broke the power of the Bulgarians, and dying after 1025. a reign of fifty years, left the sole dominion to his brother, who left it to his daughter Zoe and her husband, the patrician 1028. Romanus Argyrus, a man of some ability. Romanus was un- fortunate in a battle against the Saracens at Aleppo. The 1034, empress fell in love with a handsome youth. Romanus was murdered, and her favorite raised to the throne under the name of Michael IV. ; but, goaded by remorse, he abandoned the palace to shut himself up in a convent. The empress 1041. then placed his cousin Michael Calaphates on the throne. Finding him disobedient to her will, she dethroned and blinded 1042. him, and then gave the dignity to Constantino Monoma- chus, who had been her first love, who governed with order 1054. and regularity. On his death, Theodora, the sister of Zoe (now dead) seized the reigns of government, and held them 1056. for a short time with no steady hand. With her ended the dynasty of Basil I., which ha^ occupied the throne nearly two centuries. Michael VI., a soldier, was chosen emperor, and gave one among the many examples there are of the unfitness of a man for the supreme station who may have been distinguished in an inferior one. He was dethroned, and Isaac Comnenus 1057. put in his place. Isaac ruled with wisdom, vigor, and justice ; but bodily infirmity made him retire after a short reign. Con- 1059. stantine Ducas, his successor, was just, but no soldier. His 1068. widow married and raised to the throne Romanus Diogenes, a man of noble mind and military talent. He warred against the Seljookian Turks ; but by the treachery of his nobles he fell into the hands of the sultan Alp Arslan, by whom he was honorably treated and set at liberty. On his return he found 1071. treachery, revolt, and murder awaiting him. Michael VII., the son of Ducas, was weak and incapable ; he was the slave of a vicious minister, and he took orders, and attained to dig- 1078. nity in the church. Nicephorus Botoniates was a soldier, but 1081. unfit to be emperor. He gave way to the dynasty of the Comnenians, with whom a new state of things commenced. Decline of the Arabian Empire — Africa. 789. The Abbasside khalifs had never possessed Spain. In the reign of Haroon-er-Rasheed, Edris, a descendant of Fatema, fled from Arabia to the extreme west, and declared his inde- pendence. His son, also named Edris, built the city of Fez, the capital of a state which soon became populous and flour- ishing. CfiAP. iV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES. 173 During the Feign of Edris II. of Fez, Ibrahim, the son of a. d. Aglab, governor of Cairoan, one of the lieutenants of Haroon- 805. er-Rasheed, established an independent dominion in the an- cient territory of Carthage, of which Tunis became the capital. About a century later, Mahadee Obeid Allah, a real or pre- 908. tended descendant of Fatema, founded a state on the coast of Africa, of which the city of Mahadiah, built by him on a pen- insula, running out into the Mediterranean, was the capital. He made war on and defeated both the Aglabites and the "' Edrisites, whose kingdoms lay to the west of his, and added their territories to those he already possessed. Moez-ladirt- Allah, the great-grandson of Mahadee, had 969. wells sunk in the desert, and then marched an army to Egypt, which had ceased to obey the khalifs. He took possession of that country with little opposition, where he founded the city of Cairo (Al Cahira) henceforth its capital. His reign was one of mildness and gentleness. Armies conducted by skilful and victorious generals conquered Syria, and Damascus and Jerusalem were among the cities which obeyed the khalif of Egypt, whose dynasty— the Fatemite — ruled for two centu- ries from the Euphrates to the deserts of Cairoan. Moez, aware of the impossibility of retaining distant prov- 971. inces, separated by sandy deserts from the seat of govern- ment, wisely abandoned all thoughts of seeking to retain his conquests on the north-western coast of Africa. He therefore gave up to Yoossef Belkin, the son of Zeiri, the western con- quests of Mahadee. Zeiri was of a noble Arab family, and had headed a troop of warriors, who were solely devoted to him. His dynasty — the Zeirides — reigned till 1148 over the north-western coast during 177 years. A prophet, named Abdallah, rose among the tribes subject 105G. to the Zeirides. He taught Islam in greater purity. His followers became numerous. Under the command of Aboo Bekr, son of Omar, they took arms to spread the faith, and carried on successtlil wars against the princes of Fez, Tan- giers, and the other states. Yoossef, the successor of Aboo Bekr, founded Morocco at some springs of water, and it be- came during his lifetime the capital of a state reaching to the 10G9, Straits of Gibraltar. Almoravites was the appellation of the followers of Abdallah: they led a pastoral life, and their princes Yoossef and his successors were both powerful and peaceable. Decline of the Arabian Empire — Asia. Thus were Spain, Africa, and Syria lost to the house of Abbas, and at the same time their eastern possessions were rapidly reduced in extent. ' P2 174 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART XL ^. D, Taher, an able general, had essentially served Mamoon in 813. the contest with his brother. He was dismissed in honorable exile to command in the province of Khorassan ; but here he made himself independent, and his descendants, the Taher- ites, to the fourth generation, governed that province with wisdom and justice. 872. The Taherite dynasty was overthrown by the Snffaree, founded by Yacoob ben Leis, the son of a peicterer in Sei&tan (hence the name Suffaree,) v/ho abandoned his trade for that of a robber. An accident gave occasion to his being em- ployed by the prince of Seistan, in whose service he led an army which he turned against his master, whom he sent pris- oner to Bagdad : obtaining in reward the government of that province, he gradually made himself master of Khorassan, and nearly all Persia. The khalif instigated Ismael Samanee, a Turkish chief, to seize on Transoxiana. Amer, the brotlier and successor of Yacoob, marched against him ; but was de- feated, taken, and sent to Bagdad, where, after some years' confinement, he was put to death. Transoxiana, Bulch, Kho- rassan, and Seistan now formed the dominions of the Sama- nians. 892. The Arabian princes of the tribe of Hamadan made tls em- selves masters of, and held for 109 years (892 — 1001) Meso- potamia, with the cities of Mosul and Aleppo. They were extolled by their poets for their beauty and their noble quali- ties. Their history presents the usual series of crimes. 900. The power of the Samanee princes extended over the north of Persia. The south obeyed the Dilemee, so called from their native village Dilem, as they were styled Euyali from one of their ancestors. A fisher of Dilem, Abul-Shujah-al- Buyah, entered the service of the governor of his native prov- ince. Under the conqueror and successor of that governor, Ali Buyah, the son of Shujah, rose to high military command ; and he defeated Yacoot, the governor of Isfahan, and gained thereby great wealth and reputation. Ali pursued and again defeated Yacoot, and made himself master of Fars, Kernian, Khuzistan, and Irak. He advanced to Bagdad, and obliged the khalif to bestow on him tlie government of Fars and Irak, and to make his younger brother Ahmed his vizier ; his sec- ond brother Hussun acted under liimself Ahmed dethroned the khalif, and raised Mothi to his place, over whom he exercised unlimited authority during his life. Ali dying, universally regretted, was succeeded by his brother, Hussun, who left his authority to his son, the able and excel- lent Azed-e-Dowlat, who united in his person llie offices of vizier to the khalif and viceroy of Fars and Irak. CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES. 175 After the death of Azed, one of the brightest characters in oriental history, the power of the Dilemee gradually de- clined. Mahmood of Ghizni stripped them of all their pos- sessions but Fars and Kerman. They retained these and the office of Ameer-ul-Omrah (chief of ihe nobles) conferred on Ali Buyah, which gave them authority over the country round a. d. Bagdad, till that capital was taken by Toghrul-beg-Seljookee. 1053. Causes of the Decline of the Power of the Khalifs, An obvious cause of the dissolution of the empire of the Arabs was its extent, the consequent distance of several of the provinces from the seat of empire, and. the absolute , power with which the lieutenants of a despot must be in- vested. Hence the assumption of independence was easy, the means of punishing slight; no principle of loyalty bind- ing the subject to the sovereign. Thus Spain was lost at once, Africa speedily afterwards. But in the case of the Abbassides there were somi3 particular causes, like their predecessors, their title was bad. The descendants of the son-in-law and earliest disciple of the prophet were naturally regarded as having a better claim to the kiialifdt than those of any other branch of the family. The rights of All's family were still, therefore, openly or secretly maintained by a numerous party. We have seen how easily Edris, and afterwards Mahadee, founded empires. The Fatemite khalifs of the latter house always affected to regard themselves as the rig'htful successors of the prophet. These khalifs were, it is said, at the head of a secret society, whose object was the overthrow of the khalifat of Bagdad ; and its missionaries continually pervaded the dominions of the house of Abbas, maliing converts to the claims of Ali. The various sectaries who aimed at private aggrandizement frequently put forward these claims, and thereby attracted followers. The Ismailites were a sect founded expressly on this principle, and out of them arose the society of the As- sassins, one of the most dreadful scourges of the" East. Yet the house of Abbas might, perhaps, have retained the empire of Asia, were it not that, like the contemporary Car- lovingians, the Abbassides gradually degenerated, and fell into weakness and incapacity, and at the same time formed a praetorian guard. Motassem, the eighth khalif of this family, with whom its glory expired, perceiving how the valor and 841. virtues of the Arabs had decayed, adopted the plan of forming a body-guard from the martial hordes of the Turks who dwelt beyond the Jihon. Tiieir youths, tiiken in war or purchased as slaves, were trained to arms, and instructed in the prin- 176 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. ciples of Islam. Motassem collected 50,000 of them around his throne at Bagdad. Their tumultuous conduct incensed the citizens, and he and they retired to Samara, a city twelve leagues from Bagdad, on the Tigris. Motawakkel, the son A. D. of Motassem, was a cruel tyrant : he favored and relied solely S61- on his Turkish guards, and they murdered him at the insti- gation of his son Mostanser, whose remorse for his crime abridged his life. The guards had now felt their own power : their numbers were kept up by regular recruiting in Turkis- 863. tan : they forced Mosteyoo, uncle of Mostanser, to whom tliey gave the throne, to surrender to them the right, not only of nominating their own commander, but the emir-ul- omra of the empire. They treated the commander of the faithful with every indignity and insult ; and these unhappy princes were by them beaten with clubs, dragged by the feet, and exposed almost naked to the burning rays of the sun. 907. Mohtadi Billah made a bold effort to curb them. He seized Moones, their commander, one of his ablest generals, and when they assailed the palace, flung his head out to them. They, however, burst in, and the unhappy khalif expired be- neath their feet. His brother and successor Moktader, to rid himself of them, placed them, as his best troops, on the different frontiers, and thereby hastened their becoming in- dependent. 868. A Turkish governor of Egypt, named Tooloon, had' some time before made himself independent. He had, it is said, found a large treasure, and thereon raised his power. His son and successor Aluned was the father of the poor, but in- exorable in the punishment of crime, and 18,000 persons were executed during his reign. The commander of the faithful, Motedad, married Cotr-en-neda {Dewdrop) the daugh- ter of Kherneruyah, son of Ahmed, and on her road to Bag- dad, she found each evening a tent splendid, and furnished as the palace of her father, prepared for her reception. Ha- roon, the grandson of Ahmed, fell in defence of his kingdom, °05. and with him ended the dynasty of the Tooloonides. Egypt was reunited to the dominions of the khalif Mohtadi Billah. But twenty-nine years afler wards another Turk, Akhsheed, 934. separated it anew, and it never again obeyed the khalifs of Bagdad. The Gasnevides. 997. Sebuktajee, a slave of a minister of the Samanians, by valor and prudence obtained the government of the city and district of Gasna or Ghizni. His son Mahmood gradually extended his power from the Caspian to the Indus, and the CilAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES. 177 khalif honored him with the title of Sultan^ The power of Mahraood increased with eastern rapidity. India attracted his cupidity : since the days of Seleucus Nicator she had not been penetrated to any extent by a foreign conqueror : she abounded in treasure ; her people were un warlike : Mahmood and his Moslems poured down on her from her northern fron- tier : he reached the Ganges ; resistance was ineffectual ; all submitted. His religious zeal was displayed in the destruc- tion of the idols of India, and an incredible treasure rewarded liis holy warfare. Twelve times did the Gasnevide monarch march to the pillage of this rich and feeble country. Spain. Family dissensions and the revolt of governors diminished the power of the dynasty founded by Abd-er-rahman, and the Christians gradually extended their possessions from the mountains to the plain. j^, o. After a contest of two hundred years a Christian kingdom 914. was founded under Ordono, of which Loon was the capital. The laws of the Goths were re-established ; and this was the commencement of the heroic age of Spain, when she put forth every manly virtue, and fought with religious zeal, patriotic feeling, and knightly honor. A county had been formed at Burgos by Fernando Gon- 933. Eale.«. On the failure of his posterity it was formed into the kingdom of Castile in favor of Fernando, son of Sanchez, 1033. king of Navarre. This last kingdom had been formed by the descendants of the valiant Gascon, count Acnor, who had (831) crossed the Pyrenees to conquer lands from the infidels. They had also made themselves masters of the fruitful plains of Catalonia. At the time when the empire of the klialifs of Cordova was falling to pieces, almost the entire of the Christian states were united under Sanchez of Navarre. But he again sepa- rated them, giving only Navarre to his eldest son, leaving Castile to Fernando, who had acquired Leon by marriage, and forming in the mountains about the little stream of the Aragon, the kingdom so denominated for his natural son Ra- mirez; a kingdom which, by wise laws and able rulers, eclips'cii^Vall in the Peninsula. Bernhard, of the family of the dukes of Aquitaine, whom Charlemagne had made count of Barcelona, became, in a 864. great measure, independent : his son Winfred became com- pletely so. Count Raymond Berenger obtained by marriage 1137. the kingdom of Aragon. All these sovereigns pressed on the Mohammedan emirs, 178 OUTLINES OP HISTORY PART II A D. who were less united. Tlie latter, unable to Avithstand, 1086. called over Yoossef-ben-Takhfin the Almoravide, who had just founded the empire of Morocco, He came, repulsed the Christians ; and all Spain, south of the mountains of Castile, was united under his dominion. CHAP. V. INCREASE OF THE PAPAL POWER Italy. — The Normans. After the Normans had embraced Christianity, they be- came distinguished for their devotion according- to the fashion of the times. Of this, pilgrimage formed a principal part; and the variety and the dangers of it were pleasing to the valiant Normans. On a visit of a number of them to the cav- 1016. ern of Mount Garganus, in Apulia, they were accosted by a citizen of Bari, who held out large hopes if they would assist in expelling the Greeks from Italy. They consented, and, the following year, a large body passed the Alps in small par- ties, and united in Apulia. They were unsuccessful against the Greek troops ; but they kept together, and were employed by the neighboring princes in their quarrels. The duke of 1029. Naples built for them the town of Aversa. Numbers of every nation flocked to their standard. Count Rainulf was their commander. 1038. The Saracens had now held Sicily for two centuries. They were fallen into disunion, had thrown off their allegiance to the king of Tunis : each petty chief aimed at independence. The court of Byzantium was always anxious to recover the island : the present opportunity seemed favorable. Two brothers of the Saracens being at enmity, one applied for the aid of the Christians. The Grecian governor of Italy was directed to engage the Normans, and five hundred of their knights were enrolled. On landing in Sicily, the Saracens were found united ; but nothing could resist Norman valor, and thirteen cities and a great part of the island were re- duced to the obedience of the emperor. In the divip-^i'. of the spoil the Normans were unjustly treated, and on their return. lO'lO. to Italy they invaded Apulia, to indemnify themselves. Their whole forces were 700 horse and 500 foot; the imperial troops are stated at 60,000 ; yet, in the course of three years, the empire retained only the towns of Bari, Otranto, Brundu- 1043. sium, and Tarentum. The Normans divided their conquests CHAP. V. INCREASE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 179 into twelve districts, over each of which was a count, one of wlioni, under the title of count of Apulia, presided in their councils, held in the town of Melfi. The first count of Apulia was William of the Iron Arm, equally distinguished in the virtues of war and peace. The rapacity and injustice of the Normans made them hated. The court of Byzantium sought to deliver Italy from them, by inducing them to take a settlement in Asia, on the frontiers of Persia ; but the wily Normans saw through and rejected the imperial munificence. The Byzantine agent Argyrus thus foiled, determined on force, and a league was formed between the pope Leo IX, and the emperors of the a. d. East and West, against them. The pope travelled to Ger- 1049. many to seek aid. Argyrus caused a number of the Normans to be assassmated. On the return of the pope, with a small band of German auxiliaries, a force considerable m number was collected. The Normans were deserted by all; they could only muster 3000 horse ; they w^ere reduced to great straits for want of provisions, were dispirited by famine and superstition, and offered to submit. The alternative of death or exile was given by the pope : — they resolved to die as sol- diers, engaged the enemy, defeated tliem, and took the pope prisoner at Civitella. The warriors knelt and implored his forgiveness; the well-meaning pontiff lamented his error: by 1053, his right, derived from the grant of Constantino, he bestowed on them their present and future conquests in Apulia and Calabria, as a fief of the holy see, which relation the kingdom of Naples has ever since retained. Tancred de Hauteville, a valvassor of Normandy, had twelve sons; and his patrimony was small: ten of them, at various times, crossed the Alps, and joined the Normans in Apulia. Robert, surnamed Guiscard, (Wizard !) the fowth of them, soon became distinguished. He commanded a di- vision at Civitella, and gained there the prize of valor. His three elder brothers, William of the Iron Arm, Drogo, and Humphry, had successively attained to the rank of count of Apulia. On the death of the last named, leaving his sons minors, their claims were postponed to those of Robert, and he was chosen count of Apulia. The pope Nicholas conferred on him and his posterity the title of duke of Apulia; but he 106a waited till the next campaign had achieved the conquest of - Reggio and Cosenza, and then he called on his victorious troops to confirm what the pope had bestowed. The soldiers joyfully hailed him duke, and he hencefortli entitled himself, '' By the grace of God and St. Peter duke of Apulia, Cala- bria, and hereafler of Sicily." But many years elapsed before 180 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. he was master of all these dominions. The Normans were few ; the counts were not attached to him, and often conspired against him ; the sons of Humphry asserted their claims, and plotted against him ; the Greeks and Lombards defended the towns on the sea-coast with skill and courage, and the Nor- mans were unused to sieges. Twenty years were spent in giving his dominions the extent of the present kingdom of Naples. A. D. The conquest of Sicily was achieved in the reign of Ro- 1060. bert Guiscard. Roger, the last of the twelve brothers, having arrived in Apulia, Robert admired, then envied his noble qualities. The Greeks had abandoned Sicily, and its con- quest was proposed to Roger. With sixty followers, he crossed the strait, and drove the Saracens to the gates of Messina. The spoils acquired attracted others to his standard ; his brother aided ; small bodies of Normans overthrew large 1090. armies of the Moslems ; and at the end of thirty years Roger, with the title of Great Count, was master of the island. His government was liberal and judicious beyond the age. The Moslems were protected in their persons, religion, and prop- erty. The ambition of Robert aimed at conquest in the Greek empire. His daughter had been betrothed to the son of the emperor Michdel; but the youth had died, and his father been deposed. Robert aifected to be the avenger of his friend : a pseudo-Michael appeared at Salerno, and was ac- knowledged by the wily duke and the able Gregory VII. An army was collected during two years, and assembled at Otranto. Robert landed near Vallona, at the head of 30,000 men, of whom the. kernel were 1300 Norman knights. Siege was laid to Durazzo, which was vigorously defended. The Norman fleet suffered from a dreadful storm ; it was defeated by that of Venice, and a reinforcement was thrown into Du- razzo. The able emperor Alexius Comnenus advanced at the head of a large army ; the English, who had left their country, now enslaved by the Normans, increased the number of the brave Verangians ; with them were joined some com- panies of Latins or Western Europeans ; and the rebels who had fled from Robert, and a body of Turkish horse, obeyed the commands of the Grecian emperor. Despair added to the courage of the Normans; the emperor injudiciously gave bat- tle; the troops of Robert at first yielded; the Varangians, who occupied the van, imprudently advanced too far, and ex- posing their flanks to the lances of the Norman knights, they were slaughtered. The Turks fled, and Alexius now saw CftAP. V. INCREASE OP THE PAPAL POWER. 181 ' the battle was lost. On the valor of his own subjects he a. d. placed no reliance. 1081. Durazzo was taken by treachery. Robert advanced through 1082. Epirus into Thessaly ; but his army was reduced to a third. The cities of Apulia were in revolt. Henry king of Germany was advancing against him. He passed over to Apulia, leav- ing the command of the army to the gallant Bohemond, his son by his first wife. Bohemond besieged Larissa. Alexius collected anotlier army ; various indecisive engagements took place ; the counts betrayed and deserted Bohemond ; his camp was pillaged, and he was forced to evacuate the country, and return to his father. Meanwhile Henry had entered Rome, and created an anti-pope. Gregory was besieged in the Vatican : he invoked the aid of his Norman vassal. Robert 1084. displayed the holy banner ; 6000 horse and 80,000 foot marched beneath it to Rome. Henry retired, and Gregory was lib- erated. Thus Robert, in the space of three years, had the glory of making the emperors of the East and the West fly before him, and of delivering the greatest of the popes from captivity. Robert prepared again to attack the eastern empire. Alex- 1084. ius had collected a fleet to oppose him ; the Venetians joined their vessels to those of the empire. The Norman troops were, however, landed in safety in Epirus, and then Robert, with twenty galleys, sought the allied navy. Three battles were fought off" Corfu : in the first two the Normans were repulsed ; in the third their victory was complete. Winter came on. In the spring Robert renewed his operations, in- tending to turn his arms against Greece ; but an epidemic disease seized him in Cefalonia, and he died in his tent in the 1085. 70th year of his age. The army dispersed and retired. Ro- bert was succeeded by his second son ; Roger Bohemond being regarded as illegitimate, as Ids father and mother had been within the proliibited degrees of kindred : his claims, however, disturbed the nation till the crusades drew him oiF to Asia. Italy — The Popes. The pretensions of the popes during this period advanced with rapid strides. In their contests with the emperors of the house of Franconia they had to rely on the aid of a strong party in Germany, of the great countess Matilda in the north of Italy, and of their Norman vassals in the south. Extent of the papal dominion, and emancipation from the superiority of the emperors, were the great objects in view : the darings Q 182 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART II, temper and lofty genius of Gregory VII. almost assured the victory. Leo IX. and Stephen IX. had adorned the chair by their birth and virtues. In the pontificate of Nicholas II. it was established in a synod that the popes were to be chosen by the cardinal bishops (those whose sees were near Rome), and approved of by the cardinal priests and deacons (ministers of the parish churches at Rome) and the people, and then pre- sented for confirmation to tlie emperor. Hildebrand, arch- deacon of Rome, was the author of this plan, the object of whiclf was gradually to free the papacy from imperial con- trol. On the death of Nicholas he had Alexander II. chosen and consecrated without waiting for the imperial sanction, and on the death of Alexander he was himself raised to the pontificate under the title of Gregory VII., yet he refused to be consecrated till he had obtained the emperor's consent. The emperor was Henry IV., a dissolute, arbitrary prince. The Saxons were in rebellion against him, and the princes in general disaffected, Gregory commenced his attack by excommunicating some of his ministers for simony : he then published a decree against lay investitures, or the investing of spiritual persons with the ensigns of their rank by laymen. The ring and crosier were, it was said, the emblems of a power which monarchs could not bestow ; and though the estates of the church might be temporal, yet, by their insepa- rable union with the spiritual office, they might be regarded as partaking of its sanctity. The pope, after long treating with the disaffected party in Germany, saw he might advance a little, and he summoned Henry to appear at Rome. Henry was enraged : he assem- bled at Worms a number of bishops and other vassals, and had a decree passed that Gregory should not be obeyed as pope. Gregory, when he heard this, summoned a council at the Lateran, excommunicated Henry, deprived him of the Ivingdoms of Italy and Germany, absolved his subjects from their allegiance, and commanded them not to obey him. Gregory acted advisedly in this unheard-of stretch of power. Henry's subjects rejoiced at being told that wliat was their inclination was also their duty : conspiracies ripened into re- bellion ; the bishops were terrified at the sentence of excom- munication ; and Henry found himself alone. He adopted the resolution of going to Italy, and casting himself at the feet of the pontiff. In the midst of a severe winter he crossed the Alps, and travelled to the seat of the countess Matilda, at Canossa, near Reggio. Here, with naked feet, in the woollen ghirt worn by penitents, he stood in the outer court CHAP. V. INCREASE OP THE f APAL POWER. 183 ' for three days, exposed to the piercing- Cold. On the fourth, Gregory admitted and gave him absolution ; but ordered him to appear at a certain time, to know whether he should be restored to his kingdom* By this pusillanimous step Henfy had disgusted his friends. He saw his imprudence, broke off the negotiation, and took to his arms : his friends rallied about him : he was victorious in Germany and Italy; and he drove Gregory to die in exile at Salerno. Urban II. and Pascal II. carried on the contest with him : they excited his children to rebellion, but gained nothing by the unnatural contest; for Henry V., who had rebelled for the popes against his father, when he ascended his throne, clung as obstinately to the right of investiture as he had done. Being on good terms with his vassals, it would not have been safe to try with him. the measures which had been adopted against his father; and after a contest of fifteen years, the matter was settled by a compromise between him a. d. and pope Calixtus II. The emperor renounced the right of 1122. investing bishops with the ring and crosier, and recognized the liberty of elections; but the election was to take place in the presence of hi-m or his officer, and he was to confer the temporalities by the sceptre. A similar contest had been carried on and was terminated in the same manner between Pascal il. and Henry I. of England. The popes had a plausible pretext for thus seeking to free spiritual offices from lay influence. The grossest simony had been practised, and the church, as far as was possible in that age of gross superstition, thereby deprived of its sanctity. They had not the same pretext for their next measure, the injunction of celibacy. Mankind have always attached a mysterious effect to this virtue. We find it in religious honor in Peru and in Rome. The oriental doctrines early introduced a reverence for it into the church. It gradually was extolled and enjoined ; but human nature was too strong for it, and marriage was generally practised among the clergy. Leo IX. set vigorously about enforcing it : his successors followed ap his measures : the laity, as might be expected, took part against the married priests, who were the most virtuous o^ the order ; but the abuse,5as it was termed, could not be remov- ed without tolerating greater evils. It is plain what a pow- erful engine this was calculated to make the clergy in the hands of a pope, by detaching them from all the ties of social life, and leaving them no attachment but to their order and its head. Yet we should err if we supposed all the popes to have been profound calculators or unprincipled graspers at power. Many of theni were mm of eminent virtue, and few 184 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. of them saw clearly the ultimate effect of their projects. The growth of the papacy was like that of a plant, the necessary effect of predisposing causes ; and, in the state of the human mind in the middle ages, its progress was as natural as that of any phenomenon m the physical world. The arms employed by the popes to effect their purpose were excommunication and interdict. By the former an in- dividual, no matter what his rank may have been, was cut off from society ; it was sinful to hold any intercourse with him, and temporal disadvantages were annexed to the sen- tence. But this extended only to one person. Interdict visited the crime of one, usually a sovereign, on all in any way connected with him. When a state was laid under an interdict, the churches were closed, the dead unburied, the bells silent, no sacraments admimstered but baptism and ex- treme unction. The operation of this on the minds of a su- perstitious people, who attached such mysterious efficacy to masses and sacraments, may easily be conceived ; and few monarchs had courage to dare this last effort of pontifical vengeance. With such arms, and at the head of such an army, the popes seemed almost secure of universal empire ; and we shall soon behold their power at its very climax, but yet on the point of declension, from causes that were in operation against it. Italy — Lombard Cities. The principal cities in the north of Italy had, under the Lombard and French kings, been subject, with their districts, to counts, and these again to dukes. The Saxon emperors separated from them the greater part of the territory, and the authority of the count was usually confined to the town : the bishop often obtained the government. The feudal law of Italy was not so definite as that of France ; there was frequent war between the vavassors and their superior lords ; the cities were strong and populous ; bisliops were elective and not hereditary, and less bold and energetic - than lay princes. From all these causes the cities gradually increased in strength and power, made war on each other, obtained charters from the emperors — became, in fact, perfectly inde- pendent. As the possessions of the rural nobility had been originally part of their territory, they reclaimed them, reduced the castles of the nobles, and compelled them to reside in the towns. Here the nobles aimed at obtaining the municipal offices, and the government was at this period chiefly in their liands. The policy of the citizens was liberal : they encour- CHAP. V. INCREASE OP THE PAPAL POWER. 185 aged settlement among them. Their mutual and bitter wars and animosities were the great blemish they presented. Germany — House of Franconia. On the death of Henry II. the house of Saxony became a. d. extinct Conrad, surnamed the Salic, a nobleman of Fran- 1024. conia, was chosen to succeed. This prince endeavored to increase the power of his family by bestowing several duchies on his relatives. In his reign Burgundy was annexed to the empire. His son, Henry III., trod in his steps : he disposed, 1039. at his will, of duchies, controlled the papal power, and may be regarded as the most powerful and absolute of the German emperors. Henry IV., his son, was left a minor : his mother 1056. Agnes administered the government : the nobles thought the opportunity gx^od for recovering their power ; the archbishop of Mentz carried away the young king, and governed in his name: the education of Henry was neglected, and he grew up dissolute and addicted to low company, but brave and good- natured. Tlie Saxons rebelled: the quarrel about investitures broke out between the pope and the emperor. Henry was excommunicated and deposed by Gregory VII., and Rodolf duke of Swabia was raised to the throne. Henry defended his rights with vigor: Rodolf was slain in battle. The pope excited Henry's son to rebellion against him ; and at the end of thirty years of continued war, in which he had fought sixty battles, the unhappy emperor sunk in death, and his body lay for years unburied, as he had died excomnmnicated. 1106. Henry V., a rebel to his father, at the instigation of the holy see, was as tenacious as any of his predecessors of the right of investiture. After a long contest the matter was, as we have seen, settled by compromise between him and the pope. 1125. With Henry V. ended the house of Franconia, France. Robert, son of Hugh Capet, neglected his father's projects 997. for extending the royal power. His successor, Henry L, at- tempted to recover Normandy during the minority of Wil- 1031. liam, afterwards the Conqueror, but without success. Philip I. took advantage of the crusades to enlarg-e the limits of the 1060. royal power ; yet so narrow were these limits, that at the 1108. accession of Louis VI., the Fat, it was almost confined to the cities of Paris, Orleans, Bourges, and their districts ; and it cost the king no little trouble to reduce the lords of Mont Chery and other places near Paris. In the reign of this monarch properly began the wars between France and Eng- land, which lasted three centuries and a half; Louis taking Q2 186 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 11. the part of William, son of Robert duke of Normandy, against ikenry I. of England, who had usurped that duchy. England. A. D. After the battle of Hastings, William's claim to the crown 1066. was admitted, the inutility of opposition being apparent. He was crowned at Westminster, and took the usual coronation oath of the Anglo-Saxon monarchs. His reign was at first moderate ; only, as it was necessary to gratify the rapacity of his Norman followers, the estates of those who fought against him at Hastings were unjustly confiscated as those of rebels. But these were halcyon days. In tlie following year he returned to Normandy: liis Normans, whom he left in England, oppressed and insulted the people in the most 1067. opprobrious manner. . The English rebelled. William, who, when he left the kingdom, probably knew what would take place, returned, crushed the incipient insurrection, confiscated estates, and bestowed them on his follov/ers. The following year another rebellion, produced by the same cause, had the 1068. same result ; and William, if he ever had any regard for his English subjects, now manifested nothing towards them but hatred and aversion. Many of the English nobles fled from their country to Scotland, to Constantinople, and elsewhere ; all places of trust were in the hands of the Normans, and gradually they were becoming possessed of all the lands. Aided by the Danes and Scots, the people rose once more in arms ; but the vigor and policy of the king proved too pow- erful for them. He now increased his rigor ; he laid waste the country between the Humber and the Tees, to curb the Northumbrians, and 100,000 people are said to have perished by this odious policy. Having now seized almost the whole of the land of England, he introduced all the rigors of tlie feudal law; he divided the kingdom into 00,000 knights' fees, which he chiefly bestowed on his Normans, to hold im- mediately of himself A large portion of them were formed into 700 baronies, for the principal of liis Norjnan lords, and such of the English as retained their lands found themselves subjected to the feudal burdens. Besides these baronies, 1422 manors constituted the royal demesne, the rent of wliicli was the chief revenue of the crown. All the dignities of the church were bestowed upon the Normans ; an attempt was even made to abolish the English language, w^hich in part unfortunately succeeded, and hence arose the mingled dialect we now speak. Great as was the suffering caused by the Norman monarchs and their barons, it is to the tyranny of these princes that CHAP. V. INCREASE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 187 England is in a great measure indebted for her having pre- > - ceded the other nations in the establishment of popular liberty and constitutional monarchy. For while elsewhere the no- bles could defy the king and oppress the people, here they were obliged to call the people to their aid against the enor- mous power of the crown. Hence arose the dignity and in- fluence of the commons of England. William left three sons, Robert, William, and Henry. To a. d. the first he left Normandy ; to the second, England. William 1087. 11. was an oppressive, tyrannical monarch. His brother Robert at first contested the crown of England with him, but was forced to desist from his claims. Robert was a brave, generous prince ; he was inflamed with the general mania of the crusades, and he mortgaged Normandy to William for 10,000 marks, to equip him for the expedition. William earl of Poitiers and duke of Guienne made a similar agreement with him ; but as he was preparing a fleet and army to go to take possession of these provinces, he was accidentally shot by an arrow, while hunting in the New Forest, for the form- ation of which his father had laid waste the greater part 1100. of Hampshire. Henry on the death of his brother hastened to Winchester to secure the royal treasure, and he married Matilda, niece of Edgar Atheling, the last of the Anglo-Saxon royal family. On his j-eturn from the East, Robert claimed the kingdom ; but Henry was too strong for him ; and in consequence of the indolence and remissness of Robert, Henry soon afterwards made himself master of Normandy, and took his brother and confined him for life in the castle of Cardiff. Henry had a long contest with the popes about the right of investiture, and the matter was compromised as in Germany. This king had the misfortune to lose his only son. His daughter Ma- tilda was married to the emperor Henry V. ; and Henry dying without issue, she was again married to Geoffrey son of Fulk, count of Anjou, by whom she had a son. Henry left Matilda 1135. heiress of all his dominions. Stephen count of Blois was grandson of the conqueror, by his daughter Adela. Henry I. had greatly favored and en- riched him and his brother Henry, whom he made bishop of Winchester. On the death of Henry, Stephen hastened to England, secured the royal treasure, and was crowned. The rights of Matilda were upheld by her natural brother, Robert of Gloucester, and several barons. Nearly twenty years elapsed in civil war between the two parties ; the power of the crown was greatly diminished ; the great barons were rapidly attaining to independence ; the papal power was en- 188 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. tART 11. croaching ; and all the evils of j-elaxed government were felt. A compromise was at last made between Stephen and Henry, son of Matilda, to whom she had made over her rights, that A. D. Stephen should reign during his life, and Henry succeed. 1154. Stephen did not long enjoy his reign. Spain. In Spain the Christian states continued gradually to gain on the Mohammedan territories. Alfonso VI, of Castile and 1085. Leon had recovered from the Moslems Toledo, the anciert Gothic capital. Alfonso I. of Aragon pushed his conquests to 1118. the Ebro, and made hhnself master of Saragossa, which he now made the capital of his dominions. Constantinople. 1081. We have seen Alexius Comnenus valiantly defending his dominions against the Normans, With equal wisdom and good fortune he maintained himself against the Russians who assailed the empire in Europe, and the Seljookian Turks who pressed on it in the East. He also knew how to derive advan- tage from the passage over into Asia of the formidable mul- titudes of the crusaders. 1118. John, the son and successor of Alexius, was also a prince of valor, ability, and magnanimity, and while he reigned he 1143. bravely defended all the frontiers of the empire. His son Manuel partook not of the noble qualities of his family, but he transmitted the empire unimpaired to his son. The Seljookians. The Turks had from the most remote ages led a pastoral life in the plains beyond the Oxus and Jaxartes, whence they continually made inroads into the empire of Persia, In the decline of the powers of the khalifs, they encroached more and more, and pastured their herds south of these rivers. They were encouraged by their countrymen, who were domi- nant at the court of the khalifs ; and Mahmood of Ghizni placed several of their tribes in Khorassan. On his death, these Turks made inroads into Persia, and ravaged to the 4038. Tigris. Massood, his successor, collected an army and gave them battle on the plains of Zendecan. The Ghiznivide was defeated and driven out of the greater part of his dominions. The Turks now proceeded to elect a king. The decision was committed to the lot of arrows ; and Toghrul Beg, the son of Michael, the son of Seljook, gained the prize, Togh- rul, having made himself master of Khorassan, advanced into Irak, subdued it, and then took Bagdad, where he was, by CHAP. V. INCREASE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 189 the feeble khalif, appointed vicegerent of the vicar of the proph- ^ p. et, and lord over all Mohammedans, The conquest of Ader- 1055. ~bijan (Media) brought the Seljookians into contact with the Romans, who had gradually recovered their former possessions as far as the eastern frontier of Armenia, and their ambassa- dors appeared at Constantinople, to demand tribute and obedi- ence. The Turkish cavalry ravaged the country to the, city of Erzeroom, and massacred 130,000 Christians ; but Toghrul was not able to make any lasting impression. Toghrul and his subjects were zealous in the faith of Islam, and he entertained the lj.ig-hest reverence for the 'successors of the prophet. He restored to his dominion Bagdad and its district; and the khalif enjoyed a degree of- ease and inde- pendence to which he had been long a stranger. Yet it was with reluctance that the khalif Cayem bestowed his daughter 10G3. on the Turkman shepherd, though monarch of Asia. Toghrul was succeeded by his nephew. Alp Arslan {Val- 1065. iant Lion). This monarch invaded the Roman empire : the 1068. conquest of x\rmenia was rapid ; the Georgians of Caucasus offered a braver though as unavailing a resistance. The Turks penetrated to Phrygia : Romanus Diogenes, the val- iant husband of the empress Eudocia, marched against them. In tliree campaigns he drove them beyond the Euphrates; in 1071. a fourth, he attempted the recovery of Armenia. But fortune here deserted the Roman emperor ; treachery or cowardice caused the overthrow of his army ; after long fighting with desperate valor, he was forced to surrender on the field of battle, and was led captive into the presence of Alp Arslan, whose magnanimity and generosity on this occasion may al- most vie with that of the Black Prince to the king of France. Romanus, after the kindest treatment, was set at liberty, on condition of a large ransom and an annual tribute. Alp Ars- lan now turned his arms against his countrymen beyond the Oxus : the dagger of a Carismian, maddened by the severity of the sentence threatened him, pierced the heart of the Sel- 1072. jookian in the midst of his guards, and the remains of Alp Arslan were entombed at Merv, Malek Shah, the son of Alp Arslan, was, in noble qualities and extent of dominion, the greatest prince of his age. The Turkman tribes acknowledged his supremacy ; and from the confines of China to those of Constantinople and Egypt his mandates were obeyed. Learning was encouraged and the calendar reformed in the reign of Malek ; but the praise must be shared with his illustrious vizier, the great and good Nizam-ul-mulk, who directed the government under him and his father, Alp Arslan. At the jigc of ninety-three years', 190 otrrLiNES op histort?. part ii. Nizam was disgraced, and he perished by the dag-ger of one of the followers of his schoolfellow, Hassan Sabah, who had just now organized the society of the Assassins. Malek did not long survive his minister, and the brief remainder of his A. D. reign was inglorious. He died suddenly at Bagdad, and his 1092. death was imputed to Hassan. On the death of Malek, his empire, after the usual course of civil war among his sons, was divided, but finally reunited in the person of Sanjar, the survivor of them, and the last great monarch of the Seljookians of Persia. Sanjar ruled from Cashgar to Antioch, from the Caspian to the Straits of Babelmandeb. During the time of these princes, the power of the Sel- jookians was established in Room, i. e. Lesser Asia. Kootel- mish, grandson of Seljook, had attempted to form an inde- pendent dominion in that country, but was defeated and slain. His son, Mansoor, paid tribute to Alp Arslan and Malek Shah, till, by the command of the latter, he also was put to death. His younger brother, Suleiman, would have had a similar fate but for the interference of Nizam-ul-mulk, on whose re- presentations he was not only granted his life, but given an 1074. army, with commission to make conquest in Room. Suleiman crossed the Euphrates : soon almost the whole of Lesser Asia obeyed the Turkish sultan, who fixed hie seat of empire at Nice in Bithynia : hie aid was implored by rival candidates for the purple ; and even Alexius Comnenus sought his sup. port against the Normans. By treachery Antioch fell into the hands of Suleiman, Constantinople was menaced, and Alexius sent through Europe supplicatory epistles. Jerusalem was in the hands of the Turks. Jerusalem had long been the resort of pious or zealous Christians. In the times of the early khalifs and the first Abbassides their access had never been impeded ; and Ha- roon-er-Rasheed had even presented Charlemagne with the keys of the holy sepulchre, perhaps of the city. The pil- grimages were advantageous to the subjects of the khalifs, as they brought money and trade to their coasts. When the Fatemites of Egypt got possession of Palestine, they were far from throwing any unpediments in the way of western devotion, and it was only for a time interrupted by the mad 1009. freaks of the khalif Hakem. Sat Atsiz, one of the lieu- tenants of Malek Shah, marched into Syria, took Damascus, and reduced the province : he advanced into Egypt, and the Fatemite khalif was about to fly into Nubia before the troops, who maintained the cause of the Abbasside, when the people of Cairo and the negro guards valiantly repelled the Turks CHAP. V. INCREASE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 191 from the frontiers. But Tootush, brother of Malek Shah, a. d, now appeared, and Syria and Palestine obeyed for twenty V676. years the house of Seljook ; and the rude Turks treated with the utmost insolence and cruelty the Christian pilgrims, who now flocked to the Holy Land in greater numbers than ever. First Crusade. The pilgrims filled Europe with complaints of the profana- .096, tion of the sepulchre. The letters of Alexius portrayed the power of the Turks, and the danger of the Greek empire : Gregory VII. had already meditated the union of Christen- dom against Islam ; Europe was full of ardent enthusiastic warriors. Peter the Hermit proposed to Urban H., the then pope, a project of leading armies into Asia, and conquering the Holy Land. A council was summoned at Placentia ; it was numerously attended by both clergy and laity, and war was resolved on. Another council was held at Clermont in Auvergne, and, on hearing the exhortations of the pope and the hermit, the whole assembly cried, It is the will of God! and each champion devoted himself to the holy war by affix- ing a cross to his right shoulder. The kingdom of heaven was promised to all who fell in the war against the infidels : the acquisition of earthly kingdoms in Asia, of whose wealth and fertility they had heard such marvels, was to crown success. Piety, curiosity, every feel- ing was roused: all sins were forgiven to the crossed ; hos- tilities were prohibited against the states of those who warred for Christ. Robert duke of Normandy, Hugh, brother of the king of France, Raymond count of Toulouse, Godfrey of Bouillon, and his brothers Eustace and Baldwin, Stephen count of Blois, were the chief leaders, and an immense num- ber of all ranks and ages crowded to the sacred standard. Three hundred thousand, under the guidance of Peter the Hermit, Walter the Moneyless, and others, straggled on be- fore. In their passage through Hungary and Bulgaria, part 'were massacred by tha inhabitants, whom they pillaged ; and the rest, on entering Asia, were slaughtered by the Turks. The great army followed, and poured into Constantinople, to the dismay of Alexius, who lost no time in passing them over into Asia. When assembled before the walls of Nice, 1097. they numbered 600,000 combatants. They besieged and took that city, defeating the Seljookian Kilij Arslan m two great battles, and took every town which lay in their way to An- tioch, of which city Bohemond, the son of Robert Guiscard, wae made prince. Baldwin, at the call of its Christian in- 192 - OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART Ih habitants, passed the Euphrates, and assumed the sovereignty of Edessa. Afdel the vizier of the Fatemite khalif Mostaali, had re- covered Jerusalem from the Turks : the crusaders were in- formed that they might now perform their vows, if they came unarmed, and that pilgruns would henceforth meet the good treatment they had hitherto experienced. The offer was re- jected : the champions of the cross appeared before the holy city. Thirty-nine days they besieged it : on the 15th of July it was stormed : no age or sex was spared : 70,000 is said to have been the number of the victims. Various circumstances had so reduced the Cliristian host, that of the vast multitude that crossed the Bosphorus but 1500 horse and 20,000 foot marched from Tortosa to Jerusalem. Godfrey of Bouillon v/as chosen king by his fellow-war- riors ; but he refused to bear that title in the kingdom of the Son of David : the land was partitioned into iiefs, and a code of feudal regulations, called the Assizes of Jerusalem, drawn up for the administration of it. Two religious military orders were afterwards formed for its farther defence. Before the time of the crusade there had been a society for attending . sick pilgrims in the hospital of St. John. Hugo des Payens, of the house of Champagne, Godfrey of St. Adomer, and seven other knights formed themselves into an order named Templars, from their house near the site of the temple of Solomon. Their vow^s before the patriarch were to defend pilgrims against robbers, obedience, celibacy, and" poverty. St. Bernard, at the desire of the king of France and other lords and princes, drew up a rule for them. In battle they vowed to be the first in action, the last in retreat : this ex- ample was followed by the brethren of the Hospital ; and a new order, the Teutonic, was soon added to these military and religious associations. The Christian empire at this pe- riod extended from the borders of Armenia to those of Egypt ; but it was feeble, and encompassed by powerful enemies. Its population, though brave, was few ; and its reliance, an un- stable one, was on the West. CHAP. VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 193 CHAP. VI. THE PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT Italy — The Popes. From the time of Gregory VII. his successors faithfully- adhered to his principle of extending the power of the holy see. After him no pope dreamed of waiting for the imperial confirmation. It was even hinted that the emperor should^ in right, be confirmed by the pope. In their intercourse with the German emperors, the pope and his legate used language respecting the imperial dignity which seemed to imply that it was a fief of the holy see ; and Adrian, when granting Ire- land to Henry IL, spoke of all islands as being the property of St. Peter. This last and other monarchs made a resolute opposition to the exorbitant claims of the pontiffs ; but the latter knew so well how to take advantag-e of circumstances, and had such a well-disciplined army in the clergy, and so powerful a ma- chine to work with in the gross superstition of the laity, that they were seldom foiled in any of their measures. The pon- tiff who carried his pretensions the highest, and exercised them most effectually, was Innocent III., who, of noble birth, lofty and powerful mind, and in the prime of life, ascended a. d, the papal throne in 1194. Availing himself of the embar- 1194. rassments of the Saxon emperors of Germany, of the ambition and interestedness of Philip Augustus of France, and of the vices and cowardice of the infamous John, and the feebleness and folly of his son Henry III. of England, Innocent raised the papal power to a height scarcely dreamed of by his predeces- sors. He acquired independent sovereignty in Italy, estab- lished the control over temporal princes, and supremacy over the church. The popes, in consequence of real or pretended grants from Constantino, Pepin and his son, and Louis, had always laid claim to extensive dominions ; but in reality they possessed hardly any. In Rome the imperial prefect and the turbulent spirit of the people held them in check, and all the little places about Rome were as independent as in the days of Romulus. The countess Matilda, the great friend of Gregory VII., had left the reversion of her large possessions to the holy see. These were the imperial fiefs of Tuscany, Mantua, and Modena, of which she had certainly no right to dispose : the remainder, the duchy of Spoleto, and the march of Anco- R 194 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART J I na, she held under a somewhat different title, and might ap< pear to have more power over. However, the emperors dis- A. D. regarded the claims of the pontiffs, and disposed of Spoleto 1177. and Ancona as parts of the empire. Frederick Barbarossa promised to restore them after fifteen years ; but Henry V^ granted them away as imperial fiefs. At his death, a di puted succession engaging the Germans in civil war, Ital ,. was left to herself; and Innocent now put forth the claims of the holy see, and produced a true or false will of Henry VI. in its favor. The cities of these states had, like those of Lom- bardy, become independent, but were harassed by German partisans settled in Italy by the emperors, and they gladly put themselves under the protection of the holy see. Thus Spoleto and Ancona submitted, and, a few years afterwards, Innocent, not feeling himself strong enough to hold them, prudently granted Ancona in fief to the marquis of Este. At home he forced the prefect to swear allegiance to him, and not to the emperor, and curbed as far as he was able the spirit of the people. Thus the holy see became a temporal power. The superiority of the pontifical over the royal power was strongly put forth by Innocent : the kingdoms of the earth were Christ's, and consequently, by the logic of those days, his vicar's; and the little, mean, selfish policy of the princes prompted them, on every occasion where they had any object to attain, to submit to and forward the pretensions of their common enemy. The submission of Henry II. cannot be blamed : he struggled nobly, and had all the world against him. The baseness of John, in surrendering his kingdom, and receiving it back as a fief, is unparalleled. Peter II. of Aragon, it is true, did the same ; but with certainly a better motive — to secure it against ambitious neighbors. The pope was, in fact, become suzerain, censor, and conservator of the peace of Europe : his weapons were interdict and excommu- nication. These were effectual, and, when the interests of the holy see were not involved, were often beneficially em- ployed. Philip Augustus, for example, when in the zenith of his power, having divorced his wife, the Danish princess Ingeborg, under the pretext of consanguinity, and espoused another. Innocent, who, when his own interest was not con- cerned, loved social order, directed him to take back his queen. Philip demurred ; France was laid under interdict, and Philip submitted. The papal thunder rolled over every kingdom in Europe, enjoining peace, and punishing public and private offences. National churches had originally possessed a good deal of independence and the clergy had shown every disposition to CHAP. VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 195 exercise a despotic power over the laity ; but the popes were bent to draw all power to themselves. It had been their policy to support bishops against their metropolitans, and thereby break the power of the latter ; they now prohibited any bishop to exercise his functions till he had received con- firmation from the holy see. Gregory forced bishops to ap- pear in person at Rome, to receive the pallium, and all pre- lates were harassed with citations thither. Legates were sta- tioned in every kingdom, as the representatives of the popes, with extensive powers. The popes levied taxes on the clergy to an enormous extent : they assumed the right of appointing to bishoprics, and all other benefices. The chief bases on which the papal dominion rested were, after the gross superstition of the people, 1. The canon law, originating in the false decretals of Isidore, which had been brought forth, towards the end of the eighth century, with the view of lowering the authority of metropolitans, by allow- ing of appeals to Rome, and forbidding national councils to be held without its consent. These decretals purported to be the decrees of the early bishops of Rome. About 1140, Gra- tian, a monk, published his Deere turn, in which the decretals of Isidore, and the rescripts of pontiffs and decrees of coun- cils, were arranged under heads, like the Pandects : various additions were made to this; the civil law was followed; the papal power extolled, and, in the professors of this law, a powerful body of partisans raised for the papacy. — 2. The es- tablishments of the mendicant orders, who by a greater strict- ness of manners, a professedly purer system of faith, and an abuse of the secular clergy, gained the esteem of the laity, always caught by these qualities. Devoted to the pontiffs, they were supported in return by them, and exempted from episcopal authority : for as the secular clergy became disaf- fected on account of the manner in which they were pillaged by the papacy, the latter was glad to raise up rivals to them. The great schoolmen, such as Thomas Aquinas, were of these orders, and they elevated the papal authority to the utmost. Two other causes increased the papal influence with princes and the great : — 3. Dispensations of marriage. The ascetic maxims, which had so early gotten into the church, extended the prohibition of marriage to the seventh degree of consan- guinity ; this was afterwards extended to affinity, and then to spiritual affinity, or gossipship. The royal and great families were so connected with one another, that it was difficult for them to marry without the canonical limits ; and hence all the divorces we read of under this pretext, but caused by pas- eion or ambition. Innocent III. laid it down as a maxim, that 196 OUTLINES OV HISTORY. PART II. he was empowered to dispense with the law : money soon flowed rapidly into the papal exchequer, and princes looked up to their spiritual father, who could allow them to gratify their passions, — 4. The dispensing- power which legitimated bastards, and released men from their most solemn oaths and engagements, on the ground that oaths extorted by violence, or injurious to the church, are not binding. Such was the papal power when at its zenith ; a power, no doubt, not unfrequently exerted for beneficial purposes, but, from its very nature, prejudicial to the best interests of man. The world never will witness such another dominion ; for it is hardly within the limits of possibility that such a state of society as the middle ages presented can return. Italy — the Lombard Cities. The cities of Lombardy all acknowledged the superiority of the emperor. When Frederic Barbarossa ascended the throne, he claimed all the power possessed by Augustus. The independence of the Lombard cities appeared to him rebellion, and he resolved to chastise it. The injustice of Milan, which, in 1111, had taken and razed Lodi, gave him a pretext. Two citizens of the latter implored him to avenge its wrongs. He entered Italy, held a diet at Roncaglia, where complaints poured in against the Milanese. He took the field against them and their allies ; but the nature of a feudal army, and the ill terms he was on with pope Adrian IV., prevented his effecting much. He assembled another army, to which al- most every city of Lombardy was forced to send its militia, and Milan was reduced to surrender. A. D. Frederic held another diet at Roncaglia, in which the cities 1158. were forbidden to make war on each other, to coin money, or levy tolls ; and an imperial magistrate, called Podesta, was to administer justice with the consuls, as their own chief magis- trates were styled. The Milanese were more severely treated than any others : they saw the utter destruction of their liber- ties was intended : they took arms ; but were only aided by Crema, their Platsea. But Crema was taken and razed, and 1162. soon after Milan experienced the same fate. The emperor now proceeded to establish the most absolute power all over Lombardy. In vain the citizens implored ; they only got vague hopes of redress. But the principle of liberty was strong, and the Lombard league was secretly 1167. formed. Frederic, in his attempt to make an anti-pope, was besieging Rome ; the flower of his army fell victims to the malaria of the autumn, and he was obliged to recross the Alps. After som.e years of indecisive warfare, he invaded the Mi- CHAP. VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 107 lanese, and the confederates gave him battle and a signal de- a. d. feat at Legnano* A truce was made through the mediation H^e. of Venice, for six years ; and at length, by the peace of Con- stance, the cities were reinstated in their independence, re- serving the imperial superiority. 1183. The Lombard cities were afterwards split into the Guelf and Ghibilin factions, which we shall presently explain : they generally sided with the popes against the emperors, and were continually engaged in wars with one another. Italy — Naples and Sicily. The family of Roger count of Sicily had gotten the regal 1166. dignity, and also the Italian dominions of the family of Rob- ert Guiscard. William the Good was the last of these princes. Constantia, his aunt, was married to the emperor Henry VI. ; but on the death of William, the nobles, who dreaded the 1186. power of Henry, raised Tancred, William's natural cousin, to the throne ; and, on his death, his infant son William III. 1189. The emperor hastened over to Sicily ; defeated his opponents ; 1194. took the young king prisoner ; led him to Germany, and there treated him with the greatest barbarity. On the birth of Frederic II., Constantia governed Sicily in his name, and on her death, the pope. Innocent III., becoming guardian to the 1200. young monarch, endeavored to derive from that circumstance all the advantages he could for the holy see. Germany — Swahian Line. With Henry V. ended the male line of the Franconian 1125. emperors. Frederic duke of Swabia, grandson, by his mother, of Henry IV., had inherited their estates. But the princes were anxious to make the crown really elective, and many, besides, entertained a strong dislike to the late emperor. The crown was, therefore, bestowed, with some opposition, on Lo- thaire duke of Saxony. As chief of a nation, the bitter ene- mies of the house of Franconia, Lothaire did every thing in his power to depress Frederic and Conrad of Hohenstauffen, the heads of the Swabian family, and to secure the empire for his son-in-law, Henry the Proud, duke of Bavaria, de- scended from Welf, fourth son of Azzo, marquis of Este, by Cunegonde, heiress of the Welfs of Altorf in Swabia. Henry also possessed, through his mother, Luneburg, the patrimony of the Billungs, the ancient dukes of Saxony ; and by his marriage with the only child of Lothaire he got Hanover and Brunswick, the patrimony of Henry the Fowler, and Lothaire added the duchy of Saxony. But the extent of his possessions was prejudicial to Henry. 1138. R2 198 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PAET 11. On the death of Lothaire, Conrad of Swabia was hastily- elected by the partisans of his house, and the Saxon party was forced to submit, Conrad, taking advantage of the jeal- ousy caused by the large possessions of Henry, pretended that two duchies could not legally be held by one person, and summoned him to surrender one of them. Henry refusing, the diet pronounced both to be forfeited, and Henry was speedily stripped of all he possessed. The factions of the Guelfs and Ghibilins date from this period : the former, from Welf, de- note the partisans of the house of Saxony ; the latter, from Wibelung a town in Franconia, whence the emperors of that line sprang whom the house of Swabia was held to re- present. As the latter possessed the imperial dignity when . these names were transmitted to Italy, the Ghibilins there' were the partisans of the emperor, the Guelfs those of the , A. D. pope and his other opponents. 1152. Conrad HI., when dying, though he had a son, recom- mended to the electors his nephew, Frederic duke of Swabia, • surnamed Barbarossa (Red-beard,) and he was elected em- peror. Frederic was an able, politic prince. His contests with the cities of Lombardy we have already noticed, in which the triumph of liberty over power was glorious and il59. complete. At Rome the opposite factions had elected two rival popes, Victor IV. and Alexander III. Frederic sided v/ith the former ; the kings of France and England, and the Lombard cities, with the latter. After the battle of Legnano the emperor was forced to acknowledge Alexander, by kissing liis feet, and holding his stirrup as he mounted his mule — new inventions of the servants of the servants of Christ. The emperor Conrad had restored Saxony to Henry the Lion, son of Henry the Proud. Bavaria had been bestowed on the margraf of Austria, Henry's guardians having re- S156. nounced it in his name. He now applied to Frederic, who was his first cousin, and whose life he had saved at Rome, to have it restored. Frederic complied with his desire, and thej lived for several years in harmony. But when the emperor was leadmg into Lombardy the army which was defeated at Legnano, Henry, prompted by jealousy or ambition, refused to assist. On4iis return, Frederic summoned him to answer charges in a diet. Henry refused compliance, and his pos- 1181. sessions were confiscated and shared among his enemies. He now implored the emperor's mercy, who advised him to re- tire to England till the present possessors could be prevailed on to relinquish them. The duke passed three years at the court of his father-in-law Henry II., and at length his allodial estates of Saxony were restored to him. Fifty years after, . CHAP. VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 199 Ihese were made imperial fiefs, and became the two duchies of Brunswick, whose dukes are the representatives of Henry the Lion, and inherit the name of Guelf. Saladin having- now taken Jerusalem, a crusade was preach- a. d. ed. Frederic took the cross, and passed over to Asia with a 1188. large army ; but, bathing on a hot day in a cold mountain- stream, like Alexander in the Cydnus, in the same vicinity, he caught a disorder, and died in the 69th year of his age. Henry VI., the Severe, succeeded his father. The power 1190. of Henry was so great in Germany, that, but for the vigorous opposition of the Saxons, he would have made the empire hereditary in his family. His short reign was chiefly occu- pied in making himself master of Naples and Sicily, where he exercised the most atrocious cruelty against his opposers. Frederic 11. was but two years old at the death of his father. 1198. Though Henry had had him elected, a strong party of the princes, backed by Innocent III., who wished to reduce the house of Swabia, showed a disposition to retract. Philip duke of Swabia, brother to the late emperor, unable to secure the succession of his nephew, got himself chosen by one party ; the other chose Otho, son of Henry the Lion. A civil war ensued, in which Philip was victorious, and drove Otho out of Germany ; but being shortly afterwards assassinated by the count palatine of Bavaria, Otho IV. returned, married the daughter of Philip, and was crowned at Rome, resign- ing the inheritance of the countess Matilda to the holy see. But Otho, feeling himself strong, revoked his concessions, and the pope supported Frederic II., now grown up, against him. Otho was generally deserted, except by his Saxons, and Frederic was crowTied at Aix-la-Chapelle. Otho's death 1215. j'n 1218 left the young emperor at peace in Germany. But it was in Italy that Frederic passed the greater part of his reign. On his accession to the imperial dignity he had taken the cross. The pope was continually urging him to perform his vow ; but, engaged in improving and benefiting his Neapolitan and Sicilian dominions, he neglected to comply. Honorius III. threatened to excommunicate him, but Frederic 1226. despised the threat. He and the pope were afterwards recon- ciled. Gregory IX. having declared him incapable of the im- perial dignity for his disobedience, Frederic ravaged the patrimony of the church. He was then actually excommuni- 1228. «ated, and the usual course of bloodshed, poisoning, war, and assassination took place in Italy. At lengtli Frederic resolved to perform his vow ; but the pope prohibited his departure till he should be absolved. Frederic went in contempt of the church, and was more successful than any of the preceding ^^00 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. MET It. A. D. crusaders, for Jerusalem and its territory were ceded to him 123o'. by the sultan of Egypt. The remainder of Frederic's reign was a continued struggle with the holy see. All Italy was split into the Guelf and Ghibilin factions ; the pope preached a crusade against Frede- ric, and excited the Lombard cities to war, and his son Henry to rebellion against him ; but the emperor was everywhere successful. The succeedmg pontiffs, Celestme IV. and Inno- 1245. cent IV., followed up the measures of Gregory. On the death of Henry, who had been king of the Romans, the German bishops, by the direction of Innocent, who had deposed Frede- ric, elected Henry landgraf of Thuringia, and, on his death, 1248. William count of Holland. Fortune was now adverse to Frederic; he was defeated before Parma, and, retiring to 1250. Naples to raise an army, he there died of a fever, in the 57th year of his age. Frederic was a prince of great endowments, and a zealous patron of learning. Conrad, son of Frederic, and his rival WilUam, did not survive many years. Richard duke of Cornwall and Alfonso X. of Castile, were chosen by opposite parties of the electors ; but for twenty-three years there may be said to have been an interregnum, and the empire without a recognized head. 1255. During this period, the cities on the Rhine entered into a league for mutual defence in their commerce. A few years 1241. before, the northern cities had entered into the celebrated Hanseatic league for a similar purpose. France. Louis VII., the Young, contrary to the advice of his wise minister the abbe Suger, undertook a crusade with the em- 1147. peror Conrad III. Both were equally unsuccessful. Eleanor, queen of Louis, had accompanied him ; but having had an 1149. amour with a young Turk, Louis, on his return, divorced her, and resigned the rich territories he had obtained with her. Henry II. of England then married Eleanor. 1180. Philip II. Augustus, son of Louis VII., was the ablest monarch France had seen since Charlemagne. He raised the crown of France from the state of degradation it had been in, by reuniting to it several of the great fiefs. He took from the count of Flanders the Vermandois and Artois. When John of England had murdered his nephew Arthur, Philip summoned him as his vassal to be tried by his peers, and, on his not appearing, he seized on Normandy, Maine, and Anjou, which were never restored to the English crown. Philip had accompanied Richard I. to the Holy Land, and his behavior to that prince does his memory little credit CHAP. VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 201 Louis VIII. had, during- the lifetime of his father, been in- a. d. vited over to England against king John by the barons, who 1223 offered him the crown. He met in that expedition but slender success. On coming to the throne, he attempted the con- quest of the remaining dominions of the English kings in France, made himself master of Poitou, and was on the point of subjecting Guienne, when he was drawn away to Langue- doc, where the pope had preached a crusade against the Al- 1208. bigeois, and Raymond count of Toulouse who protected them. More than the usual quantity of blood had been shed and de- vastation committed by the pope's warriors, led on by the fanatic hypocrite Simon de Montfort. This chief was now dead; but the pope was unrelenting, and Louis VIII. was called on to take the cross against the son of Raymond, and he gave up the conquest of Guienne for this purpose. But he died after a short though successful war. Louis IX., St. Louis, was only twelve years old on the 1226. death of his father ; but his mother, Blanche of Castile, gov- erned during his minority with wisdom and vigor. The great vassals made several attempts to recover their former inde- pendence ; but the address of the regent always triumphed over them. When Louis came of age, he fully displayed his estimable qualities. Such were the moderation and justice of this good king, that, so far from encroaching on his neigh- bors, he even made restitution of what they had been unjustly deprived of He restored to Henry III. a great part of what he had lost in France, and he always sought to mediate be- tween that prince and his barons. Louis administered justice personally to all who sought it; and he drew up his Establish- ments, the first code compiled by th^ Capetian family. The sole blemishes of this excellent prince's character were, his too great deference for his mother, and his superstition, which 1248. last led him to undertake tw^o crusades, in one of which he lost his army, and was made prisoner ; in the other he ex- pired on the torrid coast of Africa. Yet France has surely 1270. reason to be proud of St. Louis ; for a monarch his equal has rarely, if ever, adorned any throne. England — the Plantagenets. Henry II., son of Matilda, daughter of Henry I., and of 1157. Geoffrey Plantagenet, count of Anjou, inherited by his mother, England, Normandy, and the feudal superiority over Britany; by his father, Anjou, Touraine, and Maine ; and, by marrying Eleanor, heiress of Guienne and Poitou, whom Louis VII. had divorced, he became master of these extensive provinces. He was young, brave, talented, amiable, and ambitious, a 202 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. tART 11. formidable rival to the king of France. Henry gave the feudal system a blow, by substituting-, in the beginning of his reign, the practice of levying a scutage, or tax on each knight's fee, instead of personal service, and with that money A. D. paying a mercenary army. He sought to check the encroach- 1164. ments of the papacy, by procuring the Constitutions of Cla- rendon to be passed, by which the permission of the king was made requisite to the taking effect of any papal act, and for appeals to Rome ; and the clergy were to be tried for their crimes in the lay courts. The king's chief opponent was Thomas a Becket, whom he had made archbishop of Canter- 1170. bury, and the contest ended in the murder of that violent but sincere prelate. Henry invaded and partly conquered Ire- land. The latter part of his reign was spent in opposing the rebellions of his own sons, actuated by the king of France. Henry II. was perhaps the ablest king that ever sat on the throne of England. 1189. Richard I. succeeded, as his brother Henry had died before his father. The reign of this monarch was almost wholly oc- cupied by his crusade to Palestine with Philip of France. In the East he performed prodigies of valor ; but, on his return, was seized and imprisoned by the duke of Austria. He was ransomed by his subjects, but soon after died of a wound he received before the petty fortress of Chains. Military skill and valor formed the most conspicuous part of Richard's char- acter. Hence he was named Coeur-de-Lion, Lion-hearted. 1199. John was nominated successor by his brother Richard ; but Geoffrey, duke of Britany, an elder brother, had left a son named Arthur. As John was detested, the claims of Arthur were put forward ; and the barons of Anjou, Maine, and Tou- raine* declared for him, backed by the king of France. John afterwards, happening to take his nephew, stabbed him with his own hand. For this crime the king of France, as supe- rior lord, summoned him to answer before his peers. On his not appearing, his fiefs were declared forfeited, and Philip en- tered and took possession of Normandy, Anjou, Maine, and Touraine, which were thus united for ever to the French crown. John now quarrelled with the pope, the intrepid Inno- cent III. : his dominions were laid under interdict, himself de- posed, and his kingdom bestowed on the king of France. The 1213. pusillanimous John submitted to hold his dominions as fiefs of the holy see, to do homage for them, and to pay 1000 marks of silver annual tribute. His subjects, despising and detesting him, seized this occasion for restraining the enor- mous prerogative of the crown. At the instigation of the primate Langton, the barons took arms, and forced the king CHAP. VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 203 to sign, at Runnyinead, the Magna Charta, the great charter a. u of liberty of all ranks of the people. Some time after, having 1215 taken into pay a body of mercenary troops, John attempted to annul the great charter. The barons in their despair offered the crown to Louis, son of the king of France, who invaded England ; but John dying, the barons returned to their alle- giance, and crowned his infant son Henry. The cha^racter of John may be summed up in the words of the Roman satirist, Monstrum a vitits nulla virtute redemptum. Henry III. being but nine years old, the government was 1216. administered by the earl of Pembroke, mareschal of England, and a new charter of liberties was granted, which conciliated all orders. As Henry grew up, the defects of his character became apparent: he was weak, inactive, and, imprudently attached to his relations and to foreigners, he heaped riches and estates upon them with the most lavish prodigality : for a share of the spoil, he concurred in the monstrous exactions of the court of Ilome, which attained their height in this reign. The foolish king, being offered by the artful pontiff the crown of Naples for his second son, lavished great sums of money in that wild project. The barons were incensed at all his acts of folly and injustice ; they forced him to renew in the most solemn manner the great charter ; but hardly had 1255. the weak monarch sworn to observe it, when he was induced by his favorite to transgress it as before. Simon de Mont- fort, earl of Leicester, himself a foreigner and son of the general in the crusade against the Albigeois, called on the barons to take arms in defence of their rights thus trampled on by the king's foreign favorites. The barons appeared in arms in the next parliament : the king was terrified, and sub- mitted ; the Provisions of Oxford were made, and unlimited 1258 power was given to twenty-four barons, with Leicester at their head, to reform the state. This body, like the decem- virate of old, sought to make itself the absolute terror of king and people : the tide of popularity turned against it ; the pope released Henry and his subjects from their oaths to 1262. it, and the king resumed his authority. Leicester, who had left the kingdom, returned : his party was still strong, espe- cially in London and the towns ; he formed an alliance with the Welsh, and had recourse to arms. At the battle of Lewes 1264. the king was taken prisoner, and his son, prince Edward, giving himself in exchange for him, Leicester detained both. Edward afterwards escaped, and defeated and slew Leicester at the battle of Evesham, and put an end to the civil war. 1265. The poor old king passed the rest of his days in peace. His reign was longer than that of any English king except 204 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. A. D. George III. In this reign the house of commons dates its 1265. origin ; Leicester, in the 49th year of the king, previously to • a parliament being held in London, having issued writs to the sheriffs, directing them to return two knights from each shire, and two burgesses from each city or town. Ireland. Ireland was originally peopled by a portion of the Keltic race, who we may suppose passed over to it from Britain. It had always been divided into little independent states. The manners of the people were like those of all others in the same condition of society. Everlasting petty warfare, murder, abduction, and similar acts of violence were exhibited. It had been converted pretty early to Christianity by Patricius, a native of Britain. Like its neighbors, it was exposed to the ravages of the Northmen, who, invincible there as every- where else, had conquered a part of the country. Henry II. had cast an eye of cupidity upon it ; and the pope Adrian IV., as the Irish church was not remarkable for obedience, readily, in the plenitude of his power, conferred the dominion of it on the English monarch. An occasion for interposing soon occurred. Dermot M'Murrough, king of Leinster, carried off the wife of O'Ruarc of Breffney (Leitrim and Sligo) : the latter applied to Roderic O'Connor, king of Connaught, the chief of the five provincial monarchs, and Dermot was de- feated and chased out of his dominions by their united forces. He repaired to Henry II., then in Guienne, and sought his aid, offering to acknowledge him.self his vassal. Henry, being then engaged, gave him letters, empowering any of his English subjects who pleased to engage in the enterprise. Richard earl of Pembroke, surnamed Stronghow, and some other adventurers, embarked in the enterprise ; and though their numbers were small, such was the superiority of their arms and their skill, that they overpowered all resistance. Henry himself appeared in Ireland, and received the homiage 1172. of its princes. But the conquest was merely nominal ; and ages elapsed before Ireland was really subdued. It is, perhaps, not unworthy of observation, that the kmg of England in- vaded Ireland in defence of adultery, and by virtue of a re- cognition of the power of the pope to dispose of kingdoms. So little scrupulous about means is ambition, so heedless of remote consequences ! Spain. 1212. Malik-en-Nasir Mohammed, the Almohade prince of Mo- rocco, crossed the sea with 100,000 warriors, and he was CHAl'. VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 205 joined by the Moors of Andalusia. On the Navas de Tolosa, near Ubeda, his army wa^ engaged (July 16) by the united force of the Christian states of the peninsula, under Alfonso VIII. of Castile ; and the victory of that day established the a d. superiority of the Christians for ever. St. Ferdinand, grandson 1236. of Alfonso, united Castile and Leon. He conquered Baeza 1248. and Cordova, and, eighteen months afterwards, Seville, in which last he fixed his residence. Cadiz was soon obliged to 1250. submit ; and the Moors were now confined to Granada. Jayme I. of Aragon, called the Conqueror, drove the Moors 1229. out of the Balearic Isles, and conquered the kingdoms of Valencia and Murcia, the latter of which he gave, according 1238. to agreement, to the king of Castile. Portngal. Henry, a knight of the house of Burgundy, having distin- guished himself at the siege of Toledo, Alfonso gave him his 1085 daughter in marriage, and the government of the conquests of the kings of Leon in the mountains to the west. Henry settled himself at Guimaraens, whence he continually harassed the Moors, and conquered the city of Porto. His son, count Alfonso, emulated his military fame, and conquered Alemtejo. 1112. The Moorish princes collected all their forces on the plains 1139. of Ourique. The troops of Alfonso were greatly inferior in number ; but a hermit comforted him by a vision, and the faith of the leader was communicated to his soldiers. The Moors were totally routed, and Alfonso was saluted king of Portugal by his army on the field of battle. Sancho, son of Alfonso, was valiant as his father. With the aid of some cru- saders from Germany and Holland, who put into the Tagus, he took Silvas, tiie capital of Algarve; but the Emir-el-Moo- menim, or prince of the Almohades, forced him to resign it. The Almohades. A man, named Mohammed, being driven out of Morocco, 1119. where he professed to preach Islam in greater purity, having, with the aid of his disciple, Abd-el-Moomen, a young man at Tremessen, persuaded the Berbers that he was himself the Mehedee, or doctor of the law, who, he preached, was to be sent to purify the faith, assumed the title of Mehedee, and at the head of his followers waged war successfully against Ali, the Almoravide king of Morocco. His followers were called Almohades. He fortified the city of Tinmal, on an elevated and inaccessible position on Mount Atlas, and made it the seat of his dominion. They were called to the defence of the Zeirides, against Roger of Sicily, and relieved them. Abd- 206 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. el-Moomen now laid siege to Morocco ; the Almoravides de- fended it with their usual spirit ; 100,000 lives were consumed in the siege ; the Almohades took tne city, and extended their A. D. dominion from the deserts of Barca to the Atlantic. They 1147. passed over to Spain, and conquered the Almoravide domin- ions in that country. Persia. During the decline of the house of Seljook, a number of petty princes, governors of provinces, and others, made themselves independent. The title of these princes was Atta-beg ;* they ruled over Aderbijan, Fars, and Laristan, and each line of Atta- begs presents the uniform character of eastern rule. These dynasties, with that of the Assassins, established about the end of the eleventh century by Hassan Sabah, were gradually over- thrown, some by the sultan of Khowaresm, and all finally ter- minated by Hulagoo, the grandson of Chingis Khan. Saladin. A vizier of the feeble Fatemite khalifs called on Noor-ed- deen Mohammed, attabeg of Moussel, who had conquered Syria, to come to the support of the Fatemite empire. The 1171. Turks sent by him under Sheerkoo conquered Egypt. The army made Saleh-ed-deen (Saladin,) nephew of Sheerkoo, governor, on the death of his uncle, and Noor-ed-deen con- firmed him in his office. Saladin, who was a Koord by nation, placed himself on the throne of the last Fatemite khalif, and founded his dynasty, called the Ayubides. He conquered Syria from the family of N(X>r-ed-deen. He also reduced the Happy Arabia, and took Tripoli and Tunis from the Almo- hades. He now turned his arms against Jerusalem. He en- tered the country at the north ; and as he was besieging Ti- berias, Guy de Lusignan, with all the forces of his kingdom, came against him. Saladin surprised them, cut them to pieces, and took Guy prisoner. All the cities submitted at his approach ; and on the fourteenth day of the siege Jerusalem 1188. opened her gates. The conqueror acted with the greatest mildness ; the Christians were left in possession of the holy sepulchre ; free egress was given to all. The news filled Europe with consternation : a crusade was preached, and a large army collected, which sailed for the Holy Land, under Richard I. and Philip Augustus. But the genius and resources of Saladin, and the discord of the con- * Atta-beg signifies father -prince, and was the title assumed by those, who, like the mayors of the palace, under the Merovingian line in France* governed under the name of some legitimate prince. CHAP. Vi. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 207 federates, prevented the accomplishment of its ohjects. Sala- a. d. din died in his 57th year at Damascus. The virtues of this 1198- prince have been alike celebrated in Europe and Asia. The Mamelukes. Malek-el-Adel, the brother of Saladin, dispossessed his children of the dominions of their father. After ascending the throne he resigned it to his own sons. In the reign of Malek-el-Moattam, the last of the descendants of Malek-el- Adel, St. Louis undertook the crusade in M^hich he and his 1249. army were made prisoners in Egypt. The sultan released them for a heavy ransom, and the towns that had been taken. The Mamelukes (guards formed by Saladin from Cauca- sian slaves,) who had long felt their own power, and whose commanders were offended at any measure of importance being taken without their consent, were highly incensed at 1250. this peace. They murdered the sultan, and set in his place one of their own commanders, Az-ed-deen Aybeg. They thon arranged the government, so that the sultan and V3»ier should consult the emirs in all matters of importance ; that there should be a great cadi, and a cadi for each of the four orthodox sects of Islam, to administer justice. Their num- bers were kept up by supplies from their native country ; and for two centuries and a half the Mamelukes ruled over Egypt. Rarely a son lived to succeed his father : often a favorite slave or a brave soldier was seated on the vacant throne. Constantinople. Alexius, the young son of Manuel Comnenus, was mur- 1183. dered by his relative Andronicus, who reigned two years, and was then dethroned and put to death by Isaac Angelus. 1185 Isaac, a prmce of some good qualities, was robbed of the em- pire, and blinded by his own brother, Alexius III. His son 1194 Alexius fled to the West to seek for aid ; and as the fourth crusade was then preparing to set out for Asia, he persuaded its commanders to assist in restoring his father to his throne, engaging, in case of success, to supply them with provisions, and to pay them a large sum of money. His offers were ac- cepted. Constantinople was taken, Isaac released, and his son, Alexius IV., placed on the throne. Alexius and his father were murdered by his cousin, named Murzufie (Alexius 1204. v.). Under the pretext of avenging Alexius, the crusaders took and plundered the city, and placed Baldwin count of Flanders on the vacant throne, assigning him a fourth of the empire, and dividing the remainder among themselves. Three states were formed by the Greeks. Theodore Las- 208 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART II. caris, son-in-law of Alexis III., established himself in Nice, and, under the title of emperor, governed a great part of Lesser Asia. One of the Comnenian family settled at Tre- bisond, on the eastern end of the Black Sea, and was also styled emperor. Another Comnenian, of the family of An- gelas, ruled, under the title of despot, over a principality in Epirus, iEtolia, and Thessaly. A. D. Baldwin reigned but one year; he was taken prisoner and 1205. cruelly put to death by the Bulgarians. His brother and suc- 1216. cesser, Henry, an abler prince, died by poison. The throne then came to his brother-in-law, Peter de Courtenay, grand- son of Louis VI., and his children. _ .. John Lascaris and his son governed their Asiatic empire with prudence and valor. His grandson, of the same name, came to the throne a minor, and was murdered by Michael 1261. Palaeologus, one of whose generals retook, in one night, the imperial city, which the Latins had held but fifty-seven years. The Crusades. The kingdom of Jerusalem was continually harassed by its Mohammedan neighbors in Syria and Egypt. The forma- tion of the orders of the Templars and the Hospitalers, and the constant accession of volunteers from Europe, enabled it to resist its enemies ; and prodigies of valor equal to any in romance were achieved by the warriors of the cross. But in less than half a century after the conquest, the state of Edessa having been subdued by the attabeg of Moussel, more power- ful aid was deemed requisite, and St. Bernard preached a new crusade. At his persuasion, the cross was assumed by Louis 1147. VII. of France and Conrad III. of Germany. The number of all ranks engaged in this crusade is estimated at 300,000. The Germans went first, and the same ravages which had disgraced the first crusade occurred also in this. The Greek emperor, Manuel, was terrified at their numbers, and em- ployed artifice to get rid of them. They passed over; and the imprudence of Conrad caused him to march into the heart 1148. of Lesser Asia, where his troops were cut to pieces by the sultan of Iconium. Conrad fled to the French army, and then returned to Constantinople. Louis pursued his march : near Laodicea he sustained a partial defeat ; but he reached Antioch, and thence proceeded to the Holy Land, and he and his troops aided at the unsuccessful siege of Damascus. 1187. Wlien intelligence arrived in Europe of the capture of Je- rusalem by Saladin, the utmost grief and indignation pre- 1188. vailed ; and Clement III. ordered a crusade to be preached everywhere. The emperor, Frederic Barbarossa, assembled CHAP. VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 209 a diet at Mentz, where he and his son Frederic, and the greatest of the German nobles, took the cross. The same was done by Richard I. and Philip Augustus. It was not now, as in the first crusade, piety that actuated these kings and nobles, — that motive had given place to the passion for mili- tary fame and glory* The emperor, on marshalling his forces, found them to amoimt to 100,000 fighting men, care havmg been taken to keep off" the beggarly rabble which had attended the former expeditions. He marched through Hungary into the Greek territories, where the emperor, Isaac Angelus, harassed the crusaders as far as he was able. Frederic laid the country under contribution, cut to pieces the Greek troops, and made the emperor sue for peace. He wintered at Adrianople, passed over to Asia in sprmg, defeated the Turks in several battles, took Iconium, and crossed Mount Taurus. But coming on a sultry day (June 10th) to the Selef, a gelid mountain-stream, a. d. he threw himself into its waters, and was unfortunately li90. drowned. Richard of England, Philip of France, Henry count of Champagne, Thibaut of Blois, Philip of Flanders, and numer- ous other princes and nobles, collected their forces on the plain of Vezelay, and found them to amount to 100,000 fight- 1190. ing men. Aware of the evils that had attended the former land expeditions, they resolved to convey their forces by sea. Richard led his troops to Marseilles, Philip his to Genoa, where they embarked. The appointed place of rendezvous was Messina ; and while they staid there, various incidents occurred to excite jealously and disunion between the mon- archs. Driven by a storm to the isle of Cyprus, Richard de- posed, for his cruelty to the crews of some of his ships, Isaac Comnenus, who tyrannized over the island, and sold the sove- reignty of it to Guy de Lusignan, the king of Jerusalem, in whose family it continued for three hundred years. An army of Christians, aided by the slender remains of that of the emperor Frederic, was besieging Acre, or Ptole- mais. After a heroic resistance, it was forced to surrender to the emulative valor of Richard and Philip. But the latter, instead of pursuing this success, jealous of the superior fame of the English monarch, returned to Europe, under the pre- text of ill health, leaving 10,000 of his troops, under the duke of Burgundy. The siege of Ascalon was now resolved on. The Christian army marched along the sea-coast: Saladin collected all his strength to oppose them : a bloody and well- contested battle took place. Nothing could resist the valor and impetuosity of Richard ; 8000 of the Moslems were left 1193. S2 210 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART II. dead. Ascalon and Joppa were razed by Saladin at their ap- proach ; the crusaders came within sight of the holy city ; but the fickle kin^ of England was weary of the war, and anxious to return home. A truce was concluded with Sala- din, by which the Christians were to hold Ptolemais, Joppa, and other sea-ports, and to visit the holy sepulchre unmolested. The gallant Richard was, on his return through Germany, basely thrown into prison by Leopold duke of Austria, whom he had oflfended at Ptolemais. A. D The fourth crusade was composed of French and German?, 1202. led by Baldwin count of Flanders. The Venetians furnished ships. Its first efforts were directed ag-amst the city of Zara in Dalmatia, which had revolted from Venice, and, in spite of the pope's excommunication, it was reduced. The arms of the faithful were now directed against Constantinople, 1204. which, as we have seen, they took, placing their leader on the throne. In the partition, Venice got the island and the Morea, the marquis of Montferrat Thessaly, Ville Hardouin (the historian of this conquest) Achaia, and Otto de la Roche, a Burgundian, became duke of Athens. 1216. The fifth crusade was chiefly composed of Germans and the neighboring people ; Andrew II., king of Hungary, was its commander. The main body marched to Italy, to embark in its ports ; others sailed from the ports of Saxony, and, being" driven by a storm into Lisbon, were prevailed on by Don Sancho to assist him against the Moors. The king of Hun- g-ary and his troops, with the king of Cyprus, landed at Ptolemais, where John de Brienne, the titular king of Jeru- salem, gladly received them. They attempted in vain to take Tabor ; were obliged to divide for subsistence ; the king of Cyprus died, and the king of Hungary found it necessary to return home. On being joined by the fleet from Portugal, it was resolved in council to besiege Darnietta, in Egypt. An 1219. army, led by the sultan to its relief, was defeated. The duke of Austria and his forces now returned home ; but a rein- forcement arrived, under the cardinal Albano, to whom, as the officer of the pope, John de Brienne was obliged to re- sign the command, and the military priest injudiciously led his army between two branches of the Nile, at the season that river was beginning to overflow. The sultan opened the sluices, and burned the ships of the Christians, who were 1221. forced to restore Damietta, and bind themselves not to serve for eight years against the sultan. 1228. The emperor Frederic IL, who had long promised, at length sailed to the East. He did not spill any blood ; but he made an advantageous treaty v.ith Malek-el-Kamel, sultan oi CMAP. VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 211 Egypt, who ceded to him Jerusalem, Bethlehem, and all the villao-es between the former place and Jaffa, and Ptolemais. The Khowaresmians, flying before the Mongols, had poured x. d. down on Lower Asia, and had seized on Syria and Palestine. 1244. St. Louis, having in a fit of sickness vowed a crusade, he collected a fine army, and sailed for the East. He resolved to commence by reducing Egypt, and landed at Damietta, which was abandoned to him. But his troops were wasted by sickness, and defeated at Massoor, where his brother Rob- ert of Artois was killed at his side, and himself, his two bro- thers, and all his chief nobility taken prisoners. At the price of a large ransom and the city of Damietta they were set at liberty. 1250. Twenty years afterwards, this excellent monarch, whose 1270. only defect almost was superstition, sailed with another expe- dition for the Holy Land ; but hearing that the king of Tunis was inclined to embrace Christianity, he directed his course thither. Finding the intelligence to be false, he laid siege to the city ; but he here caught a fever and died, and with him died the spirit of the crusades. Edward, son of our Henry III., revived the fame of Richard ; but the Latin power gradually 1291. declined, and Acre, its last seat, fell to the sultan of Egypt. The crusades, though originating in folly and superstition, and productive of a large quantity ef positive suffering to both Europe and Asia, have, in tlie order of Providence, been also productive of good. They awoke the mind of Europe from its slumber of ignorance and barbarism, by bringing it into contact with the more polished nations of the East ; they enlarged the sphere of ideas, gave a taste for elegance and refinement, extended navigation and commerce, and thereby increased the wealth and power of cities ; they diminished the property and influence of the factious and tyrannic nobles, and enlarged the authority of monarchs. The degree of in- tercourse that prevailed between Europe and Asia, during the period of the crusades, was far beyond what we usually conceive. It has not become adequately known until very recently. The Mongols — Chingis Khan. In the ancient country of this race, a great khan who had ruled over 30,000 families on the banks of the Selinga had died, leaving his son Temujin a child. The horde separated, and Temujin, when he grew up, found only thirteen families adhering to him. He distinguished himself by valor, talent, and generosity. In an assembly of the nation on the Selinga, one of their wise men arose and said, he had had a vision, in 212 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART It. which he saw the great God of heaven sitting on his throne A. D. in council, and heard sentence given that Temujin should be 1206. Chingis Khan, i. e. Greatest Khan. The Mongols raised their hands, and swore to follow their Chingis KJian whither- soever he went. He first invaded China, overthrew the dynasty of Song^ and took Yen King, their capital. He conquered Corea, then turned westward, subdued Tibet, penetrated to Cashmeer, and to the borders of Khowaresm, whose sultan had van- quished the dynasty of Ghaur, and ruled over nearly all Per- sia, and a great portion of Hindostan. The sultan Ala-ed-deen Mohammed took the field at the head of 400,000 men, was defeated, and his country subdued. His son, Jellel-ed-deen' Mohammed, heroically, but in vain, resisted the conquerors. The shores of the Caspian were conquered. The tsar of Rus- sia advanced with a large army to the Calca, was defeated 1227. and put to flight. Chingis Khan gave laws and regulations to the Mongols, and died in the 64th year of his age. The sons of Chingis, Octai, Joojee or Tooshee, Toolee, and Jagatai, and their sons, Gooyookh, Batoo, Hoolagoo, and Kublai, followed up his conquests. Resistance was every- 1241. where overborne. Alexander Nevski, the great duke of Rus- sia and conqueror of Livonia, was overthrown ; his successor was forced to fly to Poland, and the house of Ruric reduced to such dependence, that for two hundred years it paid tribute to the khan of the golden horde. This conquest was achieved by Batoo, son of Joojee, who then led his army to the confines of Europe. Poland offered no resistance. Batoo took and burned Cracow. Bela IV., king of Hungary, gave him battle, but was utterly defeated. The Mongols advanced and burned Breslau. The emperor Frederic II. and the pope called on all Europe to aid. Crowds of volunteers joined the standard of Henry duke of Lower 1242. Silesia. The battle, one of the bloodiest ever fought against the orientals, was given at Wollstadt, near Lignitz, and lost. The whole country was deserted ; but the Mongols could not form sieges, and they retired. Kublai* son of Toolee, completed the conquest of China. End of the Khalifat at Bagdad. Hoolegoo, the grandson of Chingis, undertook the conquest of Bagdad. The Mongols advanced, treachery aided, and the City of Peace was taken. In the 656th year of the Hegira, the 56th successor of the prophet was trodden beneath the feet of the horses of the Mongols. Bagdad was plundered during forty days, aiid 200,000 persons slaughtered. The CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 218 Strong-holds of the Assassins were taken, and that sect de- stroyed. The Mongols took Aleppo and Damascus, and en- a. d. tered the Holy Land. Seif-ed-deen, the Mameluke sultan of 1260. Egypt, defeated them there, and his successor, Bibers, drove them out of Syria. Hakem bi-emr-illah Ahmed Mostaser of the house of Abbas 1262. fled to Bibers, who received him kindly, and gave him an es- tablishment at Cairo ; and for two centuries and a half the successors of the prophet lived on the bounty of the Mameluke sultans. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OP THE PAPAL POWER, AND FORMATION OF GREAT MONARCHIES. Italy — The Popes. The high assumptions, the intolerable rapacity, and the extreme corruption of the court of Rome, were gradually alienating from it all orders of men. The clergy were in- censed at the heavy taxes imposed on them, the invasion of the rights of patronage, and the favor shown to the mendicant orders ; and even some of the latter began to declaim against its corruption and vices. In this state of affairs Boniface VIII. obtained the triple crown, and, not attending to the signs of the times, endeavored to raise the papal power to a higher point than it had yet attained, but thereby only showed its real weakness. Edward I. and Philip the Fair began to attack the revenues of the church. The pope left the former and his clergy to themselves; but when Philip taxed those of France without their consent, Boniface issued a bull, forbidding the clergy of every kingdom to pay any thing without his permission. But the French clergy adhered to their king, and he and the pope became reconciled. Some years afterwards the bishop of 1301. Pamiers, as legate of the pope, behaved with great disrespect to the king, and, as he was his subject, Philip put him under arrest. Boniface, in a rage, issued several bulls, in one of which he asserted that the king was subject to him in tempo- ral as well as in spiritual matters. Philip had the bulls pub- licly burnt at Paris, and summoned the states-general of his kingdom, who disclaimed, in the fullest manner, the temporal authority of the pope. Boniface held a council at Rome, in which he promulgated 214 OUTLmES OP HISTORY. I»ART IT. his constitution of Vnam sanctum^ by which he declares the church to be one body under one head, possessing two swords ; one spiritual, to be wielded by the pope himself; the other temporal, to be used by kings and knights at his will, and with his permission. But the latter must be subject to the former, for every human being is in subjection to the see of Rome. He concludes another bull thus : — " Since such is our pleasure, who, by divine permission, rule the world." Finding Philip still refractory, he excommunicated him, giv- ing his kingdom to the emperor Albert I., and was then about to absolve his subjects from their allegiance, Philip now as- serted that Boniface was not legally elected, and appealed to a general council and a lawful pope. But he at the same time ventured on an act of fortunate temerity : he secretly sent into Italy a gentleman named Nogaret, who, with the aid of Sciarra Colonna, who was persecuted by the pope, seized him in the town of Anagni, whither he was gone with- out guards. On the third day the neighboring gentry came to his rescue ; but the haughty pontiff was so mortified at A. D. what had befallen him, that his rage brought on a fever, 1302. which terminated his days. His successor, Benedict XL, re- scinded the bulls against Philip, and thereby showed the real decline of the papacy since the days of Innocent. 1305. Clement V., who had been archbishop of Bourdeaux, re- moved, at the desire of the king of France, the papal chair to Avignon, where it continued under his six successors, all of whom were French, for a space of seventy years. The Avignon pontiffs were engaged in a long contest with the emperor Louis of Bavaria, in which they asserted, that though the power of choosing an emperor had been trans- ferred to certain electors, the popes still retained the right of approving the choice, and of receiving an oath of fealty from the emperor on his coronation. This quarrel originated in the attempts of the emperors to regain their imperial-rights 1323. in Italy. In the course of the contest Louis was excommu- nicated, and his subjects released from their allegiance ; but they remained firm to him, and if Louis himself had acted with more vigor, he would have come off victor in the con- test. 1338. But though thus apparently triumphant over the emperor, the papal power was gradually losing ground. The diet of Frankfort positively denied all right of the pope to interfere in imperial elections. Scholastic science had inured men to thought, and they began to employ their mother-tongues as its organ : men of learning and patriotism assailed the found- ations of the papal edifice, and the ballad and the tale ex- CHAP. VU. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 215 posed the profligacy and corruption of the church. A portion of the Franciscan friars, whom John XXII. persecuted for some follies, loudly proclaimed the pope to be Antichrist, and supported the emperor Louis. The rapacity of the papal court now passed all bounds. John XXII. imposed the tax of an- nates^ or first-fruits, on all benefices, to be paid mto the papal chancery ; the same pontiff reserved to himself all the bishop- rics in Christendom. Benedict XII. assumed the right of dis- posmg of all benefices vacant by cession, translation, or de- privation. Empire had been the object of the former popes : money that of these more low-minded pontiffs. The wishes of Italy and of Europe, joined with the evils a. d. arising from absence from Rome, induced Gregory XL to re- 1376. move the papal chair back to that city. Soon after occurred the femous schism. On the death of Gregory, the cardinals, 1378. who were mostly French, assembling to elect a successor, the populace collected and insisted on his being an Italian. The archbishop of Bari, a Neapolitan, was elected, and he took the name of Urban VI. For some weeks the cardinals obeyed him ; but, disgusted with the harshness of his temper, they conspired against him, and he threw several of them into prison : the rest fled to Fondi, and, with the opinion of Nic- colo Spinelli, the great Neapolitan lawyer, they proceeded to a new election, under the pretext of the last having been ef- fected by intimidation. They chose the cardinal Robert, who took the name of Clement VII., and fixed his seat at Avignon. Urban tortured and even executed some of the cardinals and prelates who were his prisoners. Italy, Germany, England, and the North adhered to Urban ; France, Spain, Scotland, and Sicily to Clement. All wished both to resign, and the cardinals to proceed to a new elec- tion ; but neither party would recede. Three pontiffs suc- ceeded Urban; Benedict XIII. was the only successor of Clement. The cardinals on both sides at last deserted their heads, and a general council was summoned to meet at Pisa. 1409. In this assembly the two pontiffs, Gregory XII. and Benedict XIIL, were deposed, and Alexander V. elected ; but Spain adhered to Gregory, and Benedict was supported by others, so that now there were three rival pontiffs. Another council 1414. was held at Constance, in which, under the pretext of his enormous vices, John XXIII., Alexander's successor, was deposed ; Gregory submitted, and the obstinate Benedict was deposed. Otto Colonna, a man of great prudence, was elected under tlie name of Martin V. To curb the papal pow-er, to reduce the government of the church from an absolute to a limited mcmarchy, was the ob-» 216 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART II. ject aimed at in the council of Constance ; and it declared that a council has received, by divine right, a power in mat- ters concerning religion, to which every other, even the papal, must submit. This council, it is to be observed, was composed not merely of bishops, like the ancient ones, but of abbots, deputies of universities, ambassadors of princes, theo- logians, and doctors of law. To obviate the influence of the numerous Italian bishops, the council was divided into four nations, Italian, German, French, and English, with equal rights, and the majority of the four was to decide each ques- tion. A committee of reformation was appointed ; but the art of the Italians, by taking advantage of the national jeal- ousies, prevented any thing effectual being done. Martin V., when elected, lost no time in dissolving the council. It was decreed that another council should be held in five, a second in seven years, and then one every ten years. The ^ jj first was called at Pavia, but owing to the plague was re- 1433. moved to Siena, and nothing effected in it. The second was convoked to Basle ; but Martin dying before it met, Eugenius IV. attempted to transfer it to Italy, where the papal strength lay. After several years' contest, Eugenius, by his preroga- tive, removed it, under pretext of the union he was nego- tiating with the Greek church, to Ferrara, and thence to Florence. But the assembly at Basle still sat, and proceeded in the work of reformation, abolishing annates, reservations, 1439. and other papal abuses. They proceeded so far as to depose Eugenius, and elect Amadeus, the first duke of Savoy, who had laid down his dignity, and retired into private life. Few states concurred in this assumption of power ; the party of the fathers of Basle became weaker every day; and Nicholas 1449. v., the successor of Eugenius, easily prevailed on Felix V., as Amadeus was called, to resign. The popes ever after dreaded the idea of a general council, of which Europe has since seen but one, and that called greatly against the incli- nation of the pontiff. All the future popes, but one, were Italians ; they learned to confine their views to Italy, where, as a temporal power, they established their influence in their own states, and engaged in the political projects of their neighbors. A general spirit of opposition to the encroachments of Rome, and of the church in general, prevailed throughout Europe, precursive of the reformation. England in this led the way : her kings and parliaments set barriers to ecclesias- tical encroachments: the tenets of Wickliff had many favor- ers ; and parliament even went so far as to press Henry IV. to seize the temporalities of the church. Opinions similar to CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 217 those of Wickliff were preached in Bohemia by Huss and Jerome of Prague ; and the base act of treachery sanctioned by the fathers at Constance ag-ainst the former, tended to cast an additional odium on the church. Italy — The Republics, In the 13th century the republics of Italy were numerous and independent. They may be regarded as forming four great clusters, according to their situation. 1. Central Lom- bardy, containing Milan, Cremona, Parma, Pavia, Brescia, Bergamo, Piacenza, Mantua, &c. 2. The march of Verona, in which were Verona, Vicenza, Padua, and Treviso. 3. Romagna, where were Bologna, Imola, Modena, Faenza, Ferrara, &c. 4. Tuscany, containing Florence, Pisa, Lucca, Siena, &.c. All of these were split into the Guelf and Ghibilin factions. In the first, Milan was Guelf, and her influence made the whole except Parma and Cremona such: in the second, Ezzelin da Romano, a nobleman of the country, to whom Frederic II. had given his natural daughter in mar- riage, by his talents and his merciless cruelty made the Ghibi- lin cause triumphant: in the third, the Guelf party predomi- nated : in the fourth, Florence headed the Guelf, Pisa the Ghibilin party. To these we are to add the great maritime republics, Genoa on the west, and Venice on the east, and we have a view of the state of northern and central Italy. Under their republican forms of government these cities were opulent, industrious, and powerful; but they were harassed by external and internal discord, and before the end of the thirteenth century all those of the first three classes were under the rule of signori, answering to the Greek tyrants. In Milan the Torreani and then the Visconti ruled ; in Verona the Delia Scala ; at Ferrara and Modena the Este ; at Padua the Carrara ; at Mantua the Gonzaga. Of these by far the most powerful were the Visconti ; and though mur- der, assassination, and every crime were freely perpetrated by all, none equalled them in atrocity. Florence, like the other cities, was divided into Guelfs and Ghibilins. She had a farther division of parties, called the Neri and Bianchi. There were here, as elsewhere, powerful noble families, the Donati, Amidei, Uberti, Buondelmonti, whose feuds filled the city with confusion and riot. The citizens were divided into arts, or companies of the different trades, each of which had its own council, consul, and gon- faloniere, to whose standard all the members repaired in any ^^ j,^ commotion. The government had been in the hands of the 1266. nobles ; but in 1266 it was thrown chiefly into the hands of T 218 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART 11. the commons. Feuds ran high between the two orders. A A. D. new order of plebeian nobility arose, and chiefly administered 1336. the government: the people disliked both. An officer, named the Captain of Defence, was appointed with great criminal 1342. jurisdiction, but was speedily expelled for his tyranny. Soon after, Walter de Brienne, duke of Athens, was intrusted with unlimited military and jadieial power, with a view to his curbing the nobility; but he aimed at the tyranny, and a conspiracy expelled him. Though incessantly changing her form of government, Florence, from the animating influence of the principle of - liberty, increased in wealth and consequence. She engaged in wars with the powers of Lombardy, and made the con- quest of Prato, Pisa, and other places in Tuscany. Her wars were carried on by mercenary troops, which, under their condottieri, answered to the companies of adventure in France. Pisa was one of the first Italian cities that was distinguish- ed by naval armaments. In the 11th century she conquered Sardinia from the Moors, and also obtained a short possession of the Baleares: Corsica and Elba also belonged to her. Her commerce was, of course, extensive. She derived great ad- vantage from the crusades. In 1119, war broke out between Pisa and Genoa, which lasted the greater part of two centu- ries. The sea-fight off" the isle of Meloria, in 1284, gave the power of Pisa its death-blow. She ceased to be a mari- time power, gradually declined, and at length became subject to Florence. Genoa rose into importance coeval with Pisa. Her pros- 1261. perity increased rapidly on the recovery of Constantinople from the Latins, in which event she aided. Palseologus as- signed the Genoese the suburb of Pera, where their colony lived in independence, under a magistrate sent from home, and they thence carried on an extensive trade with the coasts of the Black Sea, on which they erected factories, and with the inland country. Rivalry ensued between them and the Venetians: several hard-fought actions took place, particu- larly one in the Sea of Marmora, where the Genoese fought single-handed against the Venetians, Catalans, and Greeks. 1378. The most important was the war of Chioggia, where the Genoese, after defeating the Venetian fleet, entered the la- gunes of Venice. Certain of reducing the city, the Genoese admiral, Doria, refused the most advantageous offers of peace. The Venetians, gathering courage from despair, equipped a fleet, closed up the passage of the lagunee, besieged the CHAP. VII. DECLINE OP THE PAPAL POWER. 219 Genoese in the island of Chiog-gia, and at length obliged them to surrender. From that period dates the decline of Genoa. Like- the other Italian cities, Genoa was harassed by the feuds of her nobles. The leading families on the Guelf side were the Grimaldi and Fieschi; on the Ghibilin, the Doria, and Spinola. As at Florence, the nobles were reduced, and a plebeian oligarchy, the Adorni, Fregosi, Montalti, took their place. Yet it is remarkable that the Genoese fleets were al- most always commanded by one of the nobles. The revolu- tions in Genoa were incessant. In 1339, the chief magistrate, named Doge, was first appointed. Venice owed her origin to some citizens of Aquileia, who, in the beginning of the 5th century, fled to the islands at the mouth of the Brenta, and built the town of Rivoalto, after- wards called Venice. This town gradually increased in popu- lation and strength. Till the 10th century, it continued sub- ject to the Eastern empire. At this time Venice made several acquisitions in Dalmatia. She very early applied to commerce, and she derived very great advantages from the crusades. On the taking of Constantinople by the Latins, in which her fleet, under Henry Dandolo, the doge, bore a great share, she got three-eighths of the city and of the provinces, and she pur- chased the shares -of «ome of the other spoilers. It was thus she obtained Candia and the Ionian isles. The trade of Ven- ice was chiefly carried on with Syria and Egypt, and she was the great medium of conveying the productions of the East into Europe. After the war of Chioggia, Venice beg-an to turn her thoughts towards territorial acquisitions. Before that period, the Venetians had united with Florence to check the career of Mastino della Scala, lord of Verona, and had gained Treviso. They looked on with indifference at the progress of the Visconti of Milan ; but when, in the confusion that followed the death of Gian Galeazzo Visconti, Francesco Carrara, lord of Padua, had seized Verona, the Venetians, who hated that family, took arms, and reduced both Padua and Verona, and the duke of Milan ceded Vicenza to them. Venice afterwards, in alliance with Florence, against Filippo Maria Visconti, took into her service Carmagnola, the cele- brated condottiere, and she acquired Brescia and Bergamo, and reached the Adda, which she never passed. j^_ j,^ The government of Venice, at first, perhaps, merely fede- 697. rative, had become, under its Doge, or duke, nearly an elec- tive absolute monarchy. Limitations were gradually laid on his power, which ended in making the doge little more than a pageant, and converting the government into a jealous close 220 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. aristocracy, which, with its various councils and intricate mode of election, has lasted down to near the present time. Italy — Naples and Sicily. 1254. On the death of Conrad, son of Frederic II., his natural brother Manfred occupied the kingdom in the name of Con- radin, the young heir. The Ghibilin party looked up to Man- fred as their head : the pope hated him as the son of Frederic. The pope, as superior lord, offered the kingdom which Man- fred had usurped to Charles of Anjou, brother of St. Louis, who, with his brother's consent, led thither a crusade, as it 1266. was called. Manfred fell in the field. Conradin, afterwards attempting to recover his inheritance, was taken prisoner, 1268. and judicially murdered by Charles. But Constance, daughter of Manfred, was married to Peter III, of Aragon, who, in her right, claimed the crown. Charles was master of Provence, Naples, Sicily, head of the Guelf party in Italy, and created by the pope vicar-gene- ral in Tuscany. John of Procida, one of the adherents of Manfred, was living in Valencia, watching an opportunity of revenge. The Neapolitan barons were French, or in that interest; but Sicily was treated as a conquered country, the women, after the usual manner of the French, insulted, and the indignation of the people thereby excited, which was in- creased by the speeches of John, who went in disguise through the island. Pope Nicholas III., adverse to the An- gevin dynasty, the court of Constantinople, the king of Ara- gon, all entered into the project of John of Procida, and when 1253. the massacre of the French, called the Sicilian vespers, an utterly unpremeditated act, occurred, the fleet of the king of Aragon was at hand, and the Sicilians gave him the crown. A war ensued, in which the king of Naples was supported by the kings of France and Castile, and by the pope. Peter dying, left Sicily to his second son, James ; and Alfonso, king of Aragon, made peace, engaging not to assist Sicily. James, on succeeding to his brother in Aragon, renounced Sicily ; but the SicCians transferred the crown to his brother Frede- ric, and maintained the war against Charles 11. of Naples, and the king of Aragon ; and peace was at length concluded, 1300. on condition that Frederic should retain for life the kingdom, which then should revert to the crown of Naples. 1305. On the death of Charles II., the crown was disputed be- tween Caribert, the son of his eldest son Charles, who had died king of Hungary, and Robert, his eldest living son. The point was referred to the pope, the feudal lord of the king- dom, who gave sentence in favor of Robert. The latter leav CHAf. VTI. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 221 ing- no male issue, the crown descended to his grand-daughter Joanna. She was espoused to her cousin Andrew, son of Cari- bert, king of Hungary ; but the manners of this prince were a. d. brutal, and he was assassinated, an act of which the guilt 1345. was laid on the queen. Lotiis king of Hungary invaded Na- ples, to avenge the death of his brother. Joanna fled, but afterwards regained her crown. The queen had no children. The king of Hungary, and Charles duke of Durazzo, were the only male descendants of Charles I. The latter was mar- ried to the queen's niece, and was regarded by her as heir to the crown. Offended with the queen, Charles invaded her kingdom, took her prisoner, and had her smothered in prison. 1378. But Joanna had adopted Louis of Anjou, uncle to Charles VI. of France. He easily entered on Provence, and led 30,000 men to Naples, but he effected nothing. Charles III., now, as he thought, secure, accepted the crown of Hungary. His son Ladislaus, only ten years of age, succeeded him in Naples. The party that had called in Louis then invited his son Louis II., and put him in possession of the greater part of the kingdom. But as Ladislaus grew up, he displayed su- perior qualities; the Angevin barons came over to him, and he recovered the whole of the kingdom. On the death of this able prince, his elder sister, Joanna II., a weak, vicious woman, came to the throne. The kingdom fell into anarchy. Sforza Attendolo, the great constable, and Ser Gianni Carac- cioli, the seneschal, were the most powerful individuals. Sforza called in a pretender to the crown, Louis III. of An- jou. Caraccioli persuaded the queen to adopt Alfonso, king of Aragon and Sicily. The successors of Frederic I. of Sicily, were weak or in- fant princes. Maria queen of Sicily had married Martin, son of the king of Aragon, to whom, when dying, she left her i409. crown ; and on his death his father Martin, king of Aragon, had taken possession of Sicily as heir to his son. Alfonso gladly embraced the offer of Joanna ; but jealousy of him, or some other cause, induced her to revoke her deed, and adopt Louis ; and the queen's and the Angevin parties united were too strong for Alfonso. Louis dying before the queen, she substituted his brother Regnier. When Joanna died, Regnier was a prisoner in Burgundy; but his wife maintained his cause with spirit. Fortune, however, sided with Alfonso, and he founded the Aragonite line at Naples, Alfonso, having no lawful issue, was anxious to transmit Na- ples to his illegitimate son Ferdinand, Chiefly with this view he became a party with Sforza duke of Milan, and the republics of Venice and Florence, in the quadruple league, 1455. T2 222 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART II. for the maintenance of peace in Italy ; and the pope and the Neapolitan parliament confirmed the succession of Ferdinand. A. D. But the character of this prince was dark and vindictive, and 1461. the barons offered the crown to John, son of Regnier of An- jou, who made an ineffectual attempt to obtain it. Germany. 1273. After Germany had been three-and-twenty years without a head, the electors fixed on Rodolf of Habsburg-, a prince of ancient family and of considerable possessions in Switzerland," and along the Upper Rhine. Rodolf was an able, sensible monarch, and he turned all his efforts to the establishing- of peace and tranquillity within the empire. He naturally sought to aggrandize his family. The rebellion of Ottocar, king of Bohemia, gave him the disposal of Austria, Syria, 1283. and Carniola, which, w^ith the consent of the diet, he bestowed on his son Albert, and Carinthia on Meinhard landgraf of Tyrol, whose daughter Albert married. This was the origin of the possessions of the house of Austria. The electors refused to choose Albert king of the Romans 1291. in his father's lifetime ; and on the death of Rodolf they gave the imperial dignity to Adolf of Nassau. Albert, how- ever, raised a strong party against him, and got himself 129a elected. Adolf fought for his dignity, but fell, as was said, by the hand of Albert. Albert was active, ambitious, un- quiet, but unsuccessful in his projects, and hated by his neigh- 1308. bors and subjects. He was murdered by his nephew John, from whom he withheld his inheritance. Some of the princes are said to have been consenting to the deed. 1309. Henry VII. of Luxemburg was elected. His reign is chiefly distinguished by his attempts to establish the imperial authority in Italy. In this he met some partial success, but died suddenly in the midst of his projects. 1314. Louis of Bavaria was chosen by one part of the electors, Frederic of Austria by another. The battle of Miihldorf 1322. finally decided in favor of Louis. This emperor also crossed the Alps to contend against the pope and Robert king of Na- ples ; but he derived little credit from his expedition : his whole reign was occupied in the contest with the holy see. 1347. Charles IV., son of John king of Bohemia, next purchased the empire. This monarch loved pomp and parade, and lived 355. in great splendor. He annexed Brandenburg and Silesia to Bohemia. By his Golden Bull he ascertained the preroga- tives of the electoral college. He procured his son Wences- laus to be appointed his successor. 137a WenceslauB was addicted to pleasure. His Bohemian no- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OP THE PAPAL POWER. 223 bles, thinking he favored the people too much, confined him, a. d. under the pretext of his violence and immorality, and gave 1394. him in custody to the duke of Austria. He escaped. The 1400. spiritual electors and the palatine deposed him, and he gave a willing assent to this act, satisfied with his paternal lung- dom of Bohemia. Frederic duke of Brunswick was chosen in his stead, but was murdered immediately afterwards by his private enemies. Rupert, palatine of the Rhine, was then chosen. On his death, the choice fell on Jobst of Luxemburg, margraf of Mo- 1410. ravia. He, too, died within a short time, and all the voices declared for Sigismund, brother of Wenceslaus, and king of Hungary. Few princes have united more crowns than Sigismund. By his first wife, Mary of Anjou, he got Hungary, Dalmatia, Bosnia : his brother left him Bohemia ; the pope gave him the imperial crown, and to these he joined Moravia, Lusatia, Brandenburg, and Silesia. The chief stain on the memory of Sigismund is his violation of the safe-conduct given to Huss when going to Constance. This involved him in an eighteen 1414. years' war against Zisca, Procopius, and the other Hussite leaders. Sigismund had been engaged in war with the Otto- mans, and narrowly escaped being taken by them at Nico- 1396. polls. His poverty obliged him to sell several of the imperial rights and claims. The imperial dignity now passed to the house of Austria, there to continue. Albert duke of Austria had married the heiress of Sigismund. But the Hungarians made it a condi- tion at his coronation that he would not accept the imperial crown. The Bohemians also made conditions with him. The 1437. electors vainly tried to induce the margraf of Brandenburg to accept the crown. At length the Hungarians gave their con- sent, and Albert was elected emperor ; but just as he was en- 1438. gaging in active hostilities with the Turks, he was surprised 1439. by death. Ladislaus, the posthumous son of Albert, succeeded his 1440. father in Hungary and Bohemia. Albert's second cousin, Frederic duke of Styria, was chosen emperor. His long reign of fifty-three years occupied the most interesting part of the fifteenth century. He was an insignificant prince, yet he had influence enough to have his son Maximilian elected king of the Romans during his life ; and his posterity still possess the dominions of the house of Austria, all of which were reunited 1493. in his time, or in that of his son. S24 OtlTLWJES OF HISTORY. tAllt II. Switzerland. Switzerland formed a part of the kingdom of Aries or Bur- A. D. gundy, and, with the rest of the dominions of Rodolf, was 1032. united to the German empire. It contained a numerous and powerful nobility, and several rich ecclesiastical lords. Its towns of Zuric, Basle, Berne, and Friburg- rose into import- ance. Among the nobles, the counts of Habsburg gradually became the most powerful : they were advocates to several convents, some of which had estates in the forest-cantons of Schwytz and Underwald. The people of these cantons re- posed confidence in Rodolf, the first emperor of the house of Habsburg: they distrusted his son Albert, who justified their- suspicions ; for, not satisfied with the rights which, as advo- cate to the convents, he possessed over a part of the forest- cantons, he, when elected emperor, sent imperial bailiffs to administer justice in the whole of these cantons. The people were indignant at this attempt to reduce them to servitude. Three men, Stauffacher of Schwytz, Furst of Uri, Melchthal of Underwald, each with ten companions, met by night in a secret valley, and swore to assert the liberty of their country. 1308. The three cantons rose in arms, and expelled the imperial officers, Albert was shortly afterwards assassinated by his nephew. Henry VIL, the next emperor, was little inclined to strengthen the house of Austria ; but Leopold, the son of Albert, led a considerable force into the mountains, and w^as utterly defeated by those brave peasants at Morgarten, the 1315. Marathon of Switzerland. Lucerne now joined the confederacy : before the middle of the fourteenth century it was augmented by the accession of Zurich, Berne, Zug, and Glaris. These eight were called the ancient cantons. Friburg, Soleure, Basle, SchaffTiausen, and Appenzel afterwards became parts of the body. The same conflict as was carried on in Lombardy between the cities and the rural nobility prevailed here, and with the same results. The house of Austria sold the greater part of its possessions to Zurich and Berne. The abbot of St. Gall, and the remaining lay and spiritual lords, entered into leagues with different cantons. At the beginning of the fifteenth century, Switzerland was acknowledged as a free indepen- dent country. Their defeats of Louis XL and the duke of Burgundy placed the Swiss as soldiers in the very first rank. France. 1270. On the death of St. Louis, his son Philip III., the Bold, who had accompanied him, made peace with Tunis, and re- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 225 turned to France. Philip engaged in a war with Aragon, a. d. m defence of his uncle, Charles of Anjou's claim to Sicily ; in 1270. which war he did not meet with much success. On the death of his uncle Alfonso, who had been invested with the county of Poitou, and part of Auvergne and Saintonge, and who also held in right of his wife, heiress of Raymond VII. of Toulouse, the remains of that fief, Philip reunited the wliole to the crown of France. Philip IV., the Fair, a rapacious and ambitious prince, at- 1285. tempted to reunite, by force, some of the remaining great fiefs. He outwitted Edward I. of England, and got possession of Guienne, which he held for some time. He acted with similar injustice in the case of Flanders ; but the total defeat of his army at Courtray by the Flemings gave a check to his 1302. injustice in that quarter. On a sentence of forfeiture passed against the count, Philip took possession of Angouleme and La Marche ; he also acquired the city of Lyons and its terri- tory, which had been given by Louis IV. with his daughter Matilda to the king of Burgundy, and had gone with that king- dom to the empire in 1032. Frederic Barbarossa, having given all the royal rights over the city to the archbishop, St. Louis was called in as a mediator between the chapter and the city, as also was Philip III., who forced the new archbishop to take an oath of fealty to himself. At length a spirited archbishop resisted this usurpation, and Philip IV. laid siege to the city, 1310. which submitted, and was united to the crown. Philip the Fair was the first king who convoked the states- 1302. general, or the representatives of the three estates of the kingdom. They were first convened to give weight to the long's cause in his dispute with Boniface VIII. ; afterwards 1314. for the imposition of taxes. The reign of Philip was dis- graced by the suppression of the order of Knights Templars, 1311. and the barbarous tortures inflicted on its most distinguished members. Philip had three sons, Louis Hutin, Philip the Long, and Charles the Fair, all of whom reigned in France ; and one daughter Isabella, married to Edward II. of England. Louis X., Hutin, survived his father but a year. He left 1314. one daughter, Jane, and his queen pregnant. Louis had pos- sessed, by his mother, the kingdom of Navarre, and the coun- ties of Champagne and Brie. His brother Philip assumed the regency of both France and Navarre, and then made a treaty with the duke of Burgundy, uncle of Jane, by which it was agreed, that if the queen should have a daughter, the two princesses, or the survivor, should take the inheritance of their grandmother, and renounce all right to the crown of France. But this was not to take place till they had attained 226 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. tART It the age of consent, when, if they should refuse, their claim was to remain, and right to be done them. Philip was mean- time, as governor, to receive the homage of the vassals, and govern all these realms. In case of the birth of a male heir, the treaty was not to take effect. The queen brought forth a son, who died within four days. The treaty was now evi- dently become absolute, and Philip should have governed, as regent or governor, till Jane came of age to accept or refuse A. D. the contract made by her uncle. But, instead of so doing, 1317. Philip went to Rheims, and had himself crowned, though op- posed by the duke of Burgundy and by his own brother Charles. He thence went to Paris and convened an assembly of prelates, barons, and burgesses of that city, who declared him their lawful sovereign. The duke of Burgundy defend- ed the rights of his niece, till, on the prospect of a marriage with the daughter of Philip, he gave up, in her name, not only her claim to France, but her right to Navarre and Champagne. This is the first occasion on which the right of females to the crown of France was ever discussed. 1323. Philip died, leaving three daughters, and his brother Charles mounted the throne. Charles, on his death, left hia queen pregnant. Philip of Valois, grandson of Philip the Bold, took the regency, and on the queen bringing forth a 1328. daughter, he was crowned king. So that the principle of the exclusion of females was now fully established. No com- petitor appeared in France ; but Edward III. of England put in a claim in right of his mother, Isabella, sister to the last three kings. In every point of view this claim was unjust. If the Salic law was not valid, the claims of the daughters of the last three monarchs were superior to his ; if it was valid, all female claims were alike extinguished. But Ed- ward maintained that though a female could not inherit her- self, she could transmit a title to her male issue ; yet here again he was foiled ; for, admitting this distinction, which is contrary to all rule, Jane, daughter of Louis Hutin, was mar- ried and had a son who was nearer to the crown than Ed- ward. The English monarch, however, thought himself strong enough to make his claim good by force of arms, and he commenced that series of wars between France and Eng- land which lasted during a space of 120 years, and cost so much blood and treasure to both. In the reign of Philip the crown acquired Dauphine, left to it by the will of the last of its princes, on condition of the king's eldest son being styled Dauphin. 1360. After the taking of Calais by Edward a truce was con- cluded, during which Philip died, and was succeeded by his CHAP. VII. DECLINE OP THE PAPAL POWER. 227 son John, a prince in every way deserving- of a better fortune than he experienced. During the captivity of John, after the unfortunate battle of Poitiers, France was in a most wretched state : the peasantry, driven to madness by the op- pression and insolence of their lords, broke out into the cele- ^^ jy brated insurrection called the Jacquerie, and every horrid 1358. enormity was perpetrated by them. Charles, son of John, the regent of France, now agreed to the peace of Bretigni, and John was liberated. On some difficulty arising with respect to some of the articles, this honorable prince returned to England to adjust them. He died while there at the Savoy 1364 Charles V., the Wise, turned all his thoughts to restoring France to her former state of power and independence. He broke the peace of Bretigni, and stripped the English of nearly all their possessions in that country. This able, judi- cious, and excellent monarch was, unfortunately for France, 1380» carried off by death, leaving one son, a boy of thirteen years, under the care of three ambitious uncles, the dukes of Anjou, Berri, and Burgundy. During the minority of Charles VI. the nation was dread- fully harassed by excessive taxes, which were wantonly ex- pended. Seditions broke out in Paris and elsewhere, which were severely punished. When Charles assumed the reins 1389, of government, his new ministers proved equally oppressive. A few years afterwards the intellect of the king became de- 139?. ranged, and was never fully restored. The princes returned to power. Burgundy was at the head of affairs, but was op- posed by the duke of Orleans the king's brother. The duke 1404. of Burgundy dying, was succeeded by his son named John Sans Peur : he and the duke of Orleans were reconciled ; but soon after the latter was assassinated in the streets of 1407. Paris, and the duke of Burgundy avowed the deed. The queen and all the princes of the blood united against the assassin ; yet such was his power, that after making a slight apology to the king, he was pardoned, and obtained the management of affairs. The princes took arms under the father-in-law of the young duke of Orleans, the count of Armagnac, from whom their party was named. The dauphin played the two factions against each other ; but he and his next brother dying, the rank fell to Charles, the king's youngest son. Armagnac, now constable of France, was at the head of affairs. His 1417. severity revived the Burgundian party in Paris ; he made the queen, the infamous Isabel of Bavaria, his enemy, by detect- ing her gallantries. She joined her old foe, the duke of Bur- 228 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART II gundy. A horrid insurrection was excited in Paris, and H18. Armagnac and all his party, to the number of three or four thousand, were massacred in one day. A reconciliation now took place between the duke of Burgundy and the dauphin ; but, at their interview, the duke was murdered by some of the attendants of the latter. Henry V. had renewed the war with France, had won the battle of Azincourt, and conquered Normandy. Filled with rage against the supposed author of the murder, the whole of the Burgundian party, with Philip, son of the late duke, at their head, and joined by the queen, agreed to the treaty of 142a Troyes with Henry, in which it was stipulated that on his marriage with Catherine, daughter of Charles VI., he should become regent, and succeed to the kingdom on the death of his father-in-law, to tlie exclusion of the dauphin and all the princes of the blood. Henry, during two years, governed the north of France, and his infant son, Henry VI., was, on the 1422. death of Charles, proclaimed king of France and England. Charles VII. was acknowledged only in the central prov- inces and in Languedoc, Poitou, and Dauphine. The duke of Bedford governed with vigor for young Henry, and the war was carried on to the advantage of the English. Charles, though brave and talented, was sunk in despair and pleasure. At length, the heroic Maid of Orleans appeared ; the affairs of Charles took a new turn ; Burgundy returned to his duty, 1449. ^"d the English were expelled from France. Master of his kingdom, Charles turned all his thoughts to restoring and extending the royal authority. He suppressed some risings of the nobles, and he formed his celebrated companies of or- dinance, a body of about 9000 cavalry, the first standing army maintained in Europe. 1461^ Louis XL, the Tiberius of France, showed the power es- tablislied by his father to be a despotism. The nobility saw 1464. the approaching ruin of their independence. A confederacy, named The League of the Public Weal, was formed against the crown, in which all the princes and great vassals shared, headed by the king's brother, Charles duke of Berri. By the peace of Conflans Louis was compelled to give Charles the duchy of Normandy as an appanage ;* but he soon deprived 1442. him of it, and at last gave him Guienne, where he died. Having diverted by money the invasion of Edward IV. of England, Louis turned all his thoughts to oppose the duke of i Burgundy. * An appanage was a provision made for a younger son of a king of France. It generally consisted of an extensive fief held of the ciown. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 229 John had given the duchy of Burgundy as an appanage to his third son Philip, and by marriage with the heiress of the count of Flanders he had gotten that province, Artois, Franche-Comte, and the Nivernois. Philip the Good, his grand- son, had acquired all the other provinces that compose the Netherlands. Charles the Bold, the present duke, was proud and ambitious : he engaged in war with Lorraine with suc- cess ; but being offended with the Swiss, he attacked them, a. d. and was defeated at Granson, in the Pays de Vaud, and again 1476. at Morat, near Friburg, witb prodigious loss. This day broke the power of Burgundy : Charles, with inferior forces, gave at Nancy battle to the duke of Lorraine, and perished in the 1477. fight. Charles left an only child, a daughter, named Mary. The true policy of Louis was evidently to obtain her in marriage for the dauphin ; but he preferred setting up a claim to the duchy, as having been an appanage, and therefore incapable of descent to females ; and he seized on Artois and Franche- Comte. This and other acts of perfidy incensed Mary, and she married Maximilian, son of the emperor of Germany. Mary did not long survive: she left a son, Philip, and a daugh- 1477. ter, Margaret. At the peace of Arras, the latter was con- tracted to the dauphin, and Franche-Comte and Artois were 1482, to be her dower. In this reign Provence was united to the French crown, by the will of Charles of Anjou. Charles VIIL was but thirteen years of age on the death 1483. of his father. Louis had appointed his daughter Anne, mar- ried to the lord of Beaujeu, to be regent. This was contested with her by the duke of Orleans, afterwards Louis XII. ; but the lady of Beaujeu stood her e-round, and ruled France, in spite of the Orleans party and their ally the duke of Britany. This last duke, like the duke of Burgundy, died leaving an only daughter. Her hand was sought by the duke of Orleans, whom she preferred herself, by the lord of Albret, of the family of Foix, and by Maximilian king of the Romans, now a widower. The French regent carried on a vigorous war against Britany.^ The duchess Anne, having no other means of escaping Albret, was married by proxy to Maximilian ; but 1489. was ultimately compelled to espouse Charles VIII., who was already betrothed to the daughter of Maximilian. This last was enraged at the slight put on himself and his daughter, but was appeased by Charles restoring Artois and Franche- Comte. Tlius was France, at length, consolidated into one great monarchy : the feudal system was at an end ; no internal dis- 230 OUTLINES OF HISTOUY. PARTI!." turbances were to be found, and sJie could now enter with dignity on the large theatre of Europe. England — The Plantagenets. 1274. Edward I., from the commencement of his reign, directeii his attention to the correction of abuses and the exact admin- istration of the laws. While thus engaged, an opportunity offered of interfering in Wales, and Jie reduced that country 1282. under the crown of England, from which it has never since been separated. A dispute arising about the right to the suc- cession to the Scottish crown, that nation referred the ques- tion to Edward, The English king appeared with a large army on the frontiers, advanced a claim of feudal superiority over that kingdom, to which the Scots were forced to submit, and he then gave the crown to the candidate whose claim 1296. appeared best founded. The Scots soon after took arms for their independence. Edward entered and conquered the whole country ; but still the spirit of the nation rose, and Ed- ward died on an expedition against that kingdom. It is gratifying to see vice punish itself: by his eagerness in this flagrantly unjust attempt on Scotland, Edward nearly lost Guienne to the French kmg ; the parliament, of which the commons were now become an essential part, acquired vigor, 1299. and the king was forced to give the Confirmation of the Char- ters by which the charters of Liberties and of the Forests were confirmed, and to bind himself to levy no contributions without the consent of the people. Edward was a monarch of great talent and capacity. 1307. Edward 11. was the very opposite of his father ; he aban- doned himself entirely to the direction of his favorites, at first of Piers Gavestone, and, after his death, of Hugh Spencer. In his wars with Scotland he reaped nothing but disgrace. His army was utterly defeated by the Scots at Bannockbum. Edward was married to Isabella, daughter of the king of France. She and the nobles conspired and deposed the king, and he was barbarously murdered by his keepers at Berkeley castle. A mild, inoffensive prince, he was unfit for those tur- bulent times. 1327. Edward III. was but fourteen years old when his father was deposed, and the queen was declared regent during his minority. She and her paramour Mortimer governed with such tyranny, that Edward was enabled to seize the reins of government, and to have Mortimer executed for his crimes. Unjust and expensive wars with France and Scotland, in which, no doubt, brilliant victories were gained, occupied nearly the whole of this reign. Owing to the king's conse- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OP THE PAPAL POWER. 231 quent great demand for supplies, parliament increased in power and influence, and three great principles were estab- lished ; to wit, the illegality of raising money without con- sent ; the necessity of the concurrence of the two houses for any alteration of the laws ; and the right of the commons to inquire into public abuses, and to impeach ministers. Edward instituted the order of the Garter. His reign was the noon of chivalry, of which himself and his son, the Black Prince, were the mirrors. ^^ i,. Richard II., son of the Black Prince, succeeded his grand- 1377. father, at the age of eleven years. In the fifth year of his reign broke out, in consequence of oppressive taxation, the 1381. great insurrection of the villeins, headed by Wat Tyler, Jack Straw, and others, in the suppression of which the king showed such courage and presence of mind as gave great hopes of his future excellence. But these hopes were de- ceived : Richard was proud, indolent, fond of pomp and ex- pense, and attached to favorites. Various methods were em- ployed to restrain him, but without effect : he had succeeded in obtaining power nearly absolute, when the duke of Here- ford, who had been unjustly banished, returned, during the king's absence in Ireland, to claim the inheritance of his father, the duke of Lancaster. All ranks and orders flocked to his standard ; the king, on his return, was deserted by his troops ; he threw himself into Flint castle, where, induced by the base treachery and perjury of the earl of Northum- berland, he surrendered. He was led to London, deposed by parliament, forced to abdicate, confined in Pomfret castle, and there murdered. 1399, Richard had no children; he had declared his cousin, Roger Mortimer, earl of March, son of Philippa, only daughter of Lionel duke of Clarence, second son to Edward III., his suc- cessor. Roger was killed in Ireland, and his eldest son was a boy of but seven years of age. Henry duke of Lancaster was son to John, third son of Edward III. ; he liad therefore evidently no right to the crown. But on the deposition of Richard he made a challenge of the crown, in terms in which were strangely mingled right of descent,* conquest, and merit. At all events, he was placed on the throne by the unanimous voice of lords and commons ; and as with Henry's small means it is idle to talk offeree, he was plainly a lawful * It was a vulgar notion that Eihnund earl of Lancaster, and not Edward I., was the eldest son of Henry III.; but on account of some personal de- formity, he had been set aside, and his brother imposed on the nation. The present duke of Lancaster was his heir by his mother; and if that story was true, lie was the true heir to the crowa. 232 OUTLmES OF HISTORY. PART 11. monarch, and no usurper. The constitution, however, re- A. D. ceived advantage from the defect in his title, and the com- 1402. mons advanced greatly in importance and influence. The Percies rebelled against Henry ; but he defeated them and their allies at Shrewsbury, and effectually crushed them. His government was firm and vigorous, and advantageous to the nation; and, but for the crimes by which the crown was ac- quired, he would be deserving of esteem as a monarch. His mind is said to have been harassed by remorse for what he had done, and no acts of unnecessary cruelty sully his reign. 1431. Henry V. succeeded with universal favor. He was young, brave, affable, and generous. He had not been long on the throne when he engaged in his wars with France, which gave England the pride of Azincourt, and placed his son on the throne of that country. In the midst of his glory he died in his thirty-fourth year at Paris. 1422. Henry VI. being but a year old at his accession, his uncles, the dukes of Bedford and Gloucester, administered the public affairs, and the bisliop of Winchester had charge of the king's person. Notwithstanding the great abilities of the duke of Bedford, the English affairs declined in France, and before the king was of age, nearly all the acquisitions of his father in that country were lost. After the death of the duke of Bedford, the duke of Gloucester and the bishop of Winches- ter, now a cardinal, contended for the direction of the king's 1443. councils. In the affair of the young monarch's marriage the cardinal was victorious, and married him to Margaret of An- jou, daughter of Regnier, titular king of Naples, a princess of masculine spirit and great ability and address. The duke 1447. of Gloucester was afterwards thrown into prison and mur- dered, a deed in which his uncle the cardinal, and perhaps the queen, was deeply concerned. A claimant to the crown now appeared. Richard duke of York was son to the earl of Cambridge, by Anne, sister of the late earl of March, in whom ended the males of the house of Mortimer. The rights of that family, therefore, centered in the duke of York, who was thus descended by his mother from the only daughter of the duke of Clarence, second son of Edward III. ; whereas the king was descended from the duke of Lancaster, third son of that monarch. The duke of York was a man of most amiable manners, of large posses- sions, of extensive connexions and influence. The loss of France, the hatred of the king's ministers, and, above all, the murder of the duke of Gloucester, had alienated the affec- tions of the people. A large body of the nobility, and the commons in general, sided with the duke of York, and re- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 233 course AVas had to arms. The battle of St. Alban's gained a. r>. by the Yorkists, was the commencement of a struggle which 1455. lasted thirty years, and in which were fought twelve pitched battles. The battles of Blore-heath and Northampton were 1460. gained by the York party. In the last the king was taken prisoner : but the spirit of Margaret was unbroken ; she col- lected a large army, to which the duke of York was impru- dent enough to give battle at Wakefield, where he was de- feated and slain. Here the queen and her friends commenced that ferocious system which, being imitated by the other party, casts on these wars such an aspect of horror and barbarity. The head of the duke of York was cut off, and fixed on the gates of York ; his son, the earl of Rutland, was murdered in cold blood ; the earl of Salisbury and other noblemen were executed by martial law. The claims of the duke descended to his son Edward, who gained the battle of Mortimer's Cross. The Yorkists were 146L defeated at St. Alban's. Edward now assumed the crown by a somewhat irregular popular election. Edward IV. was handsome, brave, affable ; but licentious, and barbarously cruel. The Lancastrians were defeated with great slaughter at Towton. Henry and Margaret fled to Scot- 1461. land ; but the indefatigable queen went to France, and in- ducing Louis XI. to assist her with some troops and money, she returned and raised another army, but was again totally 1464. defeated at Hexham. Margaret fled to France, and Henry, being discovered, was thrown into the Tower. The hopes of the Lancastrians seemed now quite crushed, when a cool- ness arising between Edward and the great earl of Warwick, called the king-maker, the latter entered into a treaty with Margaret, and drove Edward out of the kingdom, and re- stored Henry ; but in less than six months Edward returned, and Warwick was defeated and slain at the battle of Barnet. The very day of this battle, Margaret and her son, prince 1471 Edward, landed at Weymouth. Though at first overwhelmed at the tidings of the defeat and death of Warwick, she re- sumed her wonted spirit, collected an army, and marched to Tewkesbury. Here fortune proved once more adverse; the Lancastrian army was totally routed, the queen and prince taken, and the latter murdered, almost in the presence of Ed- ward. Henry soon afterwards died, nmrdered, as was said, by the duke of Gloucester in the Tower, and the hopes of the Lancastrians now seemed extinct. Edward V. was, it is said, with his brother the duke of 1483. York, murdered in the Tower by their uncle, the duke of Gloucester, who usurped the crown under the title of Rich- U2 234 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART II. ard III. The duke of Buckingham, who had aided Richard in his projects, being discontented, invited over the earl of Richmond, vv^ho had sheltered himself in Britany ; but hav- ing taken arms before the arrival of this nobleman, he was seized and executed by order of Richard. Richmond at his landing was joined by many ; Richard hastened to oppose j^. D. him : the engagement took place on the field of Bosworth. 485. Richard was slain fighting bravely, and Richmond was sa- luted king on the field of battle, by the title of Henry VII. . With Richard III. ended the line of Plantagenet, which had governed England with glory, on the whole, during three cen- turies. The new house was called that of Tudor, from the family name of Henry VII. The title of Henry was exposed to all the defects in the original Lancastrian title ; and even supposing that to be good, he was not the true heir of that family ; for he claimed through his mother Margaret, sole heiress of the duke of Somerset, sprung from John of Gaunt, duke of Lancaster ; but the line of Somerset derived from one of the children of John of Gaunt, by Catherine Swynford, during the life of his duchess, and was therefore illegitimate, and even adulte- rous ; and though Richard II, had legitimated these ehildren, they were never conceived to have any claim to the crown ; and farther, the mother of Henry was still alive. Edward IV. had left daughters, of whose title there could be no doubt, and Henry was to be married to Elizabeth, the eldest of them; but he had an aversion to that family, and he would not ap- pear to owe his crown to his wife. During all his reign he was very tender on this subject of his title. 1486. After a good deal of delay, he married the princess Eliza- beth, but he never loved her. The duchess of Burgundy^ sister of Edward IV., raised up two impostors against him, each pretending to be Richard duke of York,* who had es- caped from the Tower ; but the vigilance of tlie king easily crushed all attempts against his crown. The chief defect in Henry's character was avarice ; his great object was the de- pression of the nobility, a point the more easily to be effect- ed, as most of them had perished in the civil wars. The landed proprietors obtained power to alienate their estates ; and as commerce had greatly increased, luxury extended, and many of the commons had amassed wealth, the object nearest Henry's heart was rapidly effected, though we are * The fate of this prince and his brother is involved in singular mystery. It may very reasonably be doubted whether Perkin Warbeck was an impos- tor or not. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 235 not, perhaps, to compliment his sagacity with having fore- seen it. Wars betioeen France and England. As they were now at an end, the present seems a good oc- casion of giving a consecutive view of these useless and dis- astrous wars. When Edward III. laid claim to the crown of France,* his a. d. first care was to strengthen himself by alliances with the ^^^®* duke of Brabant, the count of Hainault, his father-in-law, and other princes near the Rhine ; and as the English had been for some time connected by trade with the Flemings, and that people, who were in rebellion against their earl, were governed by James van Artiveld, a brewer of Ghent, Edward sought to gain that demagogue to his side, and he succeeded in his object. Thus supported, Edward collected an army, and entered France; but nothing of moment oc- 1339. curred in this first campaign, and the funds of the English monarch being exhausted, he was obliged to return home. The following year Edward gained a naval victory over the French, and entered France at the head of 100,000 men ; but Philip declined engaging, and a truce was concluded for a year. During the truce, affairs took such a turn in Britany as engaged the two kingdoms again in war. Charles of Blois, nephew to the French king, had married the daughter of the duke of Britany, upon whose death the count de Montford, the next heir male, seized the duchy. Feeling he could not hold it against the power of France, he went over to Eng- land, and oflfered to do homage for it to Edward. Edward accepted the proposal, and sent over troops to assist his vas- sal. Montford had meantime been taken prisoner ; but his wife maintained his cause with masculine energy. This strug- gle was terminated by a truce for three years, on honorable 1343. terms for Edward and the countess. The truce was broken the next year. Edward invaded 1344. Normandy with an army of 30,000 men. Philip advanced 1346. at the head of 90,000. The English king, fearing to be sur- rounded, retreated towards Flanders. The bridges over the Somme were broken down, and a French force was on the opposite side ; but the English, having discovered a ford, passed over and drove off the French. As the rear-guard of the English was passing, the army of Philip came up ; but, the tide rising, it could not pass, and had to go round by the bridge of Abbeville. Fearing to march over the plains of * See p. 226. 236 OUTLINES OF IIISTORV. PARl^ ll. Picardy, exposed to the numerous cavalry of the French, Edward resolved to give battle, and he drew up his troops in three lines on a rising ground near the village of Crecy : the French advanced also in three lines ; but they were fatigued with their march, and disordered. The battle began about three o'clock in the day (Aug. 26), and ended in a complete victory on the part of the English. The French lost 40,000 men, among Vviiom were several of the nobility, 1200 knights, and 1400 gentlemen. A. D. Edward now invested Calais, which surrendered after a 1347. siege of twelve months. The inhabitants were expelled, and the town peopled with English. A truce was concluded, which the dreadful plague that ravaged Europe at that time caused to be prolonged. During the truce Philip died, and was succeeded by his son John. Charles king of Navarre, surnamed the Bad, son of Jane, daughter of Louis Hutin, entered secretly into cor- respondence with the king of England, into which he drew even the dauphin ; but that prince afterwards repenting, be- trayed the king of Navarre to his father, who threw him into prison. Philip, brother of the king of Navarre, put all his fortresses into a state of defence, and called on Edward for 1358. assistance. The war was renewed. Edward the Black Prince, eldest son of the king of Eng- land, commanded in Guienne. He ventured with an army of 12,000 men to advance into the French territory. John collected a force of 60,000 men, and came up with him at Maupertuis, near Poitiers. The Black Prince offered to sur- render his conquests for a safe retreat : he was refused : he then prepared for battle, and drew up his little army with the utmost skill (Sep. 19). The usual impetuosity of the French luirried them to tlie attack, and the battle ended in the utter roLit of the French army, and the captivity of their king. The generosity of tlie Black Prmce to his captive, only paralleled by that of Alp Arslan,* is well known. John was 1357. led to Bqurdeaux, and thence to England, and a truce was concluded for two years. France was now in a complete state of anarchy ; but the truce and the want of money prevented Edward's deriving any advantage from it. At the expiration of the truce, he invaded and ravaged that kingdom ; but findmg he could not make a durable impression, he concluded the peace of Bre- 1360. tigni. The terms of this peace were, that John should pay three millions of crowns of gold for his ransom ; that Edward * See p. 189. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 237 should give up all claim to the crown of France, and to Nor- mandy, Touraine, Maine, and Anjou, for which he was to re- ceive Poitou, Saintonge, Lagenois, Perigord, the Limousin, Quercy, and other neigliboring places, with Calais, Guisnes, Montreuil, and Pontliieu ; all in full sovereignty, no homage for them or Guienne to be due to the crown of France. Charles V. succeeding John, who died soon after the peace of Bretigni, the terms of which were never executed, some of the Gascon nobles appealed to him, as the superior lord, against the heavy taxes laid on them by the Black Prince, in consequence of his expedition to Spain. That able monarch, who had now terminated the disorders of his kingdom, sum- moned the prince to appear in his court at Paris to answer the complaint of his vassals. Edward replied that he would, but it would be at the head of 60,000 men. But his health was declining ; he was obliged to return to England ; and a. r>. the war terminated in the English being stripped of Guienne, 1370. except Bourdeaux and Bayonne, and of all their conquests but Calais. During the reign of Richard II. the war was' carried on languidly. One of its most remarkable events was the duke of Gloucester, the king's uncle, having the hardihood to march 1380. out of Calais at the head of 2000 horse and 8000 foot, enter the heart of France, and ravage all the country till he joined his allies in Britany. The duke of Burgundy came within sight with a much superior army ; but such was the terror the French felt of the English, that he did not venture to attack them. Some years afterwards, the king of France 1386. made preparations for invading England ; but his fleet was dispersed by a storm, and many of the ships^ taken by the English. The Gascons put themselves, in this reign, once more under the government of England. Both parties were now anxious for peace ; but as the terms could not be ad- 1396. justed, they agreed on a truce for twenty-five years, and Richard was affianced to Isabella, daughter of Charles, a princess only seven years old. On the murder of Ricbard, the French king made some 1401. show of avenging his death ; but on the princess Isabella being given up, he renewed the truce with Henry IV. Towards the end of his reign Henry began to take some part in the quarrels of the Orleans and Burgundy factions in France : he 1411. sent a small body of troops to the aid of the latter, and after- wards a larger to that of the former. Henry IV. had when dying exhorted his son not to let the 1415. English nation remain long at rest. Henry V. therefore, 238 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. MUT It. taking advantage of the distracted state of France,* sent am- bassadors to Paris with most exorbitant proposals. He de- manded the crown of France (or at least reserved his right to it), Normandy, Touraine, Maine, Guienne, and the homage of Britany and Flanders, the princess Catherine in marriage, and 2,000,000 crowns of gold as her dower, and the arrear of king John's ransom. The French offered him Guienne and Saintonge, and a dower of 800,000 crowns. Henry forth- with prepared for war ; he collected a fleet and army, con- sisting of 6000 men-at-arms and 24,000 foot, at Southampton, landed in Normandy, and took the town of Harfleur. Having dismissed his transports, he was obliged to march his army to Calais by land. An army of 14,000 men-at-arms and 40,000 foot, under the constable d' Albert, was now collected in Nor- ; mandy. Henry offered to give up Harfleur for a safe passage to Calais: this offer was rejected: he marched by slow jour- neys till he reached the Somme, which he intended passing where Edward had passed, but found it strongly guarded : he at length seized a passage near St. Quijitin, and got safely over. He now marched for Calais; but on ascending the heights near Blangi (Oct. 25) he saw the whole French army drawn up on the plain of Azincourt. Henry's army was now reduced by^ disease and the sword to about 15,000 men. His situation was similar to that of Edward at Crecy, and of the Black Prince at Poitiers, and he made the same judicious dis- positions. The French acted with the same impetuosity and imprudence: the final result was similar. Of the French 10,000 were slain, among whom were the constable himself and some of the chief nobility ; 14,000 were made prisoners, among whom were the dukes of Orleans and Bourbon, and many other nobles of high rank. The English lost but forty men. Want of funds preventing Henry, like his predeces- sors, from taking full advantage of this victory, he returned to England, having made a truce with the enemy. During this truce the animosity between the Armagnac and Burgundian parties raged with the greatest violence- Henry collected an army of 25,000 men, and landed in Nor- mandy: several towns surrendered, and, being reinforced with 15,000 more, he formed the siege of Rouen. The queen and the duke of Burgundy now made a treaty with him simi- lar to that afterwards made at Troyes ; but before it was com- pleted the dauphin and duke of Burgundy entered into a secret treaty to share the supreme power, and expel the in- vader. But the murder of the duke taking place, his son in- * See p. 22a CHAP. VII. DECLINE OP T^IIE PAPAL POWt:R. 230 - stantly formed a league with the king of Englan.l, and the treaty of Troyes was conckided. All the nortli of Frji^ice was rapidly conquered, and the dauphin driven beyond the a. d. Loire. In this state of aifairs, Henry V, died. 1422. The duke of Bedford prosecuted the war with vigor. The battle of Verneuil, in which the only army of the king of 1421. France was defeated wnth great loss, seemed to have given the finishing stroke to his fortunes. Bedford resolved to pene- trate into the south of France, and for that purpose formed the siege of Orleans. Every effort was made to defend this city, 1428. on which the hopes of France now seemed to depend. The siege was tedious, but the English were gradually gaining ground, when that wonderful visionary, Joan of Arc, appeared to restore the sinking destiny of France. A secret horror thrilled the English soldiers, which their officers either shared or could not remove ; defeat attended them everywhere ; the provinces and towns of France returned joyfully to their al- legiance; the duke of Burgundy was reconciled to his sove- reign, and the English were, in a few years, driven out of every part of France but Calais. Thus, happily for both 1450. countries, ended all the magnificent projects of the conquest of France. ^ Scotland. From a very early period Scotland had been governed by kings. These were frequently engaged in wars and alliances with the northern princes of the heptarchy. When Duncan king of Scotland was murdered by Macbeth, an army was sent by Edward the Confessor against the usurper, and Mal- colm, the rightful heir, was restored to the throne. This prince espoused the sister of Edgar Atheling, and many of the English fled to Scotland from the tyranny of the Con- queror. The Scots began now to make occasional inroads into England. In one of these, William king of Scotland was taken prisoner by Henry II., and, as a part of the condi- tions of his liberty, was forced to do homage for his whole kingdom, the Scottish kings having hitherto done so only for Cumberland, which they held. Richard I., however, , re- nounced this right. On the death of Alexander III., near a century afterwards, 1286. a dispute arose about the succession to the Scottish throne. That monarch having left no descendant but a granddaugh- ter, who did not long survive him, the right fell to the de- scendants of David earl of Huntingdon, third son of David I. ; of these John Baliol was grandson of Margaret, the earl's eldest daughter ; Robert Bruce was son of Isabel, his second 240 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART IT. daug-hter. The rules of succession not being- at that time well established, it was a doubtful question which was the true heir. To avoid a recourse to arms, the parliament of Scotland determined to refer the matter to the arbitration of Edward I., a prince extolled for wisdom and prudence. Ed- ward seized this occasion of obtaining the sovereig-nty of Scotland : he appeared on the frontier with a large army, and compelled all the Scottish nobles, including the two candi- dates, to swear fealty to him as liege lord ; he made them give him possession of the kingdom, and then declaring Baliol the A. D. true heir, put him in possession of it, on his renewing his 1292! oath of fealty. The Scottish nation, and even their king, were indignant at being thus trepanned and degraded ; a secret alliance was formed with France ; a dispensation of the king's oath of fealty was procured from the pope ; and, on being summoned to appear in an English parliament at Newcastle, Baliol re- 1296. fused to attend. Edward entered Scotland at the head of 30,000 foot and 4000 horse, and quickly overran and subdued the entire kingdom. Baliol was forced to submit and implore forgiveness, English garrisons were placed in the fortresses, and earl Warrenne left governor. This earl being obliged to return to England on account of his health, the administration was left in the hands of Ormsby and Cressingham, who oppressed the people without mercy. A gentleman, named William Wallace, was so provoked as^ to kill an English officer. Knowing he had no mercy to ex- pect, he fled to the woods and collected a party, with whom he continually harassed the English ; numbers joined him ; several of the principal barons countenanced hiin ; and the whole country was on the eve of rising, when Warrenne col- lected an army of 40,000 men, and suddenly returned. Mak- ing an attack on the camp of Wallace, near Stirling, the English were totally routed, and Cressingham slain. The nation now rose, and bestowed on Wallace the title of regent. The English were expelled ; but Edward, who had been in Flanders, returned, collected an army of 80,000 men, and entered the country. The Scots ventured to give him battle at Falkirk (June 22), when they were routed with great 1298. slaughter. They still carried on the contest ; but Wallace was betrayed by his friend Sir Jolm Monteith, and the intrepid 1305. patriot was executed in London as a rebel. Tvohf^rt Er^c^, who had been in the English service, now btopped forward to defend his own and his country's rights. The Scottish nation rose once more ; the English were driven out of the country, and Bruce was crowned at Scone. Ed- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 241 ward now found he had all his work to do over again ; he sent an army, under Aymer de Valence earl of Pembroke, who defeated Bruce, and forced him to take shelter in the Western Isles. The king was himself advancing, deter- mined to wreak his vengeance on the Scots, when he sick- a. d. ened and died at Carlisle, with his last breath charging his 1307. son to prosecute the war. Edward II. was anxious to get back to England, and after a few feeble efforts he left Scotland. Bruce, who had returned, made himself master of the whole kingdom except a few for- tresses, and even made inroads into England. Edward was roused; he collected a large force, and entered Scotland. The English army was 80,000 strong ; that of Bruce did not exceed 30,000. But he ventured to give them battle at Ban- nockburn, near Stirling (June 14,) where he totally defeated 1314. them. This victory, one of the most glorious ever obtained, secured the independence of Scotland, and reduced to nothing all the hopes founded on the iniquitous attempt of Edward I. One more fruitless effort was made by Edward, and a truce 1323. was then concluded for thirteen years. On the death of Robert Bruce, who left a son, a minor, Edward III. secretly encouraged the son of John Baliol to put forward his claim to the Scottish kingdom, raised a small 1332. army, with which he landed on the coast of Fife, and ad- vanced into the heart of the country, where he defeated the Scottish army of 30,000 men, under the earl of Mar. He then took Perth, and was crowned at Scone. But havmg dismissed the greater part of his English followers, he was soon after driven back into England. He here made large offers to Edward, particularly engaging to renew the homage which had been given up by Mortimer in Edward's minority, if he would assist him to regain his throne. Edward collected a large army ; the Scots encountered him at Halidon-hill, near Berwick (July 19), and were defeated with the loss of nearly 1333. 20,000 men and the chief of their nobility. But still Scot- land was unconquered. The English forces might overrun and destroy the country ; but as soon as they retired, the na- tives repossessed it, and again bade them defiance. David, the son of Robert Bruce, had taken refuge in France, but had returned, and driven Baliol out of Scotland. 1346. At the solicitation of the king of France, with whom he had made an alliance, he invaded England. Queen Philippa, at the head of 12,000 men, met him at Neville's Cross, near Durham (October 17,) and the Scottish king was defeated and taken prisoner. After a captivity of ten years, he was released for a ransom of 100,000 marks. V 242 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. TART 11. A. D. Richard II. invaded Scotland, at the head of 60,000 men, 1385. and ravaged the country, as usual; but in the mean time 30,000 Scots retaliated on the west of England, and Richard 1401. returned without having effected any thing, Henry IV. led an army into Scotland to no purpose. The Scots immediately 1402. after invaded England, but were defeated by the Percies at Humbledown, The Scots afterwards aided the Percies in their rebellion, ^ Robert III, of Scotland was a feeble prince : his brother, the duke of Albany, seized the government and aimed at the throne : to effect this purpose, he resolved to remove his nephews ; and he threw David, the elder, into prison, where he perished of hunger, Robert, to save James, his younger 1407. son, sent him to France; but the ship was taken by the Eng- lish, and Henry IV, refused to restore the young prince to liberty, Robert died of grief; and now, by possessing the person of the young king, Henry was able to keep the duke of Albany in dependence, and secure his kingdom from in- roads. He, however, gave the young monarch an excellent education. Ever since the time of Edward III,, the French and Scot- tish nations had been in strict alliance against'the common enemy. When Henry V. had had such a career of success in France, the Scottish nation and the regent saw plainly that they must submit if that country was conquered, and a 1421. body of 7000 men was sent to the aid of the dauphin, who treated them with great favor. Throughout the war, Scottish volunteers crowded to the French standard ; and, in the reign of Henry VI., the duke of Bedford recommended it as the best policy, to marry the young king of Scots to the king's cousin, the daughter of the earl of Somerset, and give him 1423. his liberty. This was done, and James, during his short reign, proved one of the greatest of the Scottish monarchs, 1437. He was murdered by his kinsman the earl of Athol. During the wars of the Roses, Scotland was too much distracted by factions to be able to take any advantage of the state of Eng-, land. In the reign of Henry VII., James IV, gave counte- nance and assistance to Perkin Warbeck ; but the war was 1502. happily terminated by the marriage of the Scottish monarch with Margaret, eldest daughter of Henry. Scandinavia. Denmark and Norway we have seen early formed into monarchies. Sweden remained longer divided into small in- dependent districts. The Swedes and Goths at length agreed to form one state, to be governed alternately by a Goth of the CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 243 race of Svercher, and a Swede of that of Eric. The natural a. d. consequence was endless assassination. In the 14th century 1153. the race of Odis in Sweden was extinct, and a foreigner was placed on the throne. In the same century, the ancient lines in Denmark and Norway ended with Waldemar and Olaf. Margaret, daughter of the former, mother of the latter, was heiress to both. She defeated Albert of Mecklenburg king of Sweden, and forced him to abdicate, and then, by the Union 1398. of Calmar, united the three Scandinavian kingdoms. Mar- garet, having no children, was succeeded by her nephew Eric, of the ducal house of Pomerania, but he was driven out of the three kingdoms. Christopher, a duke of Bavaria, was 1439. invited to Denmark, and the other kingdoms submitted to his government. On his death Christian, son of the count of 1448. Oldenburg, was chosen king of Denmark, and by his mother, who was sister to the count of Holstein, he obtained that country, which was now made a duchy. Norway followed 1459. the example of Denmark ; but Carl Cnutson and Steno Sture maintained the independence of Sweden agamst him and his two successors. Poland. The Poles are a portion of the Slavonians, the last great race which arrived in Europe. They were at first divided into several small states, for ever at war with each other. When they embraced the Christian religion, they united un- der the government of a duke. In the thirteenth Century, 1295, Przemysl, of the house of the Piasti, assumed the royal dig- nity. This race ruled Poland five hundred years, and it ended with Casimir the Great, in 1370. He was succeeded by his 1370. sister's son, Louis of Anjou, king of Hungary, also named the Great. This king left only daughters: Sigismund of Luxemburg, the husband of Mary, the eldest, was king of 1382. Hungary, and Louis had provided for the continued union of the two crowns ; but the Poles and Hedwig, his other daugh- ter, rejected that arrangement, and that princess gave her 1386. hand to Jagellon, great-prince of Lithuania, who with his people embraced the Christian religion. The kingdom flour- ished greatly under this king : its export of corn was con- siderable. In the reign of his son, by the choice of the Hun- 1437. garians, the two countries were agam united ; but this young monarch lost both life and crown in the battle of Varna, 1444. » against the Turkish sultan Moorad. His brother Casimir succeeded him in Poland, and was one of the greatest princes of his time. He made great ac- quisitions from the Teutonic order of knights. Casimir reign- 244 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. ed nearly half a century, and saw Vladislaus, one of his sons, kingf of Hungary and Bohemia. Hungary. The house of Arpad ruled four hundred years in Hungary, A. D. and ended with Andrew HI. On the death of this monarch, 1301. the people were split into various parties ; that of Charles 1310. Robert, of the Neapolitan branch of the house of Anjou, pre- vailed, and he was called to the throne. His vigor and wis- dom, in the course of a long reign, raised the kingdom to great 1343. glory ; and the long reign also of his son Louis still further increased its power and dignity. But Louis unfortunately 1382. died just as the Ottoman power was growing formidable on the frontiers, and the kingdom was again distracted by fac- 1386. lion. Sigismund, a stranger, was chosen king, and reigned for more than half a century. He lost the battle of Nicopolis to the Turks ; but circumstances prevented their attempting to follow up their victory. Sigismund was succeeded in the empire and in Hungary by his son-in-law, Albert of Austria. 1437. Albert's successor, Ladislaus, being a posthumous child, the Hungarians gave the crown, for his minority, to Vladislaus king of Poland. On his death John Hunniades was made re- 1456. gent, and at the battle of Belgrade he gave an effectual check 1458. to the Ottoman power. The young king lived but two years after Hunniades; and the nation then chose Matthias the son of the valiant John Hunniades, to be their sovereign. Mat- thias was the greatest prince of his age, and in his wars with Austria and Bohemia victory always attended him. On his 1490. death, the Hungarians elected Vladislaus, son of Casimir king of Poland, already king of Bohemia. The Ottomans. When the Mongols of Chingis Khan had burst through the barriers of Khowaresm over Persia and Lesser Asia, Suleiman, 1224. one of the noblest of the Turkish tribe of Oghuz, migrated at the head of 50,000 souls from Khorassan to Armenia. After remaining seven years in that country, Suleiman prepared to return to his former abode ; but chancing to be drowned in crossing the Euphrates at Jaaber, his followers dispersed. A part remained in Syria, another part went to Lesser Asia. Of the four sons of Suleiman, two returned to Khorassan ; the two younger, Dindar and Ortoghrul, retired with four hundred families to the mountains east of Erzeroom, and thence roved westwards, to seek a retreat in the dominions of Ala-ed-deen, the great prince of the Seljookians of Iconium. On their way, they came to where two armies were fighting ; CHAP. VII. DECLINE OP THE PAPAL POWER. 245 Ortoghrul chivalrously resolved to assist the weaker, and his aid turned the scale. It was Ala-ed-deen whom he made victorious over an army of Tatars ; and the grateful sultan bestowed honors and pasture-land on his ally. This land, the cradle of the Ottoman power, is the Sanjak of Sultan Oni, the ancient Phrygia Epictetos. Here they fed their herds on the mountains in summer, and in winter descended into the plain ; and they lived in amity with the neighboring subjects of the Greek emperors. Osman, the son of Ortoghrul, resolved on conquest. His dervishes excited the courage of his soldiers, and he estab- a. d. lished a kingdom in Bithynia, of which Brusa, at the foot of 1299. the Mysian Olympus, became the capital. It is from this monarch that the western Turks derive their appellation of Ottomans, or more properly Osmans. In the time of his son Orchan, a great part of Lesser Asia 1326. was subdued by the Turkish arms. The isles of Greece felt their power : the court of Constantinople was split into fac- tions ; civil war raged in the empire ; each party sought the aid of the Turks. John Cantacuzenes, a man of talent and virtue, on ascending the throne, felt that its strength was gone, and retired to the solitude of mount Athos. His suc- cessor, John Palseologus, was sunk in pleasure. Under the reign of Orchan the Ottoman institutions, one of which was the formation of the corps of Janizaries {Yeni-cheri, new sol- diers) were established, chiefly under the direction of his brother and vizier, the able Ala-ed-deen. Moorad (Amurath), the son and successor of Orchan, took 1359. Adrianople, the second city of the empire, and made it the European capital of his dominions. By marriage he acquired the greater part of Kermian, and by purchase he gained Hamid. Philippopolis was taken from the Greeks; but Moorad found a more obstinate resistance from the Servians and BrJgarians. He fell at Cossova, assassinated by a valiant 1389. Servian youth. Bayezeed (Bajezet) Yilderim, i. e. Lightning, a brave but headstrong prince, succeeded his father, and his first act was to put to death his only brother. The forces of Western Europe, Germany, Hungary, and France, commanded by Sigismund, king of Hungary, the counts of Nevers, la Marclie, and Eu, the admiral de Vienne, the marshal Boucicault, the lord of Coucy, and several others of the prime nobility of France and Germany, with 60,000 men, advanced to Nice- 1396. polls. Bayezeed led against them a more numerous host. The Christians fought with their wonted valor, but yielded to the numbers and the discipline of the Moslems: their V2 246 OUTLINES OP IIISTORY. PART 11. leaders were slain or made captive. Sigismund escaped to the Danube with five companions, and thence to Constanti- nople. Bosnia was overrun by Bayezeed, and he was pre- paring to invest Constantinople a second time, when the progress of his conquests westwards was checked by the ap- proach on the east of the Tatars under Timoor. Bayezeed A. D. hastened to oppose them. On the plains of Angora he fought 1402, with a courage worthy of his race, but was defeated and taken 1402. prisoner. Grief and vexation caused his death, and the con- queror restored his body to the sepulchre of his fathers. The captivity and death of Bayezeed weakened and dis- tracted the Turkish power : the sons of the captive sultan contended with each other ; and it was only by the wisdom 1413. of Mohammed I. and his vizier Bayezeed that the empire re- gained its vigor. His son, Moorad IL, a valiant and merci- 1422. fill hero, subdued the greater part of what remained to the Greek emperors. John VII. in vain sought aid in Europe ; in vain he visited Italy, and agreed to an union of the churches. The union was rejected by the Greek clergy, and theological controversy reigned more violently than ever in the falling empire of the East. Moorad having made peace with Hungary, adhered to it faithfully. But while he was at Magnesia, in Asia, the papal legate released the Hungarians from their oath, and they seized this opportunity of assailing the Ottoman do- minions. King Vladislaus and John Hunniades marched to the Black Sea. Moorad appeared ; the battle was fought at 1444 Varna. In the front of his array Moorad displayed the vio- lated treaty. Victory was long on the side of the Christians, when Moorad, it is said, pointing to the treaty, called aloud on God to avenge their perjury, and at that moment the young king rushed amid the ranks of the Janizaries and fell, and victory declared for the sultan. This excellent prince, twice during his reign, resigned his crown for the enjoyment of a private life, but was each time recalled to the throne by the danger of the state. 1451. Moorad's son, Mohammed II., joined to the- valor of his father a greater spirit of enterprise. The doom of Constanti- nople was now fixed. It had stood in magnificence for 1123 years, had seen its western rival more than once open her gates to the conqueror, while itself had but once submitted, and had quickly resumed its dignity ; but now its dynasty and its religion were to change, the rovers of the steppes were to lord it in the palace of the Caesars, and the crescent was to replace the glittering cross on the summit of its great temple. Mohammed invested the city : during fifty days the CHAP. VII. DECLINE OP THE PAPAL POWER. 247 massive walls were assailed by artillery of enormous size and power. The Turks at length burst in : Constantine, the last of the Csesars, fell at the breach, sword in hand, with a a. d. courage worthy of the greatest of those whom he represented. 1453. The city was plundered, the inhabitants sold into slavery. The Peloponnesus was speedily overrun, and the little 1461. empire of Trebizond, which had lasted 258 years, submitted at the appearance of Mohammed. The Palaeologi in the Peloponnesus were forced to yield to the Ottoman arms ; but in Albania, George Castriot (called for his valor by the Turks Scanderberg, i. e. Prince Alexander) resisted the Turkish power with success as long as he lived. The battle of Bel- grade checked effectually the progress of Mohammed on the side of Hungary. The Servians were completely subdued. The voivode of Wallachia, the merciless Drakul, made a more vigorous defence ; but he was defeated, and that country also reduced to submission. Caramania was forced to submit to the rule of Mohammed ; but the knights of Rhodes repelled him from their island. The Tatars*— Timoor. Timoor (i, e. Iron) was descended from Berla, the Emir- 1335. ul-umera of Jagatai, the son of Chingis Khan. The youth of Timoor was spent in freebooting and the chase : in his twenty-seventh year he rendered important military service to the emir Husein of the house of Jagatai, who then ruled over Khorassan and Transoxiana, against the khan of Tur- kestan. The hand of the emir's sister was his reward ; but on her death within four years, Timoor cast off allegiance, and war broke out between him and the emir. On the death of the latter Timoor occupied the throne, and fixed his resi- dence at Samarkund. He turned his arms first against the sultan of the Jetans ( Getce ?) and the shah of IQiowaresm, then subdued Khorassan, and ravaged Persia during three years: with the speed of light he now swept over Great Tatary, and shortly afterwards feasted his host on the banks 1391. of the Volga. A^ campaign of five years wasted Persia; and Bagdad, Mesopotamia, Koordistan, Armenia, and Georgia were conquered by the Tatars. Timoor next poured his 1398. hordes over the fertile plains of India. The plunder of Delhi rewarded their efforts, and he pursued the flying Indians to * We consider the distinction between Tuvks and Tatars to have been clearly shown by M. Klaproth: the former are of Caucasian, the latter of Mongol race. Yet the Tatars of Timoor appear rather of mixed race ; at least, Timoor himself is described of a fair and ruddy complexion, very dif- ferent from that of a Mongol. Tartar, the corruption of Tatar, owes its origin to a pun of St. Louis on Tatar and the Latin Tartartis. 248 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. FART II. the sources of the sacred Ganges. The same year the Tatar conqueror wintered on the plains of Karabagh, west of the ■ Caspian ; in the spring he laid waste Georgia, took Sivas, one of the finest and most populous cities of Lesser Asia, and cruelly put the garrison to death; conquered all the A. r>. towns to Aleppo, defeated there the Egyptian army, and took 1401. that city ; and, at length, made a general massacre of the in- habitants of Bagdad. Timoor wintered once more on the plains of Karabagh. The princes whom Bayezeed had robbed of their dominions had cast themselves on the protection of the Tatar, and Ti- moor prepared for war with the ha.ughty Ottoman. Negotia- tion was tried in vain ; Bayezeed was hardened in obstinacy, and in the neighborhood of Angora, on the very plain where Pompeius had defeated Mithridates, the Turkish armv of 120,000 men engaged the Tatar host of 700,000. From m'orn- 1402. ing to night of a burning day (July 20) endured this last battle of either monarch, and it ended in the total rout of the Turkish host, and the captivity of its leader. The tale of the iron cage is a fabulous legend. The Tatars- overran all Les- ser Asia; Timoor reached Iconium. Bayezeed died of apo- 1403. plexy at Akshehr (March 8), and two years afterwards Ti- moor breathed his last on his march against Chma. Timoor left his empire to his grandson Peer Mohammed Jehangheer ; but this prince was unfortunate in the contest for the crown with his brother Khulleel Sultan, and the em- pire eventually fell into the hands of Shah Rokh, the virtuous son of Timoor. But at length the fortune of the house of Timoor was forced to yield before tliat of the Usbegs ; and after a glorious struggle against Shybuk Khan the Usbeg, the able and celebrated Baber retired to Hindoostan, and founded that great empire, the nominal sovereign of which, his lineal descendant, still sits, a monument of fallen great- ness, in Delhi, beneath the protection of a British company of merchants. It was while Baber was on the throne that the Portuguese first appeared on the coast of Malabar. The Turkman tribes of the Black and the White Wether, so named from their standards, had fixed themselves on the western frontier of Persia. On the death of Timoor they advanced into that country : the former tribe e-stablished its empire in Aderbijan and the adjacent provinces ; the latter extended its power over nearly the whole of Persia. They encountered the arms both of the descendants of Timoor and the Ottoman sultans. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 249 Spain. The peninsula contained now four Christian kingdoms, Castile, Aragon, Navarre, and Portugal ; and one Mohamme- dan, Granada. Alfonso X., the Wise, king of Castile, was chiefly distin- a. d. guished by his attachment to science, and by his code, the 1252. Siete Partidas. His son Sancho rebelled against him, and disquieted the latter part of his life. The reigns of Sancho and his two successors were periods of anarchy and turbu- lence. Peter the Cruel surpassed all his predecessors in 1350. tyranny and crime. A rebellion, headed by his illegitimate brother, Henry of Transtamara, supported by Aragon and Portugal, broke out, and drove him from his throne. Henry was aided by Bertrand du Guesclin and the companies of adventure who had been engaged in the wars between France and England. Peter fled to Guienne, and implored the aid of the Black Prince, promising to give him Biscay in case he should restore him to his throne. The British prince en- tered Spain, recalled to his standard the companies of adven- 1367. ture, defeated Henry at the battle of Navarrete, and took du Guesclin prisoner. But Peter's ingratitude causing him to retire in disgust, Henry again appeared, and he defeated and 1369. slew with his own hand the savage tyrant. The reigns of Henry H. and his two successors, John I. and Henry III. (1368 — 1406) were tranquil ; and these princes merited the affection of the people by their observance of tlie laws. John II. being but fourteen months old at his 1406. accession, the government was wisely administered during his minority by his mother and his uncle Ferdinand. On his > attaining his majority, the golden period terminated ; the re- mainder of his reign was a series of conspiracies and civil 1454. wars. Henry IV., son of John, was solemnly and unjustly deposed by a party of his factious nobles, who set up his 1465. brother Alfonso against him, and a civil war ensued. These nobles had accused Henry's queen of adultery, and maintain- ed that Joanna, their only child, was illegitimate. Accord- ingly, on the death of Alfonso, his sister Isabel was regarded as the heiress. She agreed to a treaty with Henry, by which 1469. the succession was secured to her ; but Henry took the first opportunity of rescinding the agreement, and on his death the parties had to appeal to arms. Isabel, who was married 1474. to Ferdinand infant of Aragon, was supported by that power. Joanna was betrothed to Alfonso king of Portugal, and her mother was a princess of that family ; she was, therefore, supported in her claim by the strength of that kingdom. The 250 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART If. A. D. 1476. king of Portugal, however, was defeated at Toro, and all Joanna's partisans gradually submitted to Isabel. Aragon, though not so extensive as Castile, equalled it in power. Its government was better, its sovereigns wiser, its trade far more extensive. The valor of the Cid had given it Valencia ; the Balearic isles were added to it ; a long and sanguinary contest had, at the commencement of the four- teenth century, brought Sardinia under its dominion ; and in this century it acquired Naples and Sicily. 1410. On the death of Martin king of Aragon, the succession was disputed by five competitors, the count of Urgal, grandson of James, next brother to Peter IV. ; the duke of Gandia, grandson of James 11. ; the duke of Calabria, son of Violante, youngest daughter of John I. ; Frederic count of Luna, natu- ral son of the younger Martin king of Sicily; and Ferdinand, infant of Castile, son of the late king's sister. The cortes of Aragon, Catalonia, and Valencia named nine persons, three of each, to hear and decide the claims; and, after solemn de- liberation, the crown was adjudged to Ferdinand of Castile. 1416. This prince was succeeded by his son Alfonso V., who was made king of Naples, where he passed the greater part of his reign, governing Aragon by his brother and successor John 1479. II. On the death of John, the sceptre of Aragon passed to his son Ferdinand, who was married to Isabel queen of Cas- tile, and thus the two monarchies were united into one great kingdom, never again to be divided. Ferdinand now felt him- self strong enough to attack Granada, and end the conflict which had lasted for eight centuries. The war commenced ; civil dissension rent the Moorish kingdom ; a party aided the Christian invaders ; yet the conquest of Granada cost ten " years of bloody and mcessant warfare. At length it surren- 1492. dered (Jan. 2), and Spain, in full strength and vigor, was prepared for her conflicts with France. The little kingdom of Navarre passed continually by fe- males to the French houses of Bigorre, Champagne, Evreux, Foix, and Albret. But the kings of Aragon had made them- selves masters of the greater part of it. Portugal. Alfonso X. of Castile, had obliged Alfonso, the Restaurador of Portugal, to swear that, for his conquest of Algarve, he 1279. would attend him in his wars with fifty lances. Diniz, the able successor of the effeminate Sancho, prevailed on the king of Castile to abolish this mark of the dependence of Por- tugal. 1357. Pedro, the grandson of Diniz, was an able, just, and vigor- CHAP. Vn. DECLINE OP THE PAPAL POWER. 251 ous prince : he contended with spirit against the power of the church, which was excessive in Portugal, and held it in check. Ferdinand, his feeble son, left an only daughter, married to^ John king of Castile, and Portugal was in imminent danger a. d. of losing her independence. 1383. A conspiracy was formed against the queen-dowager, who was regent, and her partisans : John, a natural son of king Pedro, and grand master of the order of Avis, was at the head of it. The conspirators rushed into the castle where the queen resided, and Ruy Pereira slew before her eyes her favorite count Ourem. The people rose ; the bishop of Lisbon was flung from the tower of his cathedral ; the queen fled to Castile ; the master o^ Avis was appointed regent. The king of Castile (John I.) entered Portugal with an army. Most of the nobles were on his side : the commons were for Don John, and liberty. At the battle of Aljubarrota, 7000 Portu- 1385, guese defeated more than four times their number of Cas- tilians, and the master of Avis was proclaimed king of Por- tugal. His reign of forty-eight years was the most brilliant period Portugal had yet seen. The Portuguese chivalry 1415. crossed the strait, and conquered Ceuta from the Moors. Dis- covery was prosecuted along the coast of Africa, through tlie generous eflbrts of his son Don Henry, and Madeira and the Azores were added to his dominions. While his grandson 1459. Alfonso V. was carrying on war with success against the Moors of Fez, adventurous mariners had passed the line, set- tled on the Gold Coast, and discovered Congo. The Cape of Good Hope was doubled by Diaz. Discovery of America. The progress of the Portuguese along the coast of Africa, the discovery of new nations, and the knowledge of the in- correctness of the ideas of the ancients respecting geogra- phy, aided by the compass, and the courage and skill acquired by navigating the stormy seas of the north, had prepared men for bold and distant voyages. The great problem was, the passage by sea to India : this the Portuguese sought by the circumnavigation of Africa. CJiristopher Columbus, a Genoese, a man of great naval skill and courage, by reflecting on the magnitude of the earth, now known to be globular, had con- jectured that, by sailing westwards, a ship might, after passing over a moderate space of sea, arrive at the coast of India. Pieces of carved wood, natural productions, and even the bodies of men had been thrown ashore in different places by the waves running from the west : various traditions were current of a land to the west having been formerly visited. 252 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. All these circumstances combined, convinced Columbus that, by sailing due- west, a ship must, within a moderate space of time, reach a country which, he was firmly persuaded, must be India. Under this impression, he made, as he thought him- self bound to do, the first proposal of attempting the discovery to his native city Genoa. Meeting with no encouragement there, he applied to the king of Portugal, in whose capital he resided ; but Don John was too firmly bent on the course which the Portuguese had been so long pursuing to hearken to him. Columbus now sent his brother Bartholomew to Henry VII. of England : he went in person to Ferdinand and Isabel of Spain. Bartholomew was taken by pirates, and did not reach England for a long time, by which means that coun- try probably lost the honor of the future discovery. Christo- pher, after long soliciting at the court of Castile, at length obtained a small squadron from Isabel, elated with the recent ^ J, conquest of Granada. 1492. With three small vessels, carrying but 90 men, Columbus sailed from the port of Palos on the 3d Aug. 1492. He steered westwards, and proceeded a long way without meeting any signs of land : his crews began to grow terrified and muti- nous : Columbus soothed and pacified them. At length, one morning (Oct. 12), the coast and woods of St. Salvador, one of the Bahamas, rose before them, — and the New World was discovered. Sailing farther on, they arrived at Cuba and His- paniola, or St. Domingo ; and Columbus returning to Spain with intelligence of his discoveries, all Europe was filled with wonder and conjectures. The new country was named West- India, so convinced were men that it could be no other than a part of India, of which they had such indistinct concep- 1493. tions. The next year Columbus discovered Puerto Rico, 1498. Guadaloupe, and Jamaica. In his third voyage he discovered Trinidad, and a part of South America, which he knew not to be a continent. The ungrateful return made to the ser- vices of this great man, are too well known, and too conso- nant to the usual practices of courts, to need mention. He 1506. died four years after his fourth and last voyage, poor and neglected, at Valladolid. While Columbus was prosecuting his discoveries to the west, the court of Portugal, having now ascertained Africa to be circumnavigable, had sent a fleet under the command of Vasco da Gama, round Africa, in quest of India. He sailed from the Tagus on the 9th of July, 1497, and on the 18th May, 1498, he reached the port of Calicut, on the western coast of India. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 253 The middle ages here terminate. They began in ignorance, anarchy, and confusion: knowledge and order now regain their dominion. The discordant elements of theocracy, mon- archy, feudalism, and democracy, which had been in ceaseless conflict during this period, have so modified one another, as to make the fit state of transition to- the blended form which characterizes that which follows. W OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART IIL MODERN fflSTORY. CHAP. I. VIEW OF THE STATE OF EUROPE. Introduction. At the commencement of the middle ages the great em- pire of Rome was fallen to pieces from internal corruption and decay : the stream of hardy population which poured down from the north had burst all the opposing mounds and dikes, and overflowed the whole of the western empire. Taste and learning, long declining, were almost extinct ; the Christian religion, now that of all parts of the empire, was corrupted and debased ; and in that state it was embraced by the rude conquerors, and farther degraded by the admixture of their barbarous tenets and practices. The clergy acquired from the superstitious fears of the people wealth, influence, and power; they ruled the laity with despotic sway, and bishops made kings tremble on their thrones : the pope, as head of the church, sought to draw all this power to himself, and then to make it a source of emolument. The papal do- minion had finally attained a height unparalleled in the history of man; but, like every otlier empire, its ascent only led to its descent. The extravagance of the papal pretensions became apparent when learning began to be cultivated, and its gradual decline has marked the last period of those ages. One great empire arose in Europe after the fall of Rome ; but it fell to pieces when the vigorous mind which had erected it was gone. Europe was divided into small states, and war, internal and external, raged without ceasing ; a haughty in- dependent nobility insulted kings, and tyrannized over the people. The barbarians of the North and the East, and the en- thusiastic warriors of the Koran, overran", pillaged, and de- stroyed the fairest regions of the West. The intercourse of nations, except in war, was small ; trade and commerce hardly existed ; the merchant was subject to be plundered openly by CMAP. I. VIEW OF THE STATE OP EUROPE. 255 the stranger-lord, and to be pillaged by the arbitrary taxation of his own. Gradually the night Was seen to pass away ; monarchs be- gan to extend their power, and to perceive that it was their true interest to protect the people against the tyranny of the nobles, and to bring these last under obedience ; the church Osed her extensive power for the same purpose ; the people gradually acquired wealth; their towns were secured by charters and immunities granted by the crown or the feudal lord, and where the crown was feeble, voluntary associations secured them from the rapacity of the nobles. The latter ac- quired a relish for luxury : to obtain money, they alienated or let their lands, and soon felt that they had transformed their obedient retainers into sturdy inciependent yeomen and citizens. The lamp of learning was relumed ; the study of the scho- lastic theology and philosophy, and of the Roman law, sharp- ened metf s intellects ; travels into the East enlarged their knowledge of the earth; the use of the mariner's compass emboldened their navigation; gunpowder changed the face of war ; paper, and at length the art of pi'inting, gave a more rapid diffusion to knowledge ; the taking -of Constantinople scattered the learning of the Greeks over tlie West ; schools and universities were numerous ; men were become eager for knowledge ; classical learning was, in Italy, cultivated with ardor, and a strong feeling of admiration for the institu- tions and philosophy of antiquity excited ; the discourses and writings of Wickliffe, Hnss, and their disciples awakened be- yond the Alps attention to the important topics of religion ; the discovery of India and the New World filled menu's minds with vague aspirations after adventure, conquest, wealth, and knowledge. A universal fermentation was going on. Such was the state of the European mind, at the com- inencement of modern history. The political condition of Europe was chiefly that of extensive monarchies, internally tranquil, and ready to turn their entire forces against each other. We will commence this part by a view of their re- spective conditions. England. The wars of the Roses had greatly thinned the English nobility and gentry : they were weary of civil conflict, and quietly submitted to the arbitrary rule of Henry VII. All the barriers of liberty erected under the Plantagenets were thrown down, and England became in this, and still more in the following reign, nearly an absolute monarchy. The 255 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. daughters of Henry VIT. were married, one to Louis XII. king of France, the other to the king of Scotland. Wales A. D. was incorporated with England ; over Ireland she held a du- 1509. bious dominion. Henry was succeeded by his son of the same name. France. All the great fiefs had been reunited to the crown. Flushed with power, her sovereign Charles VIII. now, at the invitation of Sforza duke of Milan, put forth his claims to the kingdom 149.5. of Naples. At the head of 20,000 French, and 6000 Swiss, he speedily achieved the conquest of it. But the discontent of the Neapolitans, and the league of the pope, the emperor Maximilian, Ferdinand of Aragon and Castile, the Venetians, and the duke of Milan, forced Charles to leave that kingdom. On the banks of the Tanaro, in the Parmesan, the allied forces waited for the enfeebled French army as it emerged from the passes of the Apennines. The French, with a loss of 200 men, routed three times their number, leaving 3000 of them on the plain. 1498. Louis XII., named the Father of his People, Etsserted his claim to Milan and to Naples : he conquered them both, but was unable to retain them. Germany. 1493. Maximilian succeeded his father Frederic in the empire. By marriage with the heiress of Burgundy he got all the pos- sessions of that house ; and on the death of his cousin Sigis- mund archduke of Austria, the Austrian dominions fell to him. The diet of Worms, held during the reign of this emperor, established a perpetual public peace in Germany, by adopting vigorous measures for the suppression of private warfare, and by providing a paramount court of justice — the Imperial Chamber. Russia, Poland, Scandinavia. After casting off the yoke of the Tatars, the Russian princes exerted themselves to establish trade and communication 1505. with Western Europe : Vasilius kept up a good understand- ing with the emperor Maximilian, and granted great privi- leges to the Hanse towns. The Poles and Russians now engaged in war with each 1515. other, and the former lost Smolensko and Pleskov. In Scandinavia the contest for the independence of Sweden was prosecuted. The Russian tsar entered into a treaty of partition against Sweden, with Christian II. of Denmark. CHAP. I. VIEW OP THE STATE OF EUROPE. 257 Switzerland and Savoy, Louis XL, when dauphin, had led a body of troops into a. d. Switzerland, where the reception he met with, combined 1444. with the g^reat victories of the Swiss over the duke of Bur- gundy, inspired him with such a respect for them, that he all his life courted their alliance. His policy was followed by liis successors. The Swiss now began to hire out their troops, and they played a conspicuous part in the wars of Italy. An attempt was made by the emperor Maximilian to revive the supremacy of the empire over the Swiss, and bring them under the jurisdiction of the imperial chamber; but in the war that ensued their success was decisive, and an honorable 1499. peace was made with them. Savoy had been latterly enfeebled by minorities. Its dukes were rather good than great princes, Italy. Philip, the last of the vile race of the Visconti, dukes of 1447. Milan, left only an illegitimate daughter, married to Fran- cesco Sforza, the great condottiere who commanded the troops of the duchy. Sforza made himself duke, and gov- 1450. erned with prudence and justice. His son Galeazzo was mur- dered ; but the widow. Bona of Savoy, maintained the duchy 1478. for her son John Galeazzo. I^dovico Moro, brother of the murdered prince, destroyed his nephew by a slow poison. 1494. Fearing the king of Naples, whose daughter had been mar- ried to John Galeazzo, he excited Charles VIII. of France to assert his claims, derived from the house of Anjou, to Naples, promising him the aid of himself and other Italian powers. But Sforza afterwards joined the league formed against Charles ; and Louis XU. advanced his claims to the Milanese, derived from his grandmother Valentina Visconti. He con- 1500. quered and held the duchy twelve years. The house of Este governed as vassals of the empire, or the church, with ducal title, Ferrara, Modena, and Reggio ; the Gonzaga family ruled at Mantua, the Pico at Mirandola, the Malaspina at Massa, the Grimaldi at Monaco. At Rome, after some excellent, some indifferent popes, the papal chair was filled by Alexander VI., of the Spanish house 1492. of Borgia, a monster who might vie in vice with the Neros and Caligulas of ancient Rome. His only plan of politics was to secure a principality in Italy for his enterprising son, Ceesar Borgia ; and neither father nor son was deficient in the courage and iniquity requisite for the attainment of that W3 258 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART III, object. Alexander was succeeded by tlie warlike Julius II., who added Bologna to the papal states. Venice had acquired the kingdom of Cyprus : she was now at the zenith of her power ; she carried on a lucrative trade with the East, and was highly favored by the Mameluke sul- tans ; she was rich, and her army was the best in Italy. The discovery of the route to India by the Portuguese, and the conquest of Egypt by the Ottomans, gave her prosperity its death-blow. At Florence the wealthy and magnificent family of the Medici had been gradually increasing in influence. Cosimo de' Medici, called the Father of his Country, exerted a com- manding influence in the state. After the death of his son Piero, a conspiracy was formed against his grandsons, and Ju- lian was murdered, but Lorenzo escaped. The latter was afterwards restored to his country, and completed the destruc- tion of its liberties. The independence of Florence, as it was to fall, could not fall by a nobler hand. Lorenzo's patron- A. D. age of literature and the arts is known to every one. His 1492. death was regarded as an event fatal to all Italy. Louis XII. and Ferdinand of Spain having entered into a treaty for the conquest and partition of Naples, Frederic, the king of that country, could not resist such formidable oppo- nents. Naples was speedily conquered. The French army was enfeebled by the climate and disease, and disliked by the people. The wily Ferdinand and his general, Gonsalvo de Cordova, the Great Captain, took advantage of these circum- stances to drive the French a second time out of that kingdom. The League of Cambray. 1509. Lo'tlis XII., Maximilian, the king of Spain, and pope Julius 11. entered at Cambray into a league against the Venetians. The republic opposed to them firmness in her senate, skill and courage in her generals, fidelity in her subjects. Jealousy soon broke out among the confederates, and the emperor, the pope, the king of Spain united with the Swiss and the Vene- tians to drive the French out of Italy. Louis was forced to give way : the victory of the Swiss at Novara was decisive. 1512. Maximilian, the son of Lodovico Sforza, was restored to the dukedom of Milan. Spain and Portugal. 1 177. Before the taking of Granada the execrable tribunal of the inquisition had been planned by the minister Mendoza, and by Salez bishop of Cadiz, and in spite of the opposition of the people, the clergy, and even at first of the pope, introduced CHAP. I. VIFAV OV THE STATE OP EUROPE. 259 into Castile. It was directed against the Jews ; Torquemada, a Dominican, was the first great inquisitor ; and the tribunal, ^. j,. in its first year, committed 2000 persons to the flames. Great 1481. opposition was made to it in Aragon ; but it was introduced there by force of arms. Leon, Valencia, and Sicily resisted also, but with as little success. On the reduction of Granada, liberty of conscience had been secured to the Moors ; but a council, presided over by the archbishops of Granada and To- ledo, decided that Ferdinand and Isabel were not bound to keep faith with the infidels, and the Moors were brought within this sanguinary jurisdiction. The erection of this ini- quitous tribunal, and its close alliance with the throne, have been the main cause of the future decline of Spain, and of her being at the present moment the most degraded of na- tions. Portugal was still in her golden age under Don Manuel, commencing her guilty but brilliant career in Asia. Turkey. Mohammed II. was succeeded by his son Bayezeed, a prince of mild, peaceable temper. After a reign of thirty years he was forced to resign his throne to his son Selim, one of the 1512. greatest and most cruel of the Ottoman monarchs. Selim commenced his reign by the murder of his brothers and nephews, and the massacre of 40,000 Sheeahs, or dissenters from the orthodox faith, and he engaged in war with and de- feated, at Chaldiran near Tebreez, shah Ismail, the founder of the SufFavee dynasty in Persia. By force and negotiation he made himself master of Koordistan and Mesopotamia. As Kansoo Ghawree, the Mameluke sultan of Egypt, was the ally of Ismail, war against him was resolved on by Selim. The Mameluke advanced at the head of his army to the fron- tiers of Syria, and on the mead of Dabeek, not far from Aleppo, the hostile sultans engaged. The quantity of the 1516. Turkish artillery, and the inactivity of the Jelban (the second order of Egyptian troops), gave an easy victory to Selim. Ghawree, an old man of eighty years, died at a pool in the flight, and all Syria submitted. Peace was offered to and re- jected by the new sultan, Toomawn Beg. Selim crossed the desert, and entered Egypt. The treachery of Ghazalee, one of Toomawn's generals, and the superiority of his artillery, gave Selim another victory at Ridania, near Cairo, which city was taken, after a gallant resistance, and 50,000 of its inhabitants barbarously massacred. After bravely but vainly fighting for his empire, the " valiant, chivalrous, humane, up- right " Toomawn Beg was taken, and, at the suggestions of 260 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART lU. A. D. the traitors Ghazalee and Khair Beg, hanged at one of the 1517- gates of Cairo ; and Egypt was reduced to a province. The last khalif of the house of Abbas was sent to Constantinople, but he died on the way. The Ottoman sultans have ever 1520. since taken that sacred title. Selim died, after a reign of eight years. Persia. During this period Persia witnessed a not unfrequent oc- currence in the Mohammedan world — the erection of empire on the basis of religion. A family of sheikhs had long dwelt at Erdebil in that country. They passed their lives in the practice of that mystic contemplation called Sooffeeism, and derived their name of SufFavee from Suffee-ed-deen, one of the most distinguished of their ancestors, who died in the be- ginning of the 14th century. At the close of the 15th cen- tury, Jooneid, one of them, began to meddle in politics, and he was driven from Erdebil by Jehan Shah, the descendant of Chingis, and then prince of the Black Wether. He took refuge with Uzun Hassan, the powerful chief of the White Wether, who gave him his sister in marriage. Under pre- text of leading his followers against the infidel Georgians, he ravaged the country of the prince of Shirwan, against whom he fell in battle. His son Haider trod in his steps. He or- ganized his followers, and made them wear for distinction red caps, whence they, and afterwards all the Persians, were called by the Turks, in derision, Kuzzil Bashes {Red-heads). He also attacked the prince of Shirwan and besieged him in his castle of Gulistan ; but he fell in a conflict with the troops of Yacoob, prince of the Black Wether, who came to the re- 1488. lief of the besieged. His two sons were taken and confined; the Yacoob's successor gave them liberty. The eldest, re- belling, was slain ; the younger, Ismael, then but seven years old, was saved by the prince of Ghilan. In the 15th year of his age, Ismail, at the head of 7000 of his adherents, made war on the prince of Shirwan, defeated him, and fixed his throne at Tebreez, the capital of Aderbi- 1501. Jan. He next ravaged a part of the dominions of the peace- ful Bayezeed II. The princes of the Black and the White Wether, and the shah of Mazenderan, were all vanquished by him. All the land from the Caspian to the Persian gulf obeyed him : he extended his conquests beyond the Oxus, and defeated the great khan of the Usbegs. His power was now at its zenith: he engaged in war with Selim I., under pretext of supporting the claims of Selim's nephews, and avenging the massacre of 40,000 Sheahs, slaughtered by order of the A. D. CHAP. II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 261 Sultan. The Ottomans entered the Persian dominions : on the plains of Chaldiran, on the road to Tebreez, the armies of Ismail and Selim, each of 120,000 in number, encountered : 1514. victory declared in favor of the Turkish artillery, and Te- breez was taken and plundered. Want of supplies forced Selim to retreat, and Ismael subdued Georgia. He died shortly afterwards, and was succeeded by his son, Tamasp. 1523. CHAP. II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. Accession of Charles V. In the commencement of the sixteenth century the largest empire that Europe has seen since the time of Charlemagne, was ruled over by Charles, son of Philip, archduke of Aus- tria, and Joanna, heiress of Ferdinand and Isabel of Spain. From his grandmother he inherited the rich dominions of the house of Burgundy in the Low Countries ; the death of Fer- dinand gave him Spain, Naples, Sicily, and the New World. On the death of his grandfather, Maximilian, he got the pos- 1519. sessions of the house of Austria, and he and Francis, king of France, becoming candidates for the imperial dignity, the majority of the electors declared for Charles. The Turks, under the warlike Selim I., were now the enemy dreaded by Europe ; and the chief question with the electors had been, which of the rival monarchs would be best calculated to defend the empire against them : the circum- stance of Charles's Austrian dominions had turned the beam in his favor. The only other power of consequence in Europe was England, now governed by the vain, capricious, haughtj'^ Henry VIII., but whose size and situation prevented her having any idea of extensive conquest. Charles, in the views of universal empire which he early conceived, had, therefore, apparently only Francis to impede him ; but his own charac- ter, and the strength and resources of his kingdom, gave the latter such advantages, that only ambition could have blinded the emperor to the plain fact, that France was then, as ever, unconquerable. But there was just at this period a moral power arising, more effectual to check the ambition of the emperor than even the chivalry of France. The great reform- ution of religion Imd now commenced. 262 OXJTLtNES OF HISTORY. PART lit. The ReformaUon. The eyes of men had been gradually opened to the frauds and corruptions of the Romish church, and the rapacity of the court of Rome had alienated the minds of princes and people. The awakened love of knowledge led men to aspire after freedom of thought, and to feel heavy the yoke which the church of Rome, though never less intolerant or arbitrary, imposed in all matters relating to religious doctrine. Mental emancipation was panted after. A proper occasion and a bold leader were all that were wanting to excite the flames of spiritual rebellion. The occasion was soon presented, and the leader appeared. Leo X., of the family of the Medici, now filled the papal chair. Like his family, he was devoted to literature and pleasure, and tasteful and magnificent in his ideas and ac- tions. It is not improbable that, as he is charged, he re- garded the religion of which he was the head as merely a gainful fable ; and as he was now engaged in rearing that splendid temple, the glory of modern Rome, he found it need- ful to put in practice every mode of raising money of which the papal chancery could furnish a precedent. The sale of indulgences appearing most likely to bring in a large supply, A. D. they were issued in great quantities, and the disposal of them 1518. committed to the most active agents. The Dominicans sold in -Germany. The scandalous language and conduct of some of these men aroused the indignation of Dr. Martin Luther, an Augustinian, and professor of theology in the university of Wittenburg, in Saxony. He wrote and preached against indulgences ; he was listened to witli admiration : opposition excited him ; he had, though not profoundly learned, a strong sense of truth, and a vigorous imagination ; his eloquence was popular, his command of his native tongue great; his soul was full of love to his country and mankind, and his courage in maintaining what he held to be true, invincible. He read, he meditated, he entered into the spirit of the Scripture, and he felt how contrary to it were the practices and the claims of the church of Rome. He fearlessly expressed what he honestly thought ; he was supported by his university and his prince, the elector of Saxony ; he was summonsed to Rome ; but, at the request of the elector, cardinal Cajetan was sent to Germany, and Luther appeared and defended his opinions before the diet at Augsburg. When Charles obtained the empire, lie was again summoned, and appeared before the diet 1521. at Worms. He was dismissed ; and, under the protection of CHAP. 11. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 263 the elector of Saxony, he still continued to propagate his opinions through the north of Germany. In Switzerland, Ulric Zuinglius, a priest at Zurich, had, a. d. even earlier than Luther, opposed the sale of indulgences by l^l^- the Franciscans in tliat country. Not confining themselves to religious abuses, Zuinglius and his friends sought to unite religion with civil polity, and to preserve and exalt the tone of republican virtue and freedom. The opinions of the re- formers rapidly spread into France, the Low Countries, and England, already prepared for them by Wickliffe and his dis- ciples. Wars of diaries V. and Francis I. Francis, count of Angouleme, on succeeding his father-in- 1515. law, the late king Louis XII., was eager to signalize himself in the eyes of the world. He turned his views towards Italy, and resolved to recover Milan. The Swiss guarded the passes of the Alps against him: on hearing of his having entered boldly into Piedmont, they descended, and encountered the arms of France in the plain ; and modern times have wit- nessed few such obstinate conflicts as that which ensued on the field of Marignano, near Milan. The battle lasted two days, and the Swiss did not retire till one-half of their num- ber was slain. All the Milanese now surrendered ; Sforza resigned his claim for a pension, and Francis returned home, 1516, leaving Charles duke of Bourbon governor. The emperor Maximilian invaded Italy, but was repulsed, and he then made peace with France and Venice. The competition for the empire caused ill-will between Charles and Francis: each sought to gain Henry VIII. and his minister Wolsey. The art of the emperor prevailed over the frankness and generosity of the French king. The Spaniards were in rebellion ; Francis seized the op- portunity of recovering for John d'Albret, Navarre, which Ferdinand had unjustly seized. A French army entered and conquered it; but, venturing to advance into Spain, it was defeated, and Navarre recovered. Francis invaded the Low Countries without advantage. A league was now formed, between the pope, Henry VIII., and Charles, against the king of France. The Milanese, disgusted with the insolence and exactions of the French, resolved to expel them, and put themselves u"der Francis Sforza, brother to their late duke. The pope hired Swiss, and formed an army under Prosper Colonna to assist them. The French were defeated ; Lau- trec, their commander, fled to Venice, and they lost every thing but Cremona, the castle of Milan, and a fev/ other 264 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART III. X. D. places. Joy at this success is said to have terminated the life 1522. of Leo X. Francis sent money and 10,000 Swiss to Lautrec, who in- vaded the Milanese, but was defeated at Bicocca. Genoa, vv^hich was under the protection of France, was taken by Co- lonna, and the French now retained- only Cremona. The 1523. new pope, Adrian VI., the Venetians, the Florentines, and the other Italian powers, joined in the league against Francis, who was now without an ally ; and the emperor and the king of England were preparing to invade France on the south, north, and east. To add to the French king's difficulties, a conspiracy of the constable of Bourbon, who had been most iniquitously deprived of his estates by the malice of the king's mother, was discovered, and the delay occasioned by it pre- vented his heading the army he had assembled. He, how- ever, sent 30,000 men, under admiral Bonnivet, into Italy. Colonna, who commanded in Milan, dying at this time, was succeeded by Lannoy, viceroy of Naples, who was chiefly directed by the duke of Bourbon (who had escaped and en- tered the emperor's service), and the marquis of Pescara. i524. Bonnivet was defeated at the Sesia. In this battle fell the celebrated chevalier Bayard. 1525. Having been successful against the armies which invaded France, the passion for recovering the Milanese seized the French monarch. He marched at the head of a large army into Italy ; every place submitted : he sat down before Pavia, a town well garrisoned, and commanded by Leyva, one of the ablest Spanish officers. It was winter: every exertion was made by the imperial generals to collect an army ; fatigue and the rigor of the season reduced that of the French, weakened by a large part of it having been sent against Na- ples. The imperial army approached ; prudence counselled retreat ; romantic honor determined the king to stay. The imperialists attacked the French in their intrenchments ; the garrison made a sally ; the Swiss deserted their post ; the rout became general ; and Francis, after beholding the flower of his nobility perish by his side, was forced to surrender himself a prisoner. (Feb. 2). In a few w^eeks not a Frenchman was to be seen in Italy. Francis was rigorously confined : hard terms were proposed to him, but indignantly rejected. When taken, he had writ- ten to his mother the regent, " All is lost but our honor ;'* and she exerted herself with vigor to put the kingdom into a posture of defence. Henry VIII., now alive to the danger of Charles acquiring a preponderating power, listened to her proposals of an alliance, to which he was stimulated by Wol- CHAP. II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. Og5 sey, whom Charles had hitherto cajoled by a promise of the papacy, but who had now learned how little reliance was to be placed on the word of that monarch. Francis, at his own desire, had been removed to Madrid. It was long before he could get a sight of the emperor ; but when he threatened to resign in favor of the dauphin, and had fallen into ill health, Charles, who found that if he died he should lose all the advantages he proposed to derive from his captivity, and who also dreaded a confederacy against him, lowered his demands ; and a treaty was signed at Madrid, a. d. by which Francis agreed to surrender Burgundy, and to give 1526. his two sons as hostages till it was performed. The exchange was made on the frontiers, and Francis set at liberty. The states of Burgundy being assembled, protested against this surrender of their province ; the pope, Clement VII., absolved the king from the oath taken at Madrid ; and he and the kings of France and England, the Swiss, Venetians, Floren- tines, and Milanese, entered into an alliance, called the Holy League, to oblige the emperor to give up the sons of Francis for a reasonable ransom, and to reinstate Sforza in the duchy of Milan. The confederates took the -field in Italy ; but, Francis ne- glecting to send sufficient reinforcements, Bourbon overran the Milanese ; and his troops beginning to mutiny for want of pay, he led them to Rome. In tlie assault on that city (May 6), Bourbon himself was slain ; but Rome was taken, and experienced from the troops of the pious Charles such calamities as had never been inflicted by any of her barbarian 1527. conquerors in former times. The pope himself was besieged in the castle of St. Angelo, and forced to surrender. He was put into close confinement till he should pay an enormous ransom. The hypocritical Charles put his court into mourn- ing, and ordered prayers to be offered up for his release, which he might have accomplished by a single line. Henry and Francis were preparing to invade the Low Countries. On hearing of the pope's captivity, they changed the scene of war : Henry supplied money, and Francis sent an army into Iraly under Lautrec. The pope was set at liberty ; but Lau- trec dying, and Doria, the Genoese admiral, persuading his countrymen to revolt, the affairs of the allies declined, and the French army was ruined before Naples. Suleiman, the great Turkish sultan, had now overrun Hun- gary, and threatened the Austrian dominions ; the reforma- tion was making great progress in Germany ; Charles was, therefore, as well inclmed to peace as his adversaries. Mar- 1529, garet of Austria, aunt of the emperor, and Louisa, mother X 266 OUTLINES OF HISTORY, PART HI. of Francis, met at Cambray, and settled the terms of peace between them. Francis agreed to pay 2,000,000 crowns as a ransom for his sons, to sfive up all claims on Italy, and to resign the sovereignty of Flanders and Artois : Charles aban- doned all claim to Burgundy. The Italian states were not satisfied at being abandoned to the emperor ; but the dread of the Turks made him act with some generosity. He pardoned Sforza, and restored to him the duchy of Milan ; but the Florentines were reduced under the dominion of the house of Medici. Affairs of Germany. While Charles was engaged in the Italian wars, the opin- ions of the reformers had spread rapidly in Germany. While at enmity with the pope, the emperor was not very anxious to discourage them; but now, apprehending danger from them to the imperial authority, he resolved to take measures A. D. for their suppression. A diet was, therefore, convoked at 1529. Spire, which confirmed the edict of that of Worms against Luther, and forbade any farther innovation in religion. Against this decree, the elector of Saxony, the landgraf of Hesse, the duke of Liineburg, the prince of Anhalt, and the deputies of fourteen cities, protested ; and hence they, and the reform- ed in general, were called Protestants. 1530. Charles returned to Germany, and assisted at a diet at Augsburg ; at which the confession of faith of the Protestants was read and defended by Melancthon and others. A decree was issued against them, and coercive measures resolved on. The Protestant princes met at Smalcalde, and entered into a league for mutual defence, and a secret alliance with the kings of France and England. The Turks were now men- acing Hungary, and Charles saw that this was no time for violent measures. A treaty was, therefore, concluded, in which he granted the Protestants liberty of conscience till the meeting of a general council, and they engaged to assist him against the Turks. 1532. Suleiman entered Hungary at the head of 200,000 men. Charles took the command of 80,000 foot and 20,000 horse, besides a vast body of irregulars, near Vienna. The sultan retired ; and Charles returned to Spain, and engaged in a successful expedition against Tunis. While he was absent, the sect of the Anabaptists seized on the city of Miinster, and 1535. defended it for some time courageously against the troops of the bishop. CHAP. II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 267 Renetved War with France. While Charles was in Africa, Francis revived his claim on Italy. The king of England, eng-ag-ed about his divorce from Catherine of Aragon, declined having to do with the affairs of the continent; and the league of Smalcalde, indignant at the cruelties inflicted on some Protestants in Paris, refused to unite with Francis. The latter resolved, even without allies, to venture on war, under pretence of chastising the duke of Milan for the murder of his ambassador. He ap- proached Italy ; but instead of entering the Milanese, he seized a great part of the dominions of the duke of Savoy, who appealed in vain to Charles, whose exchequer was now completely empty. Meantime Sforza died without issue, and the rights, which had only been surrendered to him and his heirs, returned to Francis. Instead, however, of entering at once on the duchy, he wasted his time in negotiation, while Charles took possession of it as a vacant fief of the empire, though still pretending to own the equity of the claims of the French monarch. The emperor having now procured sufficient supplies of a. d. money, resolved on attempting the conquest of France. Hav- ^^^^ ing driven the French out of Savoy, he invaded the southern provinces at the head of 50,000 men. Two other armies were ordered to enter Picardy and Champagne. The system adopted by Francis was defensive. From the Alps and Dauphine to Marseilles and the sea, the country was laid waste ; strong garrisons placed in Aries and Marseilles ; one French army strongly encamped near Avignon, another at Valence. After fruitlessly investing Aries and Marseilles, and spending two months in Provence, Charles retreated with the loss of one- half of his troops by disease and famine. An attempt by Francis on the Low Countries, was followed by a truce at Nice, under the mediation of the pope, Paul III. ^^^ The emperor suppressed an insurrection which had broken out in the city of Ghent; but he was forced to make conces- sions to the Protestants in Germany, to gain their assistance against Suleiman, who had seized a part of Hungary. But the favorite object of Charles was the conquest of Algiers ; and in the end of autumn he, contrary to the advice of Doria his admiral, landed in Africa with a large army; but tem- pests scattered his fleet and destroyed his soldiers, and he was forced to re-embark, with the loss of the greater part of his 1541. men. The war between the rival monarchs broke out anew. The 1542. emperor was supported by the king of England and the Pro- 268 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART Hi. testant princes, to whom he had made farther concessions. Francis was allied with the kings of Denmark and Sweden, and he renewed the treaty he had formerly made with Sulei- A. D. man. During two years, France, Spain, Italy, and the Low 1544. Countries were the scenes of war ; but the only battle of con- sequence was that of Cerisoles, gained by the French, in which 10,000 Imperialists fell. A peace was concluded at Crespi. The chief articles were, that the emperor should give one of his own or his brother Ferdinand's daughters to the duke of Orleans, second son of Francis, and with her the duchy of Milan, and renounce all claim to Burgundy ; Fran- cis doing the same to P^aples, Artois, and Flanders ; and that they should unite against the Turks. Affairs of Germany. Charles was chiefly led to make the peace of Crespi by his desire to humble the Protestant princes, and extend his power in the empire. He therefore made also a dishonorable truce with Suleiman, and entered into an alliance with the pope. A general council had been assembled at Trent ; but tlie Pro- testants, seeing the composition of it, refused to submit to its decrees. Charles, as his schemes were not fully ripe, sought still to cajole them ; but they saw through his views, and had recourse to arms. Unable to resist them, he neg"otiated till he had collected an army ; but he still declined a battle. Mean- time Maurice, marquis of Misnia and Thuringia, a Protestant prince, who had not joined the confederates, secretly agreed to assist the emperor, on condition of getting the dignities and territory of his relative the elector of Saxony. He there- fore entered and overran the electorate. The elector returned with his troops to defend his dominions ; the city of Ulm sub- mitted ; its example was followed by others, and the whole confederacy fell to pieces, leaving the elector of Saxony and 1547. the landgraf of Hesse at the mercy of the emperor. The pope, meantime, seeing the ultimate and real designs of the emperor, withdrew his troops, and Francis negotiated an alliance with him, Suleiman, England, and Venice, and encouraged and assisted with money the elector and the land- graf A conspiracy, headed by Fiesco, broke out at Genoa, and every thing seemed to combine to throw Charles into perplexity, when the death of Francis, and the suppression of Fiesco's conspiracy, encouraged him to proceed with vigor in Germany. The elector was defeated and taken prisoner at Mulhausen, and obliged to resign the electoral dignity ; the landgraf of Hesse, who was father-in-law to Maurice, submitted, on the elector of Brandenburg and Maurice be- CHAP. 11. TIMES OP CHARLES V. 269 coming securities for his personal freedom ; but Charles, in contempt of them, made him a close prisoner. All the mem- bers of the Smalcaldic league were treated with the greatest rigor. Charles now thought he might proceed without opposition in enslaving the German nation. As the council had been a. d. removed from Trent to Bologna, and he could not now ex- 1548. pect to influence it as he desired, he protested against it, and had a system of doctrine drawn up and presented to the diet at Augsburg, to be conformed to till a proper council could be called. This system, called the Interim, sought to steer between the two parties, leaning, however, greatly to the church of Rome. It gave great offence at Rome, and could not be fully carried into effect in Germany. Shortly after- wards, Charles made a stretch of power even beyond estab- lishing the Interim. When pressed to set the landgraf of Hesse at liberty, he, by a public deed, annulled the bond which his securities had entered into with him. This began to open the eyes of the German princes, and they now mani- fested a spirit of resistance. His brother Ferdinand had been made king of the Romans by his influence ; but, anxious to transmit the empire to his son Philip, he tried to make the electors recall their choice, or at least place Philip next in succession to his uncle ; but the opposition made was so strong, that he was obliged to abandon his design. The Lutheran princes were now fully aware of the de- signs of the emperor, and Maurice saw that it was necessary to set bounds to them. Equal to Charles himself in dissimu- lation, he secretly made preparations against him, without losing his confidence. He contrived to get himself appointed general of the imperial army, sent to force the people of Mag- deburg to submit to the Interim, and after that object was effected, he, under various pretences, still kept that army in his pay. Charles, meanwhile, was residing at Inspruck, en- tirely occupied with the council, which had been brought back to Trent. Neither he nor Granville, his subtle prime minister, had any suspicion of the designs of Maurice, who had now formed a treaty with Henry II. of France. Having completed his preparations, he sent an embassy to demand the liberty of the landgraf It was refused. An army of 20,000 foot and 2000 horse being assembled, Maurice threw off the mask, and assigned his reasons for taking arms; namely, to secure the Protestant religion ; to maintain the German constitution ; to deliver the landgraf of Hesse from prison. The king of France added a manifesto, in which he X2 270 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART III. styled himself Protector of the Liberties of Germany and its captive Princes. The French troops havmg overrun Lorraine, Maurice traversed rapidly Upper Germany : the emperor negotiated. Maurice advanced with all the speed he could make ; and was so near surprising- the emperor, that he was obliged to fly into the Alps in a litter, in the midst of a dark rainy night. The council of Trent broke up, and did not reassemble. A conference was held at Passau : the terms proposed in the name of the princes of the empire were rejected by the em- peror. Maurice laid siege to Frankfort on the Main, and the haughty spirit of Charles was forced to bend. The treaty of A. D. Passau overthrew the fabric he had so long been raising, and 1552. placed the Protestant religion of Germany on a secure basis. His usual good fortune was now deserting Charles; he raised a large army, entered Lorraine, and laid siege to ■ Metz ; but was forced to abandon it with the loss of 30,000 men : he lost the footing he had established in Tuscany : the coast of Naples was ravaged by the Turkish fleet. In the following year he had some success in the Low Countries ; but the Anstrians were unfortunate in Hungary. Germany was now so tranquil, jjiat a diet assembled at Augsburg, arid 1555. by what is called the Recess of Augsburg established reli- gious peace in Germany, to the satisfaction of all parties. 1.558. To the surprise of all Europe, Charles abdicated his throne ; and, resigning his dominions to his son Philip, retired to spend the evening of his life in the monastery of St. Just in Spain. Having made a vain attempt to induce his brother Ferdinand to resign the dignity of king of the Romans, he left all his otlier dominions to Philip, now married to Mary queen of England, and formed for him a truce with Finance for five years. Ferdinand was- chosen emperor by the electors. England. During the reign of Charles V., England was governed by Henry VIIL, Edward VI., and Mary. Henry broke with the 1533. court of Rome, and seized on the monastic estates : he ex- ercised over his people the most arbitrary power that Europe, perhaps, has ever witnessed. Not merely his will, but his caprice, was law ; he dictated in religion, and murdered un- der form of ju.stice. In his foreign wars he made small and 1513. useless acquisitions at vast expense. The victory of Flodden Field, gained in the early part of his reign over the Scots, whose king, James IV., fell in the field, was the greatest 1547. achieved in this period by the English arms. Under Edward VI. the Protestant religion was much favored ; but his sister CHAP. II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 271 Mary, a bigot, and wife of the dark, malignant Philip, exer- a. d. cised such cruelties against the professors of the reformed 1553. faith, as have affixed in the minds of posterity eternal odium to her name. In her reign Calais, which England had held since the reign of Edward III., was surprised and taken by 1557 the duke of Guise. Spain and Portugal. The commons of Spain made a stand in favor of their hereditary liberties, and they rose in arms against the des- potism of the emperor, under the command of the brave Pa- dilla ; but the nobles not joining them, as, if they had known their true interest, they should have done, the commons were crushed, and the liberties of Spain have been ever since in abeyance. By the talents, the valor, and the barbarous cruelty of Cor- tes and Pizarro, the empires of "Mexico and Peru were at this time subjected to Spain. Don John III., a wretched bigot, with whom dates the de- cline of Portugal, introduced the inquisition and the new so- ciety of the Jesuits into that country. Priestly and regal authority conspired to oppress and degrade the nation. The Portuguese power was, meantime, under the valor and the ability of the great Albuquerque, Almeida, Castro, and others, extended from the gulf of Persia to the isles of Japan. At no period have greater actions been achieved : un- happily, they were disgraced by a spirit of savage cruelty and unprincipled rapacity. Italy. In the holy see the polished Leo X. was succeeded by the honest, well-meaning Adrian VI. It then passed to the timid, uncertain Clement VII., a Medici: next to the designing Paul III., only concerned to aggrandize the Farnesi, his own family : then to the lavish and tasteful Julius III. ; and, finally, to Paul IV., an aged monk, who fancied himself possessed of the power of a Gregory or an Innocent, and that the 16th century might be treated like the 13th. In Florence, Piero, son of Lorenzo de' Medici, had given lip Pisa and Leghorn to the French, when Charles VIII. in- 1494. vaded Italy. He was in consequence forced to leave the city ; his palaces were plundered, and a price set on the head of the Medici. The old republican tumults ensued. Julian and John, the brothers of Piero, now dead, were restored by the 1513. Spanish arms at the desire of pope Julius II. ; and John suc- ceeding that pope under the name of Leo X., his influence 272 OUTUXES OP HISTORY. PART lit. j^ jj strengthened his brother, and, after the death of Julian, his 1516. nephew Lorenzo, son of Piero. Lorenzo, equal to any of his family in the qualities that distinguished them, had meditated the extension of his power from sea to sea; but his early death, in his 27th year, cut short all his great projects. He left an only child, the celebrated Catherine, afterwards queen of France. Julius, the natural son of the brother of Lorenzo, who was murdered by the Pazzi, took the government. A conspiracy was formed against his power ; but he was supported by the emperor. He became pope as Clement VIL ; and Alexander, his own or Lorenzo II.'s natural son, governed Florence. He was obliged to fly when the pope was besieged by the army of Bourbon ; but when Clement made peace with the em- peror, Charles gave his natural daughter Margaret in marriage to Alexander, and engaged to restore him to the wealth and power of his family. Florence resisted ; and after the peace of Cambray the imperial arms besieged it for ten months, and forced it to surrender, and the emperor declared Alexander hereditary duke of Florence. The rule of this protege of the pope and the emperor was, as was to be expected, tyrannical i537. and oppressive. His death was owing to his vices. His cousin Lorenzino de' Medici, who had been the ready agent of his lust, resolved to destroy him. Under pretext of putting him in possession of the person of a lady whose beauty had in- flamed him, he decoyed him to his house, where he secretly murdered him. I^orenzino fled to Venice : the better-disposed citizens wished to re-ostablish the republic, but the Medici party forced the senate to declare duke Cosimo, descended from a brother of the first Cosimo, A subtle, cruel, and un- grateful tyrant, Cosimo oppressed the people, and banished 1557. those to whom he owed his power. He was himself but the mere slave of Spain. Cosimo added Sienna to his dominions, and in 1569 the pope, Pius V., conferred on him the title of Great duke of Tuscany. Genoa had, on account of her internal dissensions, put her- self under the protection of France, and her nobles had served in the army of Francis L She did not by this expe- dient escape the turbulence of the Adorni and Fregosi, whose feuds ran as high as ever. Andrew Doria determined to be the Timoleon of his country. He formed a league with Charles V., entered the port of Genoa, proclaimed an am- nesty, broke up the parties, and new-modelled the govern- ment, excluding only the Adorni and Fregosi from office. Doria sought neither power nor reward for himself; he never CHAP. II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 273 bore the office of doge. He died, honored and lamented, in a. d. his 94th year. 1560. Venice remained the most independent state in Italy, and was always on good terms with Charles V., by whose terri- tories she was now nearly surrounded. The popes had brought Bologna, Ravenna, and Ancona fully under their power. Parma and Piacenza were, with the consent of Charles V., given by Paul III. to his son Piero Farnese, and on his death to Ottavio Farnese, married to a natural daughter of the em- 1547. peror. Ottavio was succeeded by Alexander, the celebrated general of Philip II. Italy was now tranquil ; all her states either belonged to or were in amity and alliance with Spain. She had no disturb- ances to dread ; her ancient spirit declined ; she sank into luxury, occupied in the enjoyment of her arts and natural advantages. Denmark and Sweden. These countries do not yet enter on the great theatre of Europe. Christian II. had proved victorious, by the employ- ment of treachery and force, in the struggle for Swedish in- dependence. He w^as crowned at Stockholm, and he and his confederate, the archbishop of Upsala, by an almost unparal- leled piece of perfidy, publicly executed ninety-four of the Swedish nobles. But Gustavus Vasa, the son of one of those who were murdered, escaped from the prison in which he was confined, roused the miners df Dalecarlia to take arms for their country, and was successful in his first attempts; gradually all the people rose against the tyrant, Gustavus was elected king of Svv'eden, and he governed with wisdom 1523. and good policy. Gustavus established the Lutheran religion in Sweden, over which he reigned 37 years. 1560. Christian II. was for his tyranny deposed, and the crown given to his uncle Frederic duke of Holstein, who entered into an alliance with Gustavus and the Hanse towns against 1533. the deposed tyrant. Frederic's son. Christian III., was one of the best prmces of the age. He also established the Lu- theran religion in his dominions. He died a year before Gus- 1559. tavus. Turkey. Suleiman I., called by the Christians the Great and the 1520. Magnificent, by his own subjects the Lawgiver (Kanooni), the greatest of- the Ottoman monarchs, succeeded his father Selim. In the first year of his reign a war broke out with Hungary, in which Belgrade and other fortresses were taken 1522. 274 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART lit. by the Ottomans. The following year the island of Rhodes was conquered, after a most gallant defence made by the knights of St. John. In the second Hungarian campaign of j^ P_ Suleiman he took Peterwaradin, and the Hungarian king, 1526. Ladislaus, lost the battle and his life on the plain of Mohacs, and Ofen, the capital of Hungary, opened her gates. In a J 529. tliird Hungarian campaign Ofen was taken by storm, Vienna was besieged ; but Suleiman was forced to retire from before 1532. its walls. Suleiman again invaded Hungary at the head of 200,000 men ; but he was unable to overcome the resistance 1534. of the town of Gims. A war with Persia, in which Tebreez was again taken, and which gave Bagdad to Suleiman, next followed. Khair-ed-deen Barbarossa, the celebrated corsair, con- 1535. qiiered Tunis for Suleiman ; but it was retaken, and restored to Muley Hassan, by the emperor Charles V. Suleiman next conquered the isles of the Archipelago, and he fitted out a 1547. fleet in the Red Sea, to oppose the Portuguese in India. Two more campaigns against Hungary followed, and peace was at length concluded with Ferdinand and the emperor ; but war soon broke out again. A large fleet and army were sent against Malta, which the emperor had given to the knights 1565. of St. John ; but the valor of the knights forced them to retire with disgrace. Suleiman, the greatest of the Ottoman sul- tans, headed his armies in thirteen cam.paigns, and gave the empire its greatest extent, at which it continued for more than a century ere it began to decrease. Genius and learn- ing were encouraged by this munificent prince, whose reign was the Augustan age of Turkey ; but the deaths of no less than ten princes of the blood, most of them his sons and grandchildren, fix an indelible stain on his memory. CHAP. III. TIMES OF PHILIP II. State of Europe at Philip's Accession. No monarch ever ascended a throne with fairer prospects than Philip II. ; none ever had himself more thoroughly to blame for the extinction of his brightest hopes. His father had left him Spain, humbled under absolute power, but not yet degraded by it, Milan, Naples, and Sicily, the Nether- lands, Mexico, and Peru, now in the vigor of their gold and silver harvest; he was married to the queen of England ; his unele was emperor of Germany, king of Bohemia and Hun- CHAP. III. TIMES OF PHILIP II. 275 gary, and possessor of the Austrian dominions. Genoa and the Catholic cantons of Switzerland were allied with Spain ; Venice feared her ; the pope was obliged to support a pi-ince who proclaimed himself the defender of the faith. His nephew, Sebastian king of Portugal, was a child, France, after the death of Henry II., had fallen into weakness and confusion. Saleiman had been succeeded by Selim, a weak unenterprising prince. Finally, the Spanish armies were still the first in Europe,^ and were commanded by the duke of Savoy^ Don John of Austria, and the prince of Parma, three of the greatest generals of the age. Philip^s own character, thoughtful, reserved, patient, inde- fatigable, might seem well calculated to make the most of all these advantages ; but it was the very defect of his character that lost him them all. A gloomy superstition pervaded every region of his mind, and tinged every thought. Religion, with him, was the one thing needful ; but his religion consist- ed in external observances, and in the belief of the absurdest doctrines of popery. Steadfastness in this religion justified every crime ; nothing was to stand in tlie way of his plan of reducing the Christian world under the one faith and the one master. And all was sacrificed to this chimera. The first operations of Philip^s reign were fortunate. The pope insisted on Henry II. not adhering to the truce of Vao- celles ; the war was renewed, and Philip's able general, Phil- ibert duke of Savoy, gained the battle of St, Quintin. The Spanish arms were everywhere successful, and the pope and Henry were glad to treat of peace ; a measure grateful to Philip, who was anxious to return to Spain, and who had all along had his doubts of the lawfulness of bearing arms against the pope. Mary of England was at this time dea,d, and her sister JElizabeth had ascended the throne. Philip and Henry were suitors for the favor of the young queen ; the former sought her hand. All parties were anxious for peace. A a. d. treaty was, therefore, easily entered into at Chateau Cam- 1559. bresis ; and as almost all the states of Europe were included in it as principals or allies, a general peace and repose was produced by it. Charles V. had died the year before ; Mary of England was dead ; Henry II. was killed at a tournament shortly after the peace ; the restless Paul IV, survived him but a few weeks. A new set of actors enter on the scene. France. Henry II. was succeeded by his eldest son, Francis II,, the husband of Mary the young queen of Scotland, Protestant- 276 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. ism had made considerable progress in France. The king of Navarre, the prince of Conde, the admiral Coligni, his brother Andelot, and several other persons of the highest rank, were attached to the reformed faith. The powerful family of Guise, princes of Lorraine, uncles to the young queen, supported the old religion. Francis was persuaded by them to revive the laws against heresy. The A. D. Protestants (in France called Huguenots) saw- their danger, 1560. and resolved to anticipate it, A conspiracy was formed to seize the king. It was detected, and the accomplices pun- ished. But an assembly of the states was held, and the penal laws suspended. The Guises, however, resolved to proceed, and the kmg of Navarre and his brother the prince of Conde were seized and imprisoned. The sudden death of Francis checked their career. His young brother, Charles IX., came to the throne, and the queen-mother was appointed guardian. As " divide and govern'^ was the maxim of Catherine, she gave high office and power to the Protestant leaders, as a counterpoise to the influence of the Guises. 1562. The policy of the queen did not produce the desired effect. Animosity ran high between the two parties. The attend- ants of the duke of Guise insulted some Protestants at their worship, and sixty of the latter were slain. The Protestants all over France took arms ; fourteen armies were levied in different parts of the kingdom. The conflict was carried on with the most extreme virulence. Several of the principal cities of France, as Orleans, Rouen, Bourges, Lyons, Tours, were in the hands of the Huguenots. Philip of Spain sent 6000 men to aid the Catholics. Conde, the head of the Protestants, addressed himself to Elizabeth queen of England, and an army was levied in Germany by Andelot and led to Orleans. The king of Navarre and Montmorency had joined the Guise party : the former was killed at the siege of Rouen ; the latter commanded at the battle of Dreux, the first fought between the parties. 1563. The duke of Guise laid siege to Orleans. While engaged in it, he was assassinated by a Protestant gentleman named Poltrot. His death was an irreparable loss to his party, and they now willingly came to an accommodation with the Protestants. But the peace was intended only to lull the Protestants. Catherine, though utterly devoid of principle, had a hatred of the reformed faith, and a zeal for the ancient one. A meet- ing was concerted at Bayonne between Charles and his sister, the queen of Spain. Catherine accompanied her son ; the duke of Alva attended his mistress. Festivities and gaieties CHAP. III. TIMES OF PHILIP II. 277 of every kind occupied each day. All apparently respired joy and peace : but the tempest was secretly brewed in the summer sky. A Holy League was formed between the courts of France and Spain : the glory of God was to be pro- a. d. moted, heresy in the dominions of botli extirpated. 1566. The Protestants of France soon learned what had been concerted. They flew to arms ; a battle was fought at St. Denis, in which they were worsted. They laid siege to 1568. Chartres, and forced the court to agree to a peace. This peace was of short duration : the queen-mother laid a scheme for seizing Conde and Coligni ; they fled to Rochelle ; the war was renewed. The duke of Anjou commanded the Catholics, and gamed the famous battle of Jarnac, in which the prince of Conde was taken and murdered. Coligni hav- 1569. ing placed at the head of the Protestants the young king of Navarre and the young prince of Conde, made every effort to animate his party, and at length laid siege to Poitiers. The young duke of Guise threw himself into that town, and de- fended it with such valor and skill, that Coligni was forced to raise the siege. Secretly aided by Elizabeth, he collected a considerable force ; but at the battle of Moncontour he was wounded and defeated with the loss of nearly 10,000 men. The court deemed the adverse party now completely crushed, when, to their amazement, Coligni advanced with a large army, and prepared to lay siege to Paris, and the king was forced to make another treaty and peace with the Protestants. The treachery long meditated against the Protestants was now ripe. Charles assumed the appearance of the utmost liberality of sentiment: a marriage was proposed between his sister Margaret and tlie young king of Navarre. All the great leaders of the Protestants went to Paris to the celebra- tion of it. They were received with smiles and caresses by the king and the queen-mother ; all was festivity till the eve of St. Bartholomew (Aug. 24) arrived, when, by the secret 1572. orders of the king, a bloody and indiscriminate massacre of the Protestants commenced. No rank or age was spared ; 500 gentlemen, including Coligni, and 10,000 inferior per- sons, perished in Paris alone, and a like carnage took place in all the great towns of the kingdom whither similar orders had been sent. It is computed that 60,000 persons were massacred. The Protestants throughout Europe were filled with horror and consternation. At Rome and Spain the account was re- ceived with ecstasy, and public thanks returned to heaven. But Charles did not dare to avow his real motives ; he pre- tended that a conspiracy of the Protestants had been detected, 278 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. and thus prevented. Instead of losing coirrage, these now only respired vengeance. They took valiantly to tlTeir arms : the town of Sancerre stood a memorable siege. Rochelle held out eight months against the whole power of France; and A. D. the duke of Anjou, after losing 24,000 men before it, was 1573. compelled to grant the citizens an advantageous peace. This was the fourth peace ; but the Protestants could put no trust in the perfidious monarch. They rejoiced at his 1574. death, which soon afterwards occurred. He was succeeded by his brother, tlie duke of Anjou, Henry HI., who had been elected king of Poland. Henry, by the advice of his mother, sought to play the parties against each other, and thereby 1576. increase the royal authority. He gave most advantageous terms to the Protestants, now headed by his brother, the duke of Anjou, and the young king of Navarre. The Catholic party, directed by the duke of Guise, were disgusted by this mea- 1577. sure : they formed their celebrated League ; and the king, to weaken it, declared himself the head of it. The war was renewed ; but soon terminated by a new peace. The League looked up to Philip, the Huguenots to Elizabeth : the king, sunk in pleasure and in odious vices, was despised and dis- trusted by both parties. The duke of Anjou was a restless ambitious prince: his death seemed to relieve the king from , difficulties ; but it only plunged him into greater. The king of Navarre was now the next heir; the League was revived ; the cardinal of Bourbon set up as a rival to the king of Na- varre ; and the king forced to declare war against the Hugue- nots. Great valor and talent were displayed by the king of 1587. Navarre. At Coutras he gained a complete victory over the royal army ; but the power of the League was still an over- match for the Huguenots. The king was driven from Paris, and threatened with degradation from his throne : his spirit was roused, and he caused the duke and the cardinal of Guise to be assassinated. The doctors of the Sorbonne declared the people released from their allegiance ; and the duke of Mayenne, brother to the duke of Guise, was chosen Lieuten- 1589. ant-general of the State royal and Crown of France. The king entered into an alliance with the king of Navarre, and both sovereigns advanced to Paris at the head of their armies- James Clement, a Dominican monk, here assassinated the king, with whom ended the line of Valois. The holy deed was, as usual, applauded throughout the Catholic world ; and Sixtus V. compared it with the Incarnation and the Resur- rection. The royal army abandoned the king of Navarre, now Henry IV., and the League proclaimed the cardinal of Bour- cMa^. lit. TIMES OP PHiLii^ il, 27Q bon, under the name of Charles X. Henry retired to Nor- luaiidy, followed by the troops of the League, under the duke of Mayenne. The queen of England sent him troops and money. His forces were inferior in number^ but superior in a. v. valor, to those of the duke ; and at Ivry he gained a com- 1590. plete victory over him and his Spanish auxiliaries. Henry feoon afterwards invested Paris; the duke of Parma hastened from the Low Countries to its relief; the siege was raised ; but the duke declined the proffered battle. Some fresh at- tempts on Paris were baffled ; the duke of Parma left 8000 men with the League ; the pope ordered all the Catholics to abandon Henry, and sent money and troops to the duke of Savoy, who had made himself master of Provence; the young duke of Guise made his escape from Tours. Elizabeth, on the other hand, again sent troops and money ; Henry laid siege to Rouen ; but the prince of Parma forced him to raise it, and again retreated without fighting. Lesdiguieres chased the duke of Savoy out of Provence ; and victories were gained by Turenne, and other generals of Henry. At length all parties grew weary of the war ; the duke 1593. of Mayenne was disgusted by the faction of the Sixteen in Paris, who were entirely in the Spanish interest; Henry was pressed by the Catholics of his party to declare himself on the article of religion, a thing he had hitherto avoided doing ; the king of Spain, too, pressed the duke of Mayenne to call a meeting of the states, hopmg to gain the crown for his own daughter Isabella. The states met ; Philip's ambas- sador exerted himself in vaui to get a declaration in favor of the infanta; the parliament of Paris declared that the Salic law could not be set aside. Meanwhile Henry, though successful in arms, saw that he never could obtain the kingdom by force ; and, with the con- sent of his wisest friends, he embraced the Catholic religion. This measure was not at first productive of all the advan- tages that might have been expected : both parties were dis- trustful ; but gradually town after town and noble after noble submitted to their king. He led an army into Burgundy, ex- pelled the Spaniards, and obliged the duke of Mayenne to seek an accommodation ; he received the pope's absolution ; the duke of Guise, now his friend, surprised Marseilles ; the duke of Mayenne submitted, and continued ever after warmly attached to his person and government ; but the archduke Albert surprised Calais ; the Spanish governor of Dourlens took Amiens ; and the French finances were in so dilapidated a state, that Henry could not raise an army. The prudence and ability of the great Sully enabled him at last to take the 280 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. TART ill. A. D. field at the head of a well-appointed army of more than 20,C00 1597. men ; and, in spite of the efforts of Albert, Amiens was forced to surrender. The duke of Mercoeur was still in arms in Britany. Henry marched against him ; but the duke offering his only daugh- ter and a large dower to king Henry's natural son, the pro- posal was accepted, and the duke submitted. All France now cheerfully obeyed its lawful monarch. To dissipate the apprehensions of the Huguenots, Henry summoned the heads of them to Nantes, and gave the celebrated edict named from 1598. that town, which secured them the exercise of their religion, and declared them eligible to all places of trust, profit, and honor. Peace was now absolutely necessary to France, so long torn by civil dissensions ; and Henry concluded at Ver- vins a treaty with the Spanish king. During the remaining years of his reign, Henry, aided by his wise and virtuous friend and minister Sully, was indefati- gable in restoring France to order, tranquillity, and power. He was still, however, harassed by the intrigues of the Spanish cabinet ; and at length he took the occasion of the disputed succession of the duchies of Cleves and Juliers to undertake his long-meditated plan of humbling the house of Austria; but in the midst of his preparations he perished by 1610. the dagger of the assassin Ravaillac. Henry was justly styled the Great : he possessed all kingly virtues ; the blem- ish of his character was his passion for women. After the death of Margaret of Valois, he married Mary of Medici, daughter of Francis duke of Tuscany. The Netherlands. The Netherlands had grown wealthy by trade. A freedom of municipal government, and consequently of opinion, pre- vailed in their cities, and the reformed doctrines easily ob- tained a footing there. Charles V. had sought in vain to suppress them. Philip disliked the people, and he detested the new opinions ; he insulted and offended the counts of Egmont and Horn, and the prince of Orange. They became the leaders of the oppressed people. Philip determined to crush the nation ; and the relentless duke of Alva was sent with a large army as governor to the Netherlands. Egmont and Horn, who had been the chief agents in composing the ferment of the Flemings, were notwithstanding brought to the block by Alva. Nothing was to be heard but cries of despair, to be seen but torture and death. William of Nassau, prince of Orange, led an army out of Germany, and offered battle in vain to Alva. The Spaniards CIlAP. HI. i'lME^ OF PHILIP II. 281 liold all the fortified towns, and the prince was forced to dis- band his troops. Alva's tyranny knew no bounds ; the people dared not to oppose. The queen of England, though favor- able to the Flemings, was, at the desire of the king of Spain, obliged to exclude their privateers from her ports. The Gueux (Begg-ars), as their crews were called, seized on the a. d. port of- the Brille in Holland. Alva sent a force against 1573, them ; the people of the neighborhood rose and defeated it, and put themselves under the prince of Orange, by whose exertions the province of Holland, and shortly after that of Zealand, cast oif the Spanish yoke. The prince took Mech- lin, Oudenard, and Dendermond; the gallant defence of Haarlem convinced Alva of the inutility of strong measures. He tried in vain to induce the people of Holland to submit to the clemency of Philip; but they, who knew what the tender mercies of Alva and his master were, set them at defiance. The duke laid siege to Alcmaar; he was repulsed: he fitted out a large fleet; it was defeated by the Zealanders: he 1563. prayed to be recalled, and left the Low Countries, boasting that in five years he had delivered 18,000 persons to the exe- cutioner. Alva was succeeded by Requesens, commander of Castile, a man of mild disposition ; but the war still raged with al- ternate success. Leyden was invested by the Spaniards; 1574. the citizens endured every extreme of famine and distress ; the Dutch opened the dikes ; a violent wind drove the waters against the Spanish works ; and the commander Valdez was, after losing the flower of his army, forced to raise the siege. Conferences were now held, but to no purpose, at Breda, un- 1575. der the mediation of the emperor. The war was renewed : the Spaniards proved too powerful for the two provinces; they had entered Zealand, and .were meditating the conquest of Holland, when, in their despair, the Dutch offered the sovereignty of their country to the queen of England. That prudent princess declined it, but mediated for them in vain with Philip. The war raged as fiercely as ever. Meanwhile Requesens died ; and the Spanish garrison 1576. committed such atrocities at Antwerp, that all the provinces, except Luxemburg, entered into the Pacification of Ghent, whose object was the expulsion of foreign troops, and the restoration of the ancient liberties of the states. Don John of Austria, the succeeding governor, seeing the inutility of resistance, agreed to confirm the pacification, and peace was at length restored. The ambition of Don John violated the peace, and war broke out anew. As he had meditated marrying the queen Y2 282 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. ^ jj of Scots, and claiming the crown of England, Elizabeth no 1578. longer hesitated to assist the malcontents with men and money. The count palatine of the Rhine also collected an army to aid them. But discord arose amoag the Netherland- ers. Jealous of the prince of Orange, the duke d'Arschot and other Catholic nobles privately invited Matliias, brother to the emperor Rodolf II., to take the government. Mathias suddenly appeared ; the prince of Orange prudently joined him ; Don John was deposed, and Mathias made the prince his lieutenant, to the great mortification of d'Arschot. Don John, being joined by the prince of Parma and 18,000 veterans, attacked and defeated the army of the states at Gemblours. Dissension continued between the two parties. Mathias was despised ; the prince of Orange suspected by both on account of his moderation. By the influence of tlie Catholic party, the duke of Anjou was declared Defender of the Liberties of the Netherlands. Don John dying shortly afterwards, the command of the Spanish forces passed to the prhice of Parma, one of the first generals and statesmen of the age. The prince of Orange saw the necessity of a closer union 1579. among the Protestant states. Deputies met at Utrecht (Jan. 15), from Holland, Zealand, Utrecht, Friesland, Groningen, Overyssel, and Guelderland, and signed the famous union of the Seven United Provinces. The king of Spain sought in vain to detach the prince of Orange from the union ; he was resolved to stand or fall with his country. The prince or" Parma made a treaty with the people of the southern states ; the Catholics in general favored him, and he took several towns : the states, however, continued resolute ; they again offered the sovereignty to Elizabeth, and on her refusing it, 1580. conferred it on the duke of Anjou. The duke of Anjou forced the Spaniards to raise the siege of Cambray ; but when he went to England on the bootless project of marrying Elizabeth, the prince of Parma gained great advantages in the Netherlands. When he returned, he made a rash and violent attempt on the liberties of the states, and was obliged to retire to France, where he shortly afterwards died. Mathias had retired to Germany, and the conflict was now between the two great princes of Orange and Parma. Philip had set a reward on the head of the prince of Or- ange, and the dagger of an assassin, Balthazar Gerard, de- 1585. prived the states of their able and patriotic leader. Their gratitude made them appoint his son Maurice, a youth of eighteen years, their Stadtholder, and captain-general by sea CHAP. III. TIMES OF PHILIP 11. 283 and land ; their rage stimulated them to renewed exertion. The prince of Parma had reduced Ghent and Brussels ; he now invested Antwerp : the citizens opened their sluices and broke down their dikes ; the prince cut a canal to carry off the waters ; he erected a fortified bridge across the Scheld, to prevent the town being- relieved by sea. The Hollanders, expecting- that the fall of Antwerp would benefit their town of Amsterdam, obstructed every measure for its relief. The city was forced to surrender. It declined, and Amsterdam flourished. The loss of Antwerp was a great blow to the states. Eliza- beth saw now the necessity of aiding them effectually. The earl of Leicester was sent to Holland with 5000 foot and 1000 horse. The states made him their governor ; but his inso- lence and incapacity obliged his mistress to recall him. Prince Maurice was made governor, and lord Willoughby was ap- pointed to command the English forces. The prince of Parma was now obliged, more than once, to lead his army into France in aid of the League, and he was occupied in preparing for the invasion of England ; so that the war was not prosecuted a. d. with very great vigor. His death, as he was once more pre- 1592. paring to enter France, delivered Maurice from a powerful opponent He was succeeded in the chief command by count Mans- feld, an able and experienced officer. The scale of the states now preponderated^ prince Maurice took Breda before the 1594. eyes of the Spanish commander, and tlien Gertruydenburg and Groningen. At Turnhout, prince Maurice and Sir Fran- 1597. cis Vere gained a complete victory over the Spaniards. The states refused now to be included in the peace of Vervins. Philip n. died. He had seen how fruitless v/as the contest, 1598. and, as a decent mode of ending it, he had transferred to his daughter Isabella, contracted to the archduke Albert, the sovereignty of the Low Countries. Albert wrote letters to the United Provinces, entreating them to submit to their natural princes, who w^ould govern them with justice and lenity. They returned no answer. An edict was issued, pre- cluding them from all intercourse with the Spanish P'^ether- lands, Spain, and Portugal. Philip II. had wisely never med- dled with their trade. The Dutch sent a fleet to cruise against the Spaniards, and they turned their views towards tiie East Indies, and soon possessed the far greater part of the lucrative trade which the Portuguese had enjoyed. The war in the Low Countries was continued with spirit. Each side was strongly reinforced ; towns were taken on both sides; the two armies came to a general engagement at 284 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. A. n. Nieuport near Ostend, and after a well-sustained contest the 1630. Spanish veterans gave way. But the troops of prince Mau- rice were so exhausted by fatigue, that he was unable to un- dertake any thing before Albert had collected a superior army. 1601. Overtures of peace were made to and rejected by the states. Maurice took Rhinburg ; Albert laid siege to Ostend, which was vigorously defended by Sir Francis Vere, and he was 1602. forced to turn the siege into a blockade. The states changed the garrison, putting in fresh troops; the besiegers were re- inforced by 8000 Italians, under the marquis Spinola, who took the command, and by his skill reduced the town to ruins. 1004. An honorable capitulation was granted by him to the gar- rison. This siege cost the archduke 70,000 men, and JMaurice had meantime made acquisitions equal to Ostend. It was resolved to prosecute the war with vigor ; Spinola was made com- mander-in-chief: he had during two years considerable suc- cess ; but his troops mutinied for want of pay, and he gave it as his opinion that the subjugation of the United Provinces was impracticable. The pride of Spain was reduced to treat 1G07. with the Dutch as an independent nation, A suspension of arms was agreed to, and finally, though opposed by tlie Or- ange party, a truce for ten years was made at the Hague, un- 1609. der the mediation of France and England. Thus, after a severe contest of thirty-seven years, inde- pendence was assured to the United Provinces. During the conflict they had increased in wealth, had made extensive acquisitions in the East, and established a navy equal to any at the time, England. 1559. The tlirone of England was at this eventful period filled by Elizabeth, daughter of Henry VIII. and sister of the two preceding sovereigns ; a princess whose many great qualities have, in despite of some defects and weaknesses, and one crime (as we must call it), obtained her the applause of suc- ceeding ages. On her succession, the Protestant religion was lastingly established in England, Philip of Spain, despair- ing of obtaining her hand, was now become her implacable foe ; and as the Catholics denied the legality of her mother's marriage, they consequently denied her right to the throne, and they asserted the priority of the claims of Mary queen of Scots, descended from the daughter of Henry VII. This last ill-fated princess, by this claim, and by her imprudence and her superior beauty, excited the envy and jealousy of jKizabeth ; her Catholic bigotry alarmed the fears of the Pro- CHAP. til. TIMES OF PHILIP II. 285 testants ; her crimes alienated from her many who pitied her mistbrtunes. Yet, guilty as was Mary and as was Elizabeth, their times, their situations, and other circumstances, will offer many an excuse for each ; and pity will often take the place of blame in the mind of the attentive examiner of their history, especially of that of the unfortunate queen of Scots, who, brought up amid the milder manners of the court of France, was ill-fitted to contend with the turbulence and bar- barism of her native realm ; and who, imprisoned by her own subjects, and thence flying into England to seek the protec- tion of a sister-queen and relative, found another prison, and, after a confinement of nineteen years, an unjust and igno- minious death. Philip had long been making preparations for the invasion a. d. of England : 50,000 men were assembled under the prince l^^'''- of Parma in the Low Counti'ies for that purpose ; ships were built in all the ports of his dominions. The Invincible Fleet, 1588. as it was proudly called, sailed at length from the port of Lisbon ; but the courage and skill of the English mariners defeated it ; the winds of heaven dispersed and shattered it ; and but a small portion revisited Spain. ^^ J sent myjleet to combat the English^ not the elements. God be praised, the calamity is not greater,''^ expressed the real or affected resig- nation of Philip: ^* AJiavit Deus, et dissij^antnr inimici,^^ the real or affected piety of Elizabeth, who had evinced, in the season of danger, a spirit worthy of the greatest of her predecessors. With Elizabeth ended the house of Tudor, a race of born despots. Henry VIL was subtle and oppressive; Henry VIII. barbarous and capricious ; Edward VI. died before he could show his disposition ; Mary was an odious and cruel fanatic ; Elizabeth was insincere and arbitrary, but prudent and judi- cious. She loved her subjects ; but on the same principle as her contemporary Shah Abbas loved his, — because they were hers, and she knew that their prosperity was her power ; but woe to any of them who dared oppose her will or her caprice ! Yet, like every truly great mind, she could yield to circum- stances, and bend before the storm which it were folly to resist. During the reign of Elizabeth, the rebellions of Desmond and O'Neal in Ireland were crushed ; a colony, called Vir- ginia, was planted in the New World; Sir Francis Drake sailed round the globe ; an intercourse was opened with tlie great empire of Russia. Trade and commerce were en- couraged by this great princess ; literature was held in honor, and flourished. 2SG OUTLINES OF HJSTORY. PART III, PorlugaL A. D. Don Jolm III. left his dominions to his son Don Sebastiarij 1555. a boy under age. Don Henry, grand-uncle to the young prince, was in holy orders and a cardinal : the Jesuits man-' aged to have the young king committed to their care, and they used all their influence to extend the power of thd church, and of their own order. Don Alessio Meneses in vain tried to withdraw the king from them ; in vain his grand- mother, the sister of Charles V., wished to have the young monarch married. She was threatened and insulted by the holy fathers, who sought to dissipate his mind by frequent journeys; and when the people began to murmur, excited him to an expedition to Africa. A Sheriff, i. e. a descendant of the prophet, had seized on the throne of the Merinide emir of Morocco, and founded the 1519. dynasty wliich still reigns in that country. His successor, Mohammed Sheriff, conquered Fez. In the reign of Sebas- tian the throne was occupied by Abdallah Sheriff. Sebastian, in the ardor of youth, and encouraged by the Jesuits, was preparing to sail for India, and have hunself crowned emperor of the East, when a brother of the Sheriff, expelled from Mo- rocco, came to seek his protection. The invasion of Africa was resolved on. The old queen, who foresaw and vainly endeavored to avert its disastrous consequences, died, it is said, of grief Full of enthusiasm, but ignorant of war, the young king passed over to Africa at the head of 20,000 men. The aged Sheriff met him at Alcazar-quivir with a superior army. Exhausted by age and disease, Abdallah expired in the midst of the conflict ; but a complete victory crowned the 1578. African arms. Sebastian disappeared, most probably slain; but his subjects long continued to believe him living, and to look for his return. Cardinal Henry mounted the throne of Portugal. On his death the succession was disputed. The only male issue left by the four sons of Don Manuel was Antonio, prior of Prato, the natural son of Antonio duke of Beja. Don Edward had left two daughters, one married to the great prince of Parma ; but as she was thus become a foreigner, she was excluded by the Constitutions of Lamego : the other was married to the duke of Braganza, and he had by law a right to the crown. Philip II. was son to a daughter of Don Manuel ; but as she had become a foreigner by her marriage, she could transmit no claim. Philip, however, set up a claim. As he was by far the most powerful of the condidates, he very easily made it good : the prior of Prato alone resisted. The state of the con- CHAP. III. TIMES OF PHILIP II. 287 tinent prevented any princes supporting the just claims of the duke of Braganza ; and he himself was a quiet, easy man, satisfied with obtaining honors and dignities. Philip was ^^ j,, crowned at Lisbon. 1581 Thus, 867 years after the fall of the Gothic kingdom, the whole peninsula was reunited under one head ; happy if that head had not been Philip 11. ! Germany. Charles V. was succeeded in the imperial dignity by his brother Ferdinand, king of the Romans. This excellent prince directed all his efforts to the establishment of civil and religious concord in the empire. By the diet of Ratisbon, 1577. a reconciliation was made between the houses of Hesse and Nassau. The council of Trent was reassembled : but the Protestant princes met and came to the determination of ad- 1561. hering to the Confession of Augsburg whatever the council might decree. All the well-meant efforts of the emperor were in vain; tlie council, bent only on the now hopeless project of exalting the power of the church, would listen to none of his prudent suggestions. Afler passing a set of de- crees, which effectually closed the doors against unity, this 1563. last of general councils was dissolved. Maximilian II. had been chosen king of the Romans in the 1564. lifetime of hi-s father. Immediately on his accession he was engaged in war with Suleiman L, who even meditated the conquest of the German empire. Selim II. concluded a truce with the emperor. During the remainder of the reign of this mild and excellent prince, Germany enjoyed peace and tran- quillity. His son and successor, Rodolf II., inherited his pacific 1576. temper, Poland. At this period the Polish constitution underwent a great 1572. alteration. On the death of the estimable Sigismund Au- gustus, the last male of the Jagellons, the diet, consisting of 182 deputies, met, and determined that no king should have the power of nominating his successor. The election of a krhg was thus regulated : — On the plain of Vola, near War- saw, the senate and the people assembled. The former was composed of two archbishops, fifteen bishops, thirty-seven voi- vodes (dukes), eighty-two castellans (senators and lieutenants of the voivodes), and ten ministers of state. The senate met in a wooden house ; the deputies and the other nobles around it, within a wall and ditch. The king assembled and pre- sided over this diet, wherein all matters relatinsf to internal 288 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. and external policy were transacted. The powers of the monarch were extremely limited ; but he appointed to ecclesi- astical dignities, conferred nobility, commanded the army, and his assent was necessary to give validity to the acts of the diet. The Protestant religion having made great progress in Poland, the greater part of the senate were of that persua- sion ; the most perfect toleration prevailed ; all dissidents, as the non-catholics were styled, were eligible to all offices. The Arians and Socinians were numerous in Poland; the latter, when persecuted everywhere else, found an asylum there. Racau was their chief establishment. A. D. On the death of Sigismund, a Protestant named Szafraniec 1573. ^ya^g proposed as his successor ; but the choice fell upon Henry of Valois, duke of Anjou, brother to Charles IX. Henry suc- ceeding to his brother in France, unceremoniously quitted 1575. Poland, and the Poles chose Stephen Bathori, prince of Tran- sylvania, a wise and brave monarch. They insisted on his marrying Anna Jagellon, daughter of Sigismund, to prevent any prince whom she might espouse claiming the crown. Stephen was by her induced to embrace the Catholic religion. 1587. His successor was Sigismund Vasa, crown-prince of Sweden, descended on the mother's side from the Jagellons. Italy. 1459, The haughty Caraffa (Paul IV.) was followed in the papal chair by the pious and zealous Pius IV. and V., and the good and well-intentioned Gregory XIII. The able, the vigorous, the resolute Montalto (Sixtus V.) next occupied the seat of St. Peter. This penetrating statesman saw clearly through the selfish policy of Philip II., whom he secretly wished no success ; and he, in his heart, admired the king of France and queen of England, against whom he discharged his spir- itual thunder. He established a rigorous police in the papal territories, and curbed the excesses of the lawless nobles. His strong measures against the great were followed up by his successor Aldobrandini (Clement VIII.) In Florence, Cosimo, the first grand duke, fortunate in other respects, was unhappy in his family. His daughter Lucretia was poisoned by her husband, a duke of Ferrara ; her sister Isabella was strangled by a prince of the Orsini, to whom she was married. The cardinal John of Medici was murdered by his brother Garcia, on account of a dispute at the chase, and Cosimo put his son Garcia to death with his own hand. Their mother died of grief His eldest daughter CHAP, III. TIMES OF PHILIP II. 289 was, on account of improper love, poisoned by order of the grand duke. Francis, the second grand duke, also perished by poison, a. d. A Florentine, named Buonaventuri, settled at Venice, had l^'^^. run away with Bianca, the daughter of the senator Capello. They came to Florence, where they lived in poverty. The grand duke saw Bianca, admired, and got acquainted with her. Buonaventuri acquired wealth and honors. He loved a widow, and he employed his power to oppress her brothers; the grand duke reproving him, he replied with insolence and threats ; he was abandoned to the vengeance of those whom he had uijurod, and he was murdered. Just at this time the grand duchess, daughter of the emperor Ferdinand, died. Francis married his beloved Bianca. " Soon after, she took a hatred to her brother-in-law, the cardinal Ferdinand, and at- tempted to poison him at dinner. The cardinal, put perhaps on his guard, declined the proffered viands ; — the grand duke, not aware of the truth, ate of the dish to remove his suspi- cions : — Bianca saw she was lost : — she also tasted of the dish, 1587. and died with her husband. The cardinal now became grand duke. He was a prince of great political prudence and sagacity, and his maxims were adopted by some leading courts. But he gave the reins with- out restraint to every sensual indulgence, and his example was followed by his subjects. Manufactures languished, mo- nopoly and companies checked trade ; but Florence was one of the handsomest, richest, and politest cities in Europe. The dukes of Savoy were proceeding with their character- 1559- istic activity. Emanuel Philibert, secured in his dommions by the treaty of Chateau Cambresis, turned all his thoughts 1564. to depressing the nobles and increasing the ducal authority. He established a militia, built the citadel of Turin, and forti- fied Montmelian and Vercelle ; he created tlie manufacture of silk and the culture of olives ; he greatly increased the revenues by his wise measures, and was enabled to let the assembly of the states go out of use. His son Charles Emanuel 1584. had all the talents of a great prince, and could accommodate himself to all circumstances. His fault was neglect of his word when it interfered with his interest. By exchange he obtained Saluzzo, and prepared the way for the acquisition of a part of Montferrat by his son. His reign was long and ^590. successful. Turkey. Selim n., on succeeding his father Suleiman, concluded a 1566. truce for twelve years with the emperor Maximilian. He 290 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. Pi^RT III. turned his arms without success, against Persia, and then revived an old claim of the Egyptian sultans on Cyprus. ^. J). After an heroic resistance, the island was conquered by the 1571- Turks, with the loss of 100,000 lives. A league had been formed against Selim by the pope, the king of Spain, and the Venetians. Their fleet was too late to relieve Cyprus ; but they encountered in tlie gulf of Lepanto the Turkish fleet, which ravaged the coasts of Italy and Dalmatia, and gained over it a most signal victory. Don John of Austria command- ed the Christians ; but dissension prevented any solid advan- tage being derived from it. Next year the Turks appeared with a still greater fleet, and the Venetians made a separate peace, by which they renounced all claim to Cyprus. Don John had meantime conquered Tunis and Biserta ; but they were again recovered by the Turks. During the reigns of the three following sultans, who were sunk in pleasure, the Turks made no acquisitions of conse- quence. Under Mohammed III, the grand vizier managed to draw to himself all power, by abolishing the places of the six viziers who sat in the divan. CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. Germany. 1612. The archduke Mathias succeeded Rodolf in the empire. This prince had been hitherto favorable to the Protestants, but he now resolved to curb them. He had his cousin Ferdi- nand duke of Styria chosen his successor in Bohemia and Hungary, and he made a family compact with the court of Spain. The Protestants were alarmed ; the Bohemians and Hungarians had recourse to arms: the latter were easily quelled ; but the former were joined by the Protestants of Silesia, Moravia, and Upper Austria, and supported by an army of other German Protestants under count Mansfield. Thus began the Thirty Years' War. 1619.^ Mathias died, and Ferdinand was raised to the imperial throne. The Bohemians deposed him, and offered their crown to Frederic V., elector palatine, who, contrary to the advice of his father-in-law, James I. of England, accepted the fatal gift. He was supported by all the Protestant princes of the empire except the elector of Saxony, and by Bethlem Gabor, voivode of Transylvania, by a body of 8000 Dutch troops, and ■4 CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. 291 by 2400 Eng-lish volunteers. Ferdinand was aided by the king- of Spain, by the archduke Albert, g-overnor of the Netherlands, and the Catholic princes of the empire. Spinola led 24,000 men from the Low Countries, and ravaged the palatinate ; Frederic was defeated at Prague by the duke of a. d. Bavaria and general Baquoy. He and his adherents were 1620. put to the ban of the empire ; Bethlem Gabor was defeated in Hungary; count Tilly completed the conquest of the pala- tinate ; Frederic was degraded, and his dignity of elector conferred on the duke of Bavaria. A league was formed, at the head of which was Christian 1625. IV. of Denmark, for the restoration of the palatine. But the troops of the league were unable to stand before the imperial- ists led by Tilly and Wallenstein, and Christian was forced to sue for peace. Ferdinand now thought the time was come for reducing the prifices and prelates of the empire to the condition of those of other countries. He resolved to begin with the Protestants ; and he passed an edict ordering them 1629. to restore ail the church lands, &c. that they had enjoyed suice the peace of Passau. The Protestants remonstrated ; a diet was held at Ratisbon; the majority of the Catholic princes were for quieting them ; the spiritual electors second- ed the views of the emperor. The Protestants, to escape the meditated robbery, formed a secret alliance with Gustavus Adolphus, king of Sweden. Gustavus was a prince of the highest military and civil talents : he was animated by a rational zeal for the Protest- ant religion, and he saw through the emperor's project of extending his dominion over the Baltic. Various other rea- sons combined to induce him to engage in war. The cardinal Richelieu, now minister in France, desirous to check the power of the house of Austria, engaged to give him an an- nual subsidy of 1,200,000 livres. Charles I. of England al- lowed 6000 men to be raised in the name of the marquis of Hamilton, to aid the king of Sweden, and numerous English and Scottish volunteers crowded to his standard. Gustavus entered Pomerania. Tlie Protestant princes were at first fearful of joining him; but his well-timed decis- ion towards the elector of Brandenburg ended their hesitation. Being joined by the Saxons, he advanced towards Leipzig, where Tilly lay, who advanced into the plain of Buitenfeld to meet him. The numbers on each side were about 80,000 ; but Tilly's troops were all veterans. The Saxons, being raw troops, fled at the first onset : the skill of Gustavus and the valor of the Swedes gained a complete victory. 1631. The king of Sweden quickly made himself master of the 292 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. whole country from the Elbe to the Rhine. The elector of y^ ,5^ Saxony entered Bohemia, and took Prag-ue. Tilly, in di.s- 1632. puting the passage of the Lech with the Swedes, was killed. Gustavus took Augsburg, marched into Bavaria, and entered Munich. Wallenstein had meantime recovered Prague. The king of Sweden offered him battle near Niirnburg ; Wallen- stein declined it : a furious attack was for ten hours made on his entrenchments, and the Swedes were repulsed with great loss. Soon after, hearing that Wallenstein had transferred his camp to Liitzen, Gustavus, though it was the depth of winter, and the imperial forces greatly exceeded his in num- ber, resolved to seek and engage him. The battle which en- sued is one of the hardest fought recorded in history. It lasted from day-break till night: the king of Sweden fell in the midst of the conflict. Night alone prevented the vic- tory of tlie Swedes being complete. The death of Gustavus cast a gloom over the Protestants; they fell into factions : the Catholics were elated. But the Swedish regency (as Gustavus had left only one child, Chris- tina, of seven years) committed the management of the war to the chancellor Oxenstiern, a man of great ability, who, with the duke of Saxe- Weimar and generals Banier and Horn, prosecuted it with vigor. An event now occurred seemingly calculated to advance the Protestant cause. The emperor, whether justly or not is doubtful, suspecting the fidelity of Wallenstein, and fearing to deprive him of his command, had him secretly assassinated. But the loss of his genius was supplied by a large accession of Spanish and other troops, and by the junction of the dukes of Lorrain and Ba- 1634. varia. The imperial troops were commanded by the king of Hungary ; the duke of Saxe- Weimar and general Horn came up with them near Nordlingen, and a bloody battle ended in the total defeat of the Swedes. The German princes now deserted the Swedes, and made 1635. at Prague a treaty with the emperor, in which he receded from his former demands of the restitution of church property. The weight of the war now fell on the Swedes and French. France entered into an alliance with Holland, and war was declared agauist Spain. Richelieu raised five armies, one of which was sent into Germany, and placed under the duke of Saxe- Weimar. None of these armies was very successful. The imperial general Galas was opposed to the duke of Weimar, and they fought with alternate advantage. In Up- per Germany, the Swedes, under Banier, gave the imperial- 1636. ists, under the elector of Saxony, a complete defeat at Wis- lock. CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. 293 The emperor Ferdinand II. died, and was succeeded by his a. d. son, of the same name. The same line of policy was pursued, 1637. Riid the war continued. The duke of Weimar laid siege to 1638. Rainfeld ; an imperial army advanced to its relief, and was totally defeated by the duke : the town surrendered, as did soon after Brisac, and other places. While Weimar triumphed on the Rhine, Banier was equally successful in Pomerania ; he reduced several towns, and cut to pieces some of the imperial troops. In the beginning of the next campaign, the duke and Ban- 1639 icr took measures for penetrating into the heart of the Aus- trian dominions, Banier crossed the Elbe, beat every thing tliat opposed him, entered Saxony, and totally defeated the Saxon army at Chemnitz. He invaded Bohemia, laid the country under contribution, fell on the imperialists under general Hofskirk at Brandeiz, and pursued them to the walls of Prague. He then repassed the Elbe, defeated the impe- rialists at Glatz, and drove the Saxons three times from their camp at Tirn. But the hopes of the Swedes were almost blighted by the loss of the duke of Saxe- Weimar, who died at this time, in his 36th year, by poison, as was strongly suspected. After a good deal of contest for his army, it was finally taken into the pay of the king of France, who thus became master of a great part of Alsatia and Brisg-au. Under the command of tlie duke of Longueville it joined Banier at Erfurt; but the Swede found his genius cramped by their presence, and was no longer able to execute his bold and sudden projects. It was agreed to attack Piccolomini, the imperial general, in his camp at Saltzburg. This being found impracticable, the allies separated, and Banier attempted to penetrate into Franconia. Failing in this, he marched through Hesse into Lunenburg. Piccolomini attempted to enter this duchy, but was unable to penetrate it : and as he marched for Franconia, he was attacked and nearly defeated by the Weimarian army. The emperor having convoked a diet at Ratisbon, Banier 1641. formed a plan of surprising the city and dispersing the diet. Having joined the French army under Guebriant, they crossed the Danube on the ice, took 1500 of the imperial horse, and very nearly surprised the emperor himself The approach of a thaw disconcerted their plans; but they threw five hundred shot into the town, an insult that enraged Ferdi- nand beyond measure. Attempts at a pacification were made at Hamburgh by the French and Swedish plenipotentiaries and one of the Aulic counsellors ; but the emperor refused to ratify the convention. Z2 294 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. After the attempt on Ratisbon, the French and Swedes separated; Banier marched through Bohemia, followed by Piccolomini and Gleen, He conducted his retreat in a most masterly manner to Zickau, where he was joined by Gue- briant, and they prepared to make head against -the imperial- ists ; but Banier took a fever in consequence of the fatigues he had undergone, and died at Halberstadt, in the 41st year of his age. Torstenson, another of the pupils of Gustavus, was appointed to succeed him, and he left Sweden with a large sum of money and a considerable reinforcement ; but, before his arrival, the allies under Guebriant had defeated Piccolomini at Wolfenbuttel. When Torstenson arrived the armies separated. A. D. The next spring, Guebriant totally defeated general Lam- 1642. boy, and made himself master of the electorate of Cologne. Piccolomini marched against Torstenson, who had defeated the duke of Saxe-Lauenburg, and invested Leipzig. The archduke Leopold and Piccolomini advanced to the relief of it ; and Buitenfeld was again witness to the triumph of Swe- dish valor. The news of this defeat filled the imperial court with con- sternation. Leipzig surrendered; but Torstenson failed in his attempt on Friedburg. Guebriant was also successful on his side. 1643. Conferences for a peace were now opened ; but the death of Louis XIII. and of Richelieu checked them : cardinal Maz- arin, however, trod in the footsteps of his predecessor. The arms of France were successful. While the negotiations were pending, Torstenson marched into Holstein, to punish the hostility of the king of Denmark. Christian called on the emperor, who sent Galas thither ; but Galas feared to en- gage the Swedes. France then mediated a peace between Denmark and Sweden. The French, under Turenne, were successful against the Bavarians ; the voivode of Transylvania invaded Hungary ; and the imperial army there under Gotz was utterly ruined. A similar fate befell that under Galas. 1645. Torstenson invaded Bohemia ; a large army under Galas, Hasfeld, and others, was collected near Thabor. The Swe- dish general decoyed them from their advantageous position, and completely defeated them. Every place submitted ; the imperial family fled from Vienna : Brinn, however, held out against the Swedes, The Bavarians under Merci defeated Turenne at Marien- dal ; Turenne was reinforced by 8000 men, under the duke d'Enghien, and gave battle to the Bavarians on the plain of Nordlingon, which had been so fatal to the Swedes. After a CHAP. IV. TLMES OP THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. 295 dreadful conflict, victory declared for the French, with the loss of 4000 men. The elector of Saxony, unable to check the progress of the Swedish general Koningsmark, concluded a truce for six months. The latter joined Torstenson, who had, in spite of the archduke, carried his depredations to the gates of Vienna. They agreed to lay siege to Prague ; hut the archduke secured that city against them ; and Torsten- son, who was dreadfully afflicted with the gout, returning to Sweden, was succeeded by Vrangel, who ably sustained the glory of the Swedish arms. The French and Swedes were everywhere successful ; the elector of Bavaria and other princes were forced to make separate peaces with them ; the emperor alone was opposed to them ; and though the elector a. d. of Bavaria had again joined him, the victory of Zummerhau- 1648. sen, gained by Turenne and Vrangel, and the invasion of Bavaria and Bohemia, compelled him to think at last seriously of peace. Negotiations had long been going on at Osnaburg and Miinster. At last the Peace of Westphai.ia was signed at the latter place on the 24th Oct. 1648. By this celebrated treaty France obtained Alsatia, Brisac, Metz, Verdun, and other territories ; Sweden got Upper Pomerania, Stetin, the Isle of Riigen, Bremen, &c. with three votes at the diet; compensation was made to the elector of Brandenburg and the duke of Mecklenburg for the loss of these territories ; the Upper Palatinate and the electoral rank remained with the duke of Bavaria ; Switzerland was declared independent of the empire ; the pacification of Passau was fully confirmed ; Lutherans and Catholics were placed on the same footing; the imperial chamber was to consist of twenty-six Catholic and twenty-four Protestant members ; six Protestants were admitted into the Aulic council ; an equal number of each party was to be summoned to the diet ; but in cases where it concerned either religion alone, only deputies of that religion should be called. France. Louis XIIL being a minor, his mother, Mary of Medici, a 1610. weak, bigoted woman, was declared regent. She was gov- erned entirely by an Italian, named Concini, and his wife. Sully retired ; new maxims were adopted ; a double marriage and union with Spain was projected ; and the ruin of the 1613. Protestants meditated. The nobility, headed by the prince of Conde, revolted ; they were appeased by gifts ; they re- 1615. volted again, and were again appeased in the same way. Luines, the favorite of Louis, took advantage of his influ- 296 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. ence over him to induce the young prince to seize the reins A. D. of government Louis ordered Concini to be arrested ; the 1617. captain of the guards shot him, under pretext of resistance ; his wife, the high-spirited Galligai, was condemned to death for sorcery and magic ; the regent was exiled to Blois. Lui- nes, from a page, was raised to the highest rank and offices in the state. A conspiracy, headed by the duke of Epernon, released the queen-mother. Guided by the great Richelieu, she caballed against the court, which was obliged to enter into treaties advantageous to her and her party. She procured Richelieu a cardinal's hat, and a seat in the council. 1620. Louis, having united Beam to the crown, attempted, though the people were Protestants, to re-establish there the Catholic religion. The Huguenots were alarmed ; they assembled at Rochelle, and determined to throw off their allegiance, and to form a republic. Luines, now constable, took arms. 1621. Having seduced, by bribes and promises, the duke of Bouillon, and other of their leaders, he laid siege to Montauban with 25,000 men. The place was gallantly defended by the mar- quis la Force, and Luines was forced to retire with disgrace. He died shortly afterwards, and was succeeded in his office of constable by the brave Lesdiguieres, who had renounced Calvinism. The Protestants were led by the duke of Rohan and his brother Soubise. The latter was defeated by the king in person, who laid siege to Montpellier, which was de- 1622. fended as bravely as Montauban. A peace was made, and the edict of Nantes confirmed. The haughty Richelieu became now prime minister. There were three parties whom he resolved to humble ; the nobility of France, the Huguenots, and the house of Austria. To accomplish these objects, he, in spite of the pope and the king of Spain, concluded a marriage between Charles prince of Wales and the king's sister Henrietta, as also an alliance between the two crowns and the United Provinces. A war with Spain was the consequence, in which a French army, united with the Venetians and the duke of Savoy, took the 1625. Valteline, and restored it to the Grisons ; but Spinola reduced Breda, and the English failed in an attempt on Cadiz. The Huguenots rebelled, and were now encouraged by England, The duke of Buckingham appeared before Ro- chelle with 7000 men ; but he had laid his measures so ill, that the citizens refused to admit him, and after an ill-con- ducted attempt on the isle of Rhe, lie returned home with disgrace. Richelieu laid siege to Rochelle ; and having run a mole across the harbor, compelled it to surrender. The duke of Rohan defended himself with vigor in Languedoc ; CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. 297 but as England had made peace, he was forced to come to a. d. terms. The Protestants were continued in the enjoyment of 1629. all that had been secured by the edict of Nantes, only they were deprived of their fortified towns. Having humbled the Protestants at home, and thereby brought the whole kingdom, nobility and all, under the control of the crown, Richelieu resolved, in furtherance of his re- maining object, to aid the Protestants in Germany ; and he formed the secret alliance which we have already noticed.* After the treaty of Prague, he openly joined the Swedes. Meantime he ruled France with a rod of iron : the queen- mother Vv^as banished, her son Gaston duke of Orleans obliged to beg his life, and the marshals Montmorency and Merillas publicly executed. In defiance of all his enemies, Richelieu retained his power till his death, in 1642, at the moment when the arms of France and Sweden had completely hum- bled the pride of the house of Austria. The minister died on the 4th of December: his royal master followed him on the 14th of the ensuing May. Louis had been married to Anne of Austria, daughter of Philip III. of Spain. Spain. The chief domestic incident that distmguished the reign of Philip III. was the expulsion of the Moriscoes. Impelled by the inquisition, and by the advice of his feeble and bigoted minister, the duke of Lerma, Philip issued an edict, com- manding all his Mohammedan subjects to quit the kingdom 1611. within thirty days. In despair the Moors took arms : they were subdued, and a million of industrious subjects driven out of Spain, whose fate it is, to be to Europe a standing ex- ample of the evils of civil and religious despotism. During this reign, attempts were made to extend the Spanish power in Italy. Philip IV. and his minister Olivarez were both men of 1^21. more energy than their predecessors. It was determined to form the closest alliance with the emperor, and to attempt the reduction of the United Provinces, the truce with whom was expired. Notwithstanding, however, these magnificent projects, the power of Spain continued still to decline in this reign. The Spanish infantry was cut to pieces on the plains ^^'^^' of Rocroi by the duke d'Enghien with an inferior force ; the Catalans rebelled ; the Portuguese threw off the yoke ; and the independence of the Dutch was fully acknowledged. The 1643. worm was at the heart of the power of Spain. * See p, 391. 298 OUTLINES -OF HISTORY. PART III. Portugal. The Portuguese had long been irritated by the despotism they were subject to. On the revolt of the Catalans, a law was passed to compel the Portuguese nobles to take arms for their reduction. A plot long formed now broke out. Olivarez had called away the Spanish garrison from Lisbon. The duchess of Mantua, styled the vice-queen, was driven away, and the grandson of the duke of Braganza, who had been de- prived of his right by Philip II., was proclaimed king, under the title of John IV. All Portugal acknowledged him ; ships were sent to the foreign settlements, and all expelled their A. D. Spanish governors. Brazil was recovered from the Dutch, 1640. and Portugal became once more independent. Italy. The dominions of Spain in Northern Italy, were divided from those of the emperor by the Valteline and Venice. Be- 1618. domar, the Spanish ambassador to the latter, formed, in con- junction with the governor of Milan and the viceroy of Na- ples, a nefarious project for murdering the senate, and getting possession of Venice ; but the senate, discovering in time the atrocious plot, executed the majority of the conspirators. 1620. Spain was more fortunate and less guilty in the Valteline, the Catholic inhabitants of which rose on and massacred their Protestant countrymen, and placed themselves under her pro- tection. The emperor and king of Spain each attempted to get the duchy of Mantua, after the death of the duke without heirs ; 1630. but Richelieu entered Italy with an army, and obliged the emperor to grant the investiture to Charles Gonzaga, duke of Nevers. England — The Civil War. An eventful period now commences in England. A new 1603. dynasty fills the throne, and the grand struggle begins be- tween liberty and absolute power. James VI. of Scotland, son of Mary, and descended from the eldest daughter of Henry VII., was, on the death of Elizabeth, placed by the free-will and choice of the English nation on her royal seat. This monarch was possessed of learning and abilities rather above the common rate ; but he was pedantic, mean, and pusillani- mous, shamefully subservient to unworthy favorites, and in his inglorious love of peace careless of the national honor. In the reign of this feeble prince, the English nation first learned to listen to the doctrines of the divine and indefeasi- CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. 299 ble rights of kings ; then, too, the church began to depart from the principles of the reformers, and some of her divines to approximate in their doctrines to those of the church of Rome, so generally odious to the nation. Every thing, in short, was done, as it were, to prepare the materials of the coming conflagration. In .the reign of James, the nation took greatly to trade and maritime enterprise, and increased rapidly in wealth, intelli- gence, and love of freedom. Public events were few. The most remarkable was the Gunpowder Plot, a plan formed in the beginning of the king's reign by a few desperate Catho- lics to blow up the king and parliament, but fortunately dis- covered in time. The most laudable act of James's reign was the settlement and plantation of the north of Ireland. Charles I., of a harsh and arbitrary temper, endeavored to a. i>. put into practice the speculative tenets of his father. He saw 1625. not the state of the nation. English liberty had made great progress under the Plantagenets : circumstances enabled the Tudors nearly to crush it ; but with the growth of wealth, and the freedom of religious opinion, the spirit of the nation had recovered its vigor. Charles was suspected, on account of his marriage with Henrietta, sister to the king of France, a bigoted Catholic, and his partiality towards the professors of that religion, of a secret design against Protestantism. The Puritans, now a numerous party, were bitterly hostile to the church of England ; and the persecuting violence and silly superstition of archbishop Laud augmented their rancor. Re- fused the necessary supplies by the parliament, without giv- ing some security for liberty, the king had recourse to all the illegal modes of taxation employed by his predecessors. Ton- nage and poundage were levied ; all the oppressions of feudal- ism renewed ; for more than ten years no parliament assem- bled. An attempt being made to force Episcopacy upon the 1638. Scots, that nation took arms, and entered into the solemn LEAGUE AND COVENANT. A dreadful rebellion broke out in 1641. Ireland, in which thousands of Protestants were barbarously massacred by the Catholics. The Long Parliament, which the king had assembled, advanced every day in their de- mands on him, and testified a spirit of determined hostility to the church. The impeachment, and illegal and unjust, though well-merited, condemnation of Strafford, the king's ablest and most obnoxious minister, showed him the spirit by which they were actuated. Charles, though reluctantly, still yielded to their demands ; but concession only produced further assump- tion. An invincible distrust of the king's sincerity, for which, indeed, there was abundant reason, haunted the minds of the 300 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PAHT III. A, D. parliament, and prevented all accommodation. Both parties 1642. finally determined on the appeal to the sword. The king was supported by a large proportion of the an- cient nobility and gentry of the realm, many of whom had at first been zealous in checking the royal excesses ; but now, seeing the exorbitant demands of the commons, resolved to sustain the throne. The Catholics were naturally unanimous in his favor ; the western counties were in general well af- fected to him. The chief strength of the parliament lay in the cities and great towns, and the eastern counties, and the lower orders were mostly on their side. It is idle to seek to extenuate the faults on either side ; to represent the one party as the champions of right and justice, the otlier as the inveterate foes of both. Each had much, indeed, to answer for: it was a struggle, the probable termination of which would be tyranny or anarchy ; yet impartiality will say, that the king was left no alternative, and that the balance of guilt was rather on the side of the parliament. Certainly, neither party is entitled to our unqualified approbation. But, in truth, the Civil War was inevitable ; it was the almost necessary result of the state of opinion then prevalent ; it was the tem- pest which was to purify the political atmosphere. The royal standard was raised at Nottingham (Aug. 22). The first battle was fought at Edgehill. In the course of three years, numerous engagements occurred between the troops of the king and those of the parliament, now joined by the Scots. Lansdown Hill, Round way Down, Newbury, Nantwich, Marston Moor, and other places, witnessed the successes and reverses of either party. At length the king 1645. received a final and fatal overthrow at Naseby (June 14), and unable any longer to make head, he fled for protection to the 1647. camp of the Scots at Newark. He was by them dishonorably surrendered to the parliament. After a confinement of some time, he was, by means of the sect of the Independents, who were all-powerful in the army, and were, therefore, now the 1649. prevailing party, brought to trial, condemned, and beheaded ; a sentence, even if morally just, which it undoubtedly was not, flagrantly illegal; a sentence that filled Europe with amazement; and that, even if passed with purer motives than it was, by most of his judges, was an act of useless and per- nicious folly. A republic was now established. Holland. After the truce of 1609, the United Provinces were agi- tated by religious dissensions. The opinions of Calvin were maintained in all their rigor by the followers of Gomer : a CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. 801 milder system was advocated by Arminius. Prince Maurice ' sided with the former ; the patriotic functionary Barneveldt, who saw through the ambitious designs of the prince, sup- ported the latter. The Gomerists prevailed.; the Arminian preachers were banished. Barneveldt, at the age of 72, was brought to the block, under the base and iniquitous charge of a. i>. " vexing the church of God." But the people saw the object 1619 of Maurice, and groans and murmurs, and the name of Bar- neveldt, attended him wherever he went. The Dutch were, during this period, usually allied with France against Spain. They extended their trade in the East and West Indies. In the former they founded Batavia, and laid the foundation of tlieir future empire in those re- gions. Russia, That most extraordinary tyrant, Ivan IV. the Terrible, 1598, was succeeded by his only remaining son, Fedor, with whom ended the house of Ruric. Tlie boyars chose Boris, the brother of the empress. This prince governed well ; but an impostor appeared, pretending to be Dmitri, the eldest son of Ivan. After the death of Boris, the pseudo-Dmitri gained the throne, and his reign was praiseworthy. Suspected of a fondness for Polish manners, he was murdered by his boyars. Several false Dmitries appeared. At length, the nobles assembled to choose a sovereign. Three days they and the people fasted, and called upon God, and they then appointed 1613. Michaila Romanov, son of the archbishop Philocetus, and grandson, by his mother, of the Tzar Ivan, a boy of but fifteen years. The new Tzar spent his reign in restoring Russia to its former state of power and order. His son Alexei extended the relations of the empire. He first sent an embassy to China, and made Tobolsk the staple of the Chinese trade. 1645. Turkey and Persia. The Turkish sultans Ahmed, Mustafa, Osman, Moorad IV., and Ibrahim- were, all but the ill-fated Osman and Moorad, sunk in pleasure and sensual indulgence, and took little part in the affairs of Europe. Moorad conquered Bagdad, and restrained the power of the janizaries. Persia, under the rule of Abbas the Great, attained to con- siderable power. This truly great monarch was victorious 1582. hi his wars against the Ottomans and the Usbegs ; and he es- tablished a degree of tranquillity throughout his dominions, to which Persia had long been a stranger. After his death the 1627. Persian power began to decline. 2 A 302 ' OUl'LINES OF HISTORY. PART III. CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. France, to the Peace of the Pyrenees. A. D. Louis XIV. was a minor, his mother, Anne of Austria, re- 1648. gent, and cardinal Mazarin minister. De Retz (afterwards cardinal) coadjutor archbishop of Paris, a man of unprincipled ambition, endeavored to excite the nobility and people against the minister. The parliament of Paris joined him. The queen was insulted whenever she appeared, Mazarin or- dered the president and some of the most factious members of the parliament to be arrested. The populace rose, and barri- 1677. cadoed the streets till the prisoners were released. Such was the commencement of the celebrated Fronde. The parliament of Paris proclaimed the cardinal a public enemy. The prince of Conti, the duke of Bouillon, and other nobjes, joined them. Other parliaments followed their exam- ple. The great prince of Conde, at the request of the court, dispersed the undisciplined troops the parliament had raised. Matters were settled for a time ; but Conde, Conti, and others were afterwards, by the advice of de Retz, arrested at the council-table. Their partisans took arms : the duke of Or- leans, uncle to the king, set himself at their head. The car- dinal was obliged to fly to Cologne. By the intrigues of him and de Retz the duke of Bouillon and his brother Turenne were detached from the malcontents, and Mazarin returned, 1651. escorted by 6O00 men. Conde threw himself on the protection of Spain, and en- tered Paris at the head of a body of Spanish troops. Turenne led Louis within sight of his capital, and these two great gen- erals engaged each other in the suburb of St. Antoine. The combat was long ; but the heroism of the daughter of the duke of Orleans, who ordered the guns of the Bastille to fire on the king's troops, decided it in favor of Conde. 1653. At length the king dismissed Mazarin, and the nation re- 1655. turned to its allegiance. Mazarin was, however, afterwards recalled, the nobles were punished, and the parliament hum- bled. The war with Spain had still continued ; it was now prose- cuted with vigor. Turenne and Conde were opposed to each 1656. other. At Arras and Valenciennes the talents of the rivals were fully displayed. The balance was even between the two parties ; but Mazarm formed an alliance with Cromwell, CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 303 who now governed England, and the beam was turned. Dun- kirk was taken from Spain, and given to England. Ypres, Gravelines, and several other towns, surrendered to the arms a. d of France. Spain saw the necessity of peace. Mazarin and 1659 Don Louis de Haro, the Spanish minister, met in the Isle of Pheasants, in the Pyrenees, and settled the terms of a peace. Philip agreed to pardon the Catalans, and renounce all claim to Alsace ; Louis to pardon Conde. The succession of Juliers was secured to the duke of Neuburg, and the infanta Maria Theresa was given in marriage to Louis. Mazarin died within less than a year after concluding the 1661 peace of the Pyrenees; and" Louis, now 21 years of age, took the reins of government into his own hands. England, to the Restoration. The parliament now governed England, and the strength the nation exhibited at this period is astonishing. Cromwell led an army into Ireland, and rapidly overran and conquered 1649 the whole kingdom. The Scots having proclaimed Charles II., Cromwell invaded and reduced that kingdom also. Charles 1650 entered England with a Scottish army ; but the battle of Wor- cester put an end to his hopes. Cromwell now dissolved the parliament, and governed alone, under the title of Protector. 1653 Success attended all his measures of foreign policy. He beat the Dutch, and forced their ships to strike their flag to the English. He took Jamaica from the Spaniards. Mazarin acknowledged him. The Venetians and Swiss sought his friendship. The northern courts respected his power. But at home his government was rigorous in the extreme ; and the despotism of Charles I, had never ventured on the tyr- anny and injustice exercised by this chief of the republic. On the death of Cromwell, his son Richard succeeded him 1658. in the protectorate ; but he soon resigned his dignity. The eyes of the nation, wearied of change and turmoil, were turned to the ancient line of their princes. General Monk, who commanded in Scotland, marched to London ; and the parlia- ment, reassembled under his protection, restored Charles II. 1660. to the throne of his ancestors. Wars till the Peace of Nimeguen. The Dutch had, on the death of William IL of Orange, 1576. abolished the dignity of stadtholder. The family of Orange being connected with the royal family of England, Charles II. wished to restore his nephew, William III., to the power of his ancestors, and he also hoped to. make money by a war. The people of England were jealous of the commercial wealth 804 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART IIL A. D. of Holland, War was, therefore, declared under false pre- 1664. texts. Squadrons were sent out to Africa and America. De Witt, pensionary of Holland, who directed the republic, fore- seeing the designs of England, had formed an alliance v^ith France. A large fleet was collected under admiral Opdam. 1665. It engaged the English fleet under the duke of York, but was totally defeated. Louis XIV. and the king of Denmark now came forward to aid the Dutcli. The following year two most desperate sea-fights took place : the first lasted four days, and the fleets separated, leaving victory undecided. The next month the Dutch were defeated. Both parties growing weary of the war, negotiations were opened at Breda; but de Witt refused to consent to a suspension of hos- tilities. A Dutch fleet sailed up the Tliames, and burned sev- 1667. eral ships of war at Chatham ; and de Ruyter, the Dutch ad- miral, rode triumphant in the Channel. The treaty of Breda was now concluded, in which England receded from some of her demands. She retained New- York, which she had con- quered ; she ceded her settlement at Surinam. Louis XIV. now commenced his career of war, the struggle between absolute monarchy and constitutional liberty. On the death of Philip IV. of Spain, who left only one son, 1665. Charles, a sickly infant, Louis, who, though at his marriage with the infanta he had renounced all title to the succession of any part of the Spanish dominions, still secretly cherished the hope of obtaining them, had retracted the renunciation, and even laid claim, in right of his wife, to the immediate possession of the duchy of Brabant. This claim could only be decided by arms. At the head of 40,000 men Louis en- 1667. tered Flanders. Tournay, Douay, Lisle, and other towns sur- rendered. Another campaign, it was feared, would make him master of the Low Countries. All Europe was alarmed. A triple alliance was formed between England, Holland, and 1668. Sweden, to oblige Louis to adhere to, and Spain to accept of, the terms offered by the former at the end of the first cam- paign. France and Spain were equally displeased at this treaty, but agreed to treat; and a treaty was negotiated at Aix-la-Chapelle, by which Spain allowed Louis to retain the towns he had taken, and which he had had strongly fortified by the great Vauban. By a treaty with Portugal at this time, Spam acknowledged the independence of that crown. Louis was bent on revenge on Holland. A secret treaty 1670. was made with the king of England, whom Louis engaged to assist in his project of establishing popery and despotism in that country, if he aided in subduing the United Provinces; and Louis prepared to invade the Statea As he could not CHAP. V. TIMES OP LOUIS XIV. 305 obtain a passage through the Spanish provinces, he, contrary to the faith of treaties, seized on the duchy of Lorrain. Charles, who was now become the pensioner of France, ob- tained under false pretexts a large grant from his parliament ; and a base and unsuccessful attempt was made on the Dutch Smyrna fleet, while the treaty subsisted with the States. At a. d length both monarchs, under the most frivolous pretences, de- 1672 clared war against the United Provinces. The combined fleets of France and England were more than 100 sail. A French army of 120,000 men appeared on the frontiers. The States put forth all their energies. The command of the army was intrusted to William III. of Orange, now 23 years of age. De Witt and de Ruyter attended to the navy. The latter put to sea with 90 sail of large, and 40 of small vessels, to take vengeance on the English for their perfidious attempt on the Smyrna fleet. The English had been joined by the French ; and their combined force was 120 sail, when de Ruyter came in sight of them in Southwold Bay. A despe- rate engagement terminated in no decisive advantage to either side. Louis divided his army into three bodies, under Turenne, Conde and Chamilli, and Luxemburg : the bishop of Miinster and the elector of Cologne were his allies. Several towns surrendered. He passed the Rhine. Nimeguen and Utrecht opened their gates. All the provinces but Holland and Zea- land submitted. Holland opened its sluices, and inundated the country ; but the councils of the state were distracted by the Orange and republican parties. Offers were made to surrender Maestricht and all the frontier towns beyond the limits of the seven provinces, and to pay the expenses of the war. They were haughtily rejected. The prince of Orange was declared stadtholder, and in a moment of popular frenzy the great and good de Witt and his brother were torn to pieces. It was resolved never to submit : ships were even preparecf to carry these modern Phocseans to the East Indies, if unable to retaui their country and liberty. The combined fleets, with an army on board, approached 1673 the coast of Holland. In a manner almost miraculous they were carried out to sea, and afterwards prevented landing their forces by violent storms. Those who regarded this as the interference of providence cannot justly be accused of su- perstition. Meanwhile, Louis had returned to Versailles. The emperor and the elector of Brandenburg had shown a dispo- sition to assist the States. The king of Spain had sent them some forces, and the aspect of their affairs was brightening. The Dutch fleet, under van Tromp and de Ruyter, engaged 2 A 2 306 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART IIL the combined French and English fleets under prince Rupert, in three actions, off the coast of Holland. They were, as usual, long and obstinately fought, and, as usual, undecisive. The French took Maestricht. The prince of Orange re- took Naerden. The imperialists under Montecuculi having vainly attempted the passage of the Rhine, laid siege to Bonn. The prince of Orange joined them. Bonn surrendered. The greater part of the electorate of Cologne was conquered ; and the communication being thus cut off between France and the -United Provinces, Louis was obliged to recall his forces and abandon his conquests. A congress held at Cologne could settle nothing. The house of Austria was terrified at the projects of Louis ; the emperor and the king of Spain signed a treaty with the Dutch, and Spain declared war. A. D. Charles, unable to get supplies from his parliament, made 1G74. peace with Holland. Louis also was desirous of peace ; but the allies were eager for war. Charles in vain tried to me- diate. In the next campaign Louis exerted great energy. At the head of one of his armies he conquered Franche- Comte. A furious but indecisive battle was fought at Seneffe in Brabant, between Turenne and the prince of Or- ange. The prince took Grave, the last town the French held in the United Provinces. Turenne was successful on the side of Germany : he overran the Palatinate ; but his laurels were tarnished by the horrible cruelties and excesses com- mitted by his troops. 1675. Louis again vainly sought peace. In the next campaign nothing of importance took place in Flanders. In Germany Turenne was killed by a cannon-ball, and the French army forced to recross the Rhine. 1676. The next year the French were successful in Flanders, taking Conde and Bouchain. The imperialists took Philips- burg. The French fleet defeated the combined Dutch and Spanish fleets in the Mediterranean, and rode triumphant in that sea. 1677. The Dutch were now as anxious for peace as Louis ; but the prince of Orange wishing to continue the war, another campaign was opened. Louis took Valenciennes, Cambray, and St. Omer, and defeated the prince at Mount Cassal, when he attempted the relief of this last town. The French arms under Crequi and other generals were successful on the Rhine. Spain was torn by factions. A congress had been sitting all this while at Nimeguen, and a conditional treaty was entered into between France and the Dutch. The prince of Orange married in this year the daughter of the duke of York. CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 307 In the following year, Louis took Ghent and Ypres. The a. d. Dutch were terrified, and signed a separate peace at Nime- 1678. guen. The allies clamored : the prince of Orange sought to break it by an attack on a French army ; but all were finally obliged to accede to it. By this treaty Louis retained Franche- Comte and Cambray, Tourney, Valenciennes, and several other towns in the Low Countries, and his power was now by far the most formidable in Europe. England, to the Revolution. The object of Charles IL was to establish absolute power and popery ; and the people, recovering from their delirium of loyalty, gradually became jealous and suspicious of him. Episcopacy having been restored, an iniquitous attempt was 1668. made to force it on Scotland. The detestable barbarity of the government was opposed by the fierce bigotry and fanati- cism erf" the people, and horrible cruelties were exercised to subdue them. The awakened fears and bigotry of the nation caused a Popish Plot to be got up in England, and several 1678. innocent Catholics were judicially murdered. The jealousy of the commons against the designs of the court was ever alive, and it drove them into some measures not compatible with justice and policy. It was attempted to exclude the duke of York, a known papist, from the crown, and the Test Act was passed. But the court, by taking advantage of circumstances, particularly of the Ryehouse Plot, and secretly supplied with money by Louis, advanced rapidly in the career of despotism, or rather approached nearer the precipice over which it was to be whirled. Russel and Sidney were publicly executed ; 1683. passive obedience was preached ; justice was perverted. In this state of affairs the king died. He expired in the 1685. faith of the church of Rome, which he had long secretly pro- fessed. It was indeed, morally speaking, a matter of little importance what the religious sentiments were of such a heartless, selfish profligate. It is an instance of the effect of popular manners and showy qualities on the minds of the vulgar, that this prince, the mean pensioner of France, the conspirer against the religion and liberties of his people, every one of whose acts tended to disgrace the nation, was, like Edward IV. and Henry VIIL, instead of being detested, rather a favorite with the country at large. James II., in his fanatic zeal for popery, would hearken to no remonstrance of prudence. The duke of Monmouth, a natural son of the late king, took up arms in the west of England ; but was defeated, and he and numbers of his ad- herents executed by order of the relentless tyrant. The king 308 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART III. proceeded in his design of changing the religion of the coun- try, and attempted to place Papists in the church and univer- sities. Having ordered his declaration of indulgence to be read in the pulpit, the primate and six bishops petitioned against it. They were committed to the Tower, tried, and acquitted. The joy of the people at this event was no warn- ing to the king. The Whigs and Tories (the parties into which the nation was now divided) coalesced on the birth of a young prince, and invited over the prince of Orange to de- liver the nation. The prince embarked with a large force. A. D. The troops of James deserted him. He and his queen and 2688. son fled to France. The throne was declared vacant, and the prince and princess of Orange proclaimed king and queen of England. The Bill of Rights, and, at a subsequent period, the Act of Settlement, were passed for the security of the nation. Such was the revolution of 1688, justly called Glorious ; the noblest instance history presents of the salutary and ir- resistible power of public opinion, directed by wisdom, and aiming at just and worthy ends. It is an event to which Eng- land, as long as her name and her language exist, must look back with pride and gratitude; it stands a noble monument of bloodless resistance, amidst the scenes of cruelty, slaugh- ter, and oppression which deform the domains of history. Be- fore its radiance, absolute power, passive obedience, and their kindred doctrines, fled like spectres of the night, to conceal themselves from human view. Wai's to the Peace of Ryswick. After the peace of Nimeguen, Louis proceeded to act in the most arbitrary and insolent manner. He treacherously made himself master of Strasburg, and demanded Alost from the 1683. Spaniards. The Turks had at this time invaded Hungary, and occupied the imperial arms. Joined by the Hungarian malcon- tents, who had invited them, the Turkish army advanced towards Vienna. The vizier laid siege to that city ; but the German princes collected their forces, and, under the command of 1684.] John Sobieski, king of Poland, came to its relief The Turks ' were seized with a panic, and fled ; and they were finally driven out of Hungary. Louis, who had suspended his ope- rations during the siege of Vienna, now reduced Luxemburg, Courtray, and Dixmund. The emperor and Spain were forced to conclude a truce with him. He was now at the height of his power : he had a most extensive marine ; had chastised the pirate states of Africa, trampled on the power and inde- pendence of Genoa, and insulted the dignity of the pope. In CHAP.V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 309 the ignorance of his bigotry, he revoked the edict of Nantz, a. d. treated his Protestant subjects with all the injustice and cru- 1686. elty that blind fanaticism could dictate, and thereby lost to France thousands of industrious citizens, who augmented tlie wealth and the armies of his enemies. A league was formed at Augsburg, to restrain tlie en- 1687. croachments of France. Spain and Holland joined it, as also did Denmark, Sweden, and Savoy, and, finally, England, now governed by William. The emperor Leopold was at the head of the confederacy. Louis assembled two large armies in 1689. Flanders; a third was opposed to the Spaniards in Catalonia; another entered and ravaged the palatinate in a most barbar- ous and fiendish manner, a conduct almost peculiar to the French among civilized nations. But this detestable policy did not avail Louis : his troops were unsuccessful on all sides ; and he lost Mentz and Bonn. In the next campaign he was 1690. more fortunate : the mareschal de Catinat reduced all Savoy; Luxemburg and Boufflers defeated the allies at Fleurus, and Catalonia was thrown into confusion. The Turks were suc- cessful in Hungary. The French fleet defeated the com- bined Dutch and English off Beachy-head. The following 1691. year, though Louis took Mens, he and his allies the Turks, made little progress. Louis, the ensuing spring, took Na- mur; and the king of England made an unsuccessful attack on the French army at Steenkirk; Catinat was driven back, 1692. and the duke of Savoy ravaged Dauphine. Waradin was taken from the Turks. The French fleet was defeated off La Hogue. Next year, Luxemburg defeated, at Landen, the 1693. allies, commanded by the king of England ; and Catinat, those under the duke of Savoy, at the river Cisola. A French squadron dispersed and captured several ships of the Smyrna fleet Meanwhile, France was internally suffering the effects of war. Agriculture and commerce languished ; and, in the next campaign, nothing of importance was done. In the cam- paign of 1695, William recovered Namur. In the following, 1696. no signal event occurred. All parties were now tired of war. A congress was opened at Ryswick, near Delft, and a treaty 1697. concluded, by which Louis made great concessions, acknow- ledging William III., and restoring to Spain almost all the places that had been united to France, and giving back Lor- rain and Bar to their native princes. The gallant sultan, Mustafa II., was totally defeated at Zenta, in Hungary, by 1699. prince Eugene of Savoy, and forced to conclude a peace at '* Carlo witz. Tranquillity was thus for a time restored. 310 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART IIL England. A. D. The cause of James was supported in Scotland by the brave 1689. but cruel viscount Dundee, At the battle of Killicranky, he was killed in the midst of victory. The Presbyterian religion was re-established in that kingdom. James himself passing over to Ireland, the Catholics armed in his favor. They were repulsed in their attempt on Derry, and William soon landed 1690. in Ireland, and gained the decisive battle of the Boyne. James fled to France. William invested Limerick without success ; but the following year, his general, de Ginckel, defeated the 1691. Irish at Aughrim, took Athlone, and Limerick surrendered on conditions which were not subsequently very rigidly ad- hered to by the victorious party. The government of William III., the ablest prince of his age, and one of the best and greatest monarchs that have sat on the English throne, was now firmly established with the consent and support of the majority of the British nation, though a strong faction still clung to the cause of the banished tyrant. Spanish Succession, Charles II. of Spain had no children, and his health was declining. The claimants of the crown were Louis XIV. and the dauphin, and the emperor and the king of the Ro- mans. Both Louis and Leopold were equally related to Charles : they were grandsons of Philip III., and married to daughters of Philip IV. A third competitor was the electoral prince of Bavaria. Right of birth was with the Bourbons, as the king and the dauphin were descended from the eldest in- fantas; but the imperial family pleaded the renunciations made by Louis XIII. and XIV., and, as the descendants of Maximilian, the right of male representation. The electoral pruice claimed in right of his mother, the only surviving child of the emperor Leopold by the infanta Margaret, second daughter of Philip IV., who had declared her descendants heir to the crown, in preference to those of his eldest daugh- ter. It was for the interest of Europe that the Bavarian prince should succeed ; but he was unable to cditend with his rivals. No power was inclined for war. Louis and Leopold secretly intrigued at Madrid. The body of the Spanish nation was for the former ; tlie queen and her party for the emperor. C9S. Meantime France, England, and Holland secretly signed a treaty of partition, to give Spain, America, and the Nether- lands to the electoral prince ; Naples, Sicily, some places in CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 811 Italy and Spain to the dauphin ; and the duchy of Milan to Charles, the emperor's second son. This treaty coming- to the knowledge of the court of Spain, filled it with rage. The king made a will in favor of the electoral prince. England and Holland were well pleased a. d, at this; but the sudden death of that prince revived their 1699. apprehensions. -A second treaty of partition was secretly signed by the same powers, giving the electoral prince's part 1700, to the archduke Charles,, and Milan to the duke of Lorrain, who was to cede his territories to the dauphin ; and care was taken to prevent, in any case, the crown of Spain being united to that of France or the empire. The emperor rejected the treaty of partition, and the king of Spain nominated the archduke his heir. The nobles and clergy of Spain were for the Bourbons. The archbishop of Toledo prevailed on the king to write to consult the pope ; and Innocent XIL, aware that the liberties of Italy depended on restraining the imperial power, required him to prefer the family of Bourbon. A new will was secretly made, in which 170L the duke of Anjou, second son of the dauphin, was declared heir. Charles died soon afterwards, and Louis, after some hesitation, accepting the succession, the young king was crowned, under the title of Philip V. ; and England and Hol- land found it necessary to acknowledge him. Leopold dis- puted his title, and sent an army into Italy, to support his claim to Milan. He met there with signal success : the Eng- lish and Dutch, after some fruitless negotiations with France, resolved to support him. He gained the elector of Branden- burg by creating him king of Prussia ; and the king of Den- mark was ready to aid him. A treaty, called the Grand Alliance, was signed by the plenipotentiaries of the emperor, the States General, and the king of England. The avowed objects of it were, to procure the emperor satisfaction respecting the Spanish sucGession, to prevent the union of the French and Spanish monarchies, &c. Neither England nor Holland would agree to support the emperor in his demand of all the Spanish dominions. On the death of William III., his successor, queen Anne, 1702. declared her resolution to adhere to the Grand Alliance, and war was declared by the three powers against France. In the first campaign, the French defeated the imperialists on the Upper Rhine ; but the earl of Marlborough made great progress in Flanders, and the combined fleets of England and Holland captured the Spanish galleons, and took and burned a French fleet in Vigo bay. The duke of Savoy, long irreso- 1703. lute, at length joined the allies, as did also the king of For- 312 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. tugal. The elector of Bavaria and Marshal Villars defeated the imperialists at Hochstadt. The French had the advantage in Italy and Alsace. In Flanders, the genius of Marlborough kept them in check. The emperor now directed his son Charles to assume the title of king of Spain. A. D. The emperor was almost besieged in his capital by the 1704. Hungarian malcontents on one side, and the French and Bavarians on the other. Marlborough, as the United Prov- inces were now secured, resolved to march into Germany, to the aid of Leopold. He crossed the Rhine at Coblentz, and meeting prince Eugene at Mondelsheim, a junction was agreed on between the allies and the imperial troops under the duke of Baden. They forced the intrenchments of the elector of Bavaria at Donawert The elector was reinforced by 30,000 French under Tallard: prince Eugene joined Marlborough with 20,000. Each army consisted of about 60,000 men, when they engaged (Aug. 13) near the village of Blenheim, on the banks of the Danube. The victory of the allies was signal; 30,000 French and Bavarians were killed, wounded, and taken : the loss of the allies was 5000 killed, and 7000 wounded. All Bavaria was overrun; the victors crossed the Rhine, and entered Alsace. In Italy and Spain the advantage was on the side of the French ; but the important fortress of Gibraltar was taken by the English. 1705. Next year the French maintained their superiority in Italy; but in Spain almost the whole of Valencia and Catalonia sub- mitted to Charles. In Flanders Marlborough was unable to effect any thing. Leopold died this year. 1706. Louis now resolved to strain every nerve to maintain an army in Germany, support his grandson in Spain, strip the duke of Savoy of his dominions, and act offensively in Flan- ders. The ardor of Villeroy in the latter country destroyed all his projects: this general, though with a superior force, gave battle to Marlborough at Ramillies, and was defeated, with the loss of 7000 killed, and 6000 prisoners. All Brabant, and nearly all Spanish Flanders, submitted to the conquerors. In Italy the French, under the duke of Orleans, were attacked and driven out of their camp before Turin, by prince Eugene ; and the house of Bourbon in consequence lost all the territo- ries it claimed in Italy. In Spain the French and Spaniards were repulsed in their attack on Barcelona, and the English and Portuguese entered Madrid, which they were, however, unable to retain. Most advantageous terms were now offered by Louis to the allies ; but the self-interest of Marlborough, Eugene, and the pensionary Heinsius, prevented their being CHAP.V. TIMES OP LOUIS XIV. 813 accepted, though without any farther effusion of hlood all the objects of the grand alliance might now be attained. Louis collected all his energies : his troops being obliged a. d. to evacuate Milan, Mantua, and Modena, he sent them to the IWT. aid of his grandson ; and (April 26) the duke of Berwick (a natural son of James II.) gained a most decisive victory over the confederates, under the earl of Galway and the marquis las Minas, at Almanza. The duke of Orleans re- duced Valencia and part of Aragon. Prince Eugene and the duke of Savoy entered France and laid siege to Toulon, but were forced to abandon the enterprise. Enraged by a 1708- futile attempt of Louis in favor of the son of James II,, the English parliament adopted most vigorous measures for con- tinuing the war. Marlborough passed over to Flanders, where the French had taken Ghent and Bruges ; and though not yet joined by Eugene, he crossed the Scheld, and came up with the French army, commanded by the duke of Vendome, at Oudenarde. The battle was obstinate, and lasted till night, during which the French fled, leaving the glory of the victory with the allies. Prince Eugene now formed the siege of and took Lisle ; and Ghent and Bruges were recov- ered. The French had rather the advantage in Spain and Italy ; but Sardinia and Minorca surrendered to the English admiral Leake. Again Louis offered the most honorable and advantageous 1709. terms to the allies : he was willing to cede all the Spanish dominions to Charles, to give back to the emperor all his conquests on the Upper Rhine, to acknowledge the succession established in England, the king of Prussia, &c. — in a word, to do every thing that justice could possibly demand. Again the passions and selfishness of those three above-named per- sons retarded the repose of Europe. The French monarch appealed to his people, and, though wasted by famine, they resolved on new efforts. The allied army, 100,000 strong, was formed on the plains of Lisle. Villars, who commanded the French forces, covered Douay and Arras. Eugene and Marlborough, deeming it imprudent to attack him, drew off, and sat down before Tour- nay. That strong city was reduced. They invested Mons. Villars encamped within a league of it, at Malplaquet. The allies attacked him (Sept. 11.) in the strong position he occu- pied: the contest was obstinate and bloody: the allies re- mained masters of the field, with the loss of 15,000 men; the French retreated, with the loss of 10,000, the armies having been of nearly equal strength. Mons surrendered. Little of importance was done elsewlierc. Louis again applied for 1710, ^ 2B 314 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. peace, and a conference was appointed at Gertruydenburg. He was willing to make still farther concessions ; but the in- solence and extravagance of the demands of the States, to whom the negotiation was committed, were such, that it was not possible for him with any honor to accede to them. Eu- gene and Marlborough reduced Douay, and other towns. Villars declined a battle. In Spain, Philip and Charles en- gaged each other at Almenara and Saragossa, and Charles was victorious in each conflict. He entered Madrid. More troops arriving from France, the Spanish nobles made every effort for Philip. Vendome took the command, and forced the English general Stanhope to surrender, with 5000 men, at Brihuega, but was himself beatten at Villa Viciosa by count Staremburg, with a far inferior force. A great portion of the English nation was now grown tired of the expenses of the war ; a change had taken place in its A. D. ministry, the Tories having come into power ; the emperor *'7n. Joseph was dead, and his brother Charles had succeeded him in the empire. As by the grand alliance the imperial and Spanish crowns could not be held by the same person, a great difficulty in the way of adjustment was now removed. After an inactive campaign, conferences for peace were opened at Utrecht, where the treaties were at last signed, on the 31st of March, 1713, by the plenipotentiaries of France, England, Portugal, the United Provinces, Prussia, and Savoy ; the em- peror and the king of Spain refusing to be included. It was stipulated that Philip should renounce all title to the crown of France, and the dukes of Berri and Orleans to that of Spain ; that in case of the failure of male issue of Philip, the duke of Savoy should succeed to the crown of Spain ; that Naples, Milan, and the Spanish territories on the Tuscan coast should be ceded to the house of Austria, and that house secured in the possession of the Spanish Netherlands ; that the Rhine should be the boundary between France and Ger- many, &c. &c. The acquisitions of England were chiefly in America: she was to retain Gibraltar and Minorca, to have the Asiento or contract for supplying the Spanish settlements with negroes for thirty years ; and Louis acknowledged the settlement of the English throne. But the real gain was on the side of Louis, who obtained all that the war had been en- gaged in to prevent his acquiring. This treaty brought well- merited odium on the English ministry. 1714. The following year the emperor made peace at Rastadt, on less favorable terms than were offered him at Utrecht. The king of Spain also acceded to the pacification, and Europe rested from war. CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 315 In this year died Louis XIV., the disturber of Europe for nearly half a century. His grandson and successor being a minor, the duke of Orleans was appointed regent. North of Europe — Peter the Great — Charles XII. The people of Denmark, to escape the tyranny of the no- a. d. bles, solemnly surrendered their liberties to Frederick III., in 1670 166L His successor. Christian V., made war on Charles XI. of Sweden, whose father, Charles X., had been called to the throne, on the abdication of Christina, daughter of Gusta- vus Adolphus. Charles XII., a minor, succeeded his father, i697. Charles XL Alexei of Russia was followed by his son Theodore, who, dying early, appointed his half-brother Peter to succeed ; but 1682. his sister vSophia, aided by the Strelitzes, attempted to secure the power for herself Peter being but ten years of age, she made his imbecile brother Ivan tsar, and associated Peter w^ith him. At the age of seventeen Peter succeeded in sub- verting the power of Sophia, and obtained the full royal dig- nity and influence. He defeated the Turks at Azoph, which 1696. opened to him the Black Sea. He formed vast plans for the improvement of his empire, and he spent a year in Holland and England, making himself acquainted with the useful arts. Eager to distinguish himself in war, he joined the kings of 1701. Poland and Denmark against the young king of Sweden- Charles, though a youth, showed himself a hero. He made an alliance with Holland and England, landed in Denmark, laid siege to Copenhagen, and forced the king to a peace. The Russians had, meantime, besieged Narva with 80,000 men. Charles hasted thither with 10,000, forced their in- trenchments, killed 18,000, and took 30,000 prisoners. Next year he defeated the Poles and Saxons on the Duna, and 1702. overran Livonia, Courland, arid Lithuania. Augustus elector of Saxony was king of Poland : his new subjects were dissatisfied with him. Charles formed the de- sign of dethroning him by their means. He defeated him at CHssau, between Warsaw and Cracow, and this last city sur- rendered. Augustus engaged him again at Pultausk, and was again defeated. He fled to Thorn. The throne was 1703. pronounced vacant by the diet, in which the intrigues of Charles prevailed, and Stanislaus Leczinzky was chosen king. 1704. Peter,^ having retaken Narva, sent 60,000 men into Poland: A Saxon army^'entered it under general Schalemburg; but Charles soon drove the Russians out of the country, and his general Renschild defeated Schalemburg at Frauenstadt with 1706. great slaughter. The king of Sweden entered and overran 810 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. A. D. Saxony, and forced Augustus to recognize Stanislaus. Having 1707. made the emperor comply with his demands, Charles re- turned to Poland, with 40,000 men. He attempted, though it was winter, to march to Moscow ; but the Tsar had de- stroyed the roads. Urged by Mazeppa, chief of the Cossacks, who offered to join him with 30,000 men, and supply him 1708. with provisions, he entered the Ukraine. Here he encoun- tered nothing but disappointment. Mazeppa's plans had been discovered ; no supplies were provided : general Lewenhaupt, whom he had ordered to join him with 15,000 men from Livo- nia, arrived with his army reduced to 4000 men. Though urged by his ministers to retreat, or to winter in the Ukraine, he madly resolved to proceed. He laid siege to Pultowa, a strong town. His army was now reduced to less than 30,000 men ; the Tzar, at the head of 70,000, approached to its relief. Charles, leaving 7000 to conduct the siege, advanced to give 1709. him battle. (July 8). The result of the conflict was, that Charles, with 300 men, sought a refuge with the Turks at Bender. The entire Swedish army were killed or taken. Augustus recovered Poland ; and, but for the emperor and the maritime powers, Sweden would have been dismem- bered. After an abode of nearly five years in Turkey, Charles re- turned to his own dominions, and conducted the war against the Danes and Saxons. He was at length killed before the 1718. fortress of Fredericshall, in Norway. His sister Ulrica was crowned queen. Peter, justly styled the Great, having given his country a rank among European powers, introduced into her civilization and the arts, and founded a capital in the north of his domin- ions, took the title of emperor. But he never was able to subdue the native ferocity of his own temper, and he put to death his son Alexis for no just cause. He left his crown to 1725. his wife, the famous Catherine I. England. The chief domestic events in Great Britain were the union with Scotland, accomplished in 1706, and the settlement of 1701. the crown on Sophia, duchess dowager of Hanover, and her heirs, being Protestants. This princess was daughter of Elizabeth, daughter of James I., who was married to the un- fortunate elector palatine. CHAP. VI. PERIOD OF COMPARATIVE REPOSE. 317 CHAP. VI. PERIOD OF COMPARATIVE REPOSE. England. On the death of queen Anne, George elector of Hanover a. d. was, by virtue of the act of settlement, proclaimed king. The HI*. power of the state was now committed to the Whigs, and the late Tory ministers, who had been desirous of securing the succession of the son of James 11., now called the Pretender, were impeached of higli treason. Louis XIV. had refused to take any share in the projects of the Pretender, but, on his death, the regent of France secretly encouraged him. His partisans rose in arms in the Highlands of Scotland and the 1715. west of England. The English rebels were forced to surren- der at Preston ; and the battle of SherifF-Muir, though not de- cisive, crushed the hopes of the northern rebels. The Pre- tender himself landed in Scotland, but, finding his affairs des- perate, retired. In this reign was passed the act for making parliaments septennial instead of triennial, which they had previously 1727, been. George II. succeeded his father. The Quadruple Alliance. Philip V. had, after the death of his first queen, married 1714. Elizabeth Farnese, presumptive heiress of Parma, PJacentia, and Tuscany- She was a vv^oman of spirit, and governed that weak monarch ; she was herself directed by Alberoni, a na- tive of Placentia. This bold statesman formed the project of recovering all the dominions ceded at the peace of Utrecht, especially those in Italy. He labored to put the finances of Spaui on the best footing ; he intrigued in every court ; he persuaded Philip that his renunciation of the crown of France was invalid, and that he had even a right to the regency of that kmgdom. Alberoni encouraged the Scottish Jacobites, and inflamed the French malcontents, and a plot was formed for a rising in Poitou, and a seizure of the person of the regent. The exorbitant ambition of the court of Spain determined the regent to enter into an alliance with England, Holland, and the emperor, to maintain the treaty of Utrecht. This was called the Quadruple Alliance. One of its articles was, that the duke of Savoy should exchange Sicily with the emperor for Sardinia, of which he was to take the title of king ; and by anotlier, Don Carlos, son of the young queen 2B2 318 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. of Spain, was to succeed to Parma, Placentia, and Tuscany, on the death of the present possessors without issue. A, D. This alliance made no change in the conduct of the court 1718. of Spain, who had already taken possession of Sardinia and. a part of Sicily, and France and England declared war against her. An English fleet, under SirGeorge Byng, entered the Mediterranean, defeated the Spanish fleet near Sicily, and that island and Sardinia were recovered. The duke of Ber- wick reduced St. Sebastian and Fontarabia, and Philip was obliged to dismiss Alberoni, and accede to the terms of the 1720. quadruple alliance. 1725. A private treaty was afterwards concluded between the emperor and the king of Spain at Vienna. This treaty gave umbrage to England, France, and Holland ; and to counteract it, one was concluded at Hanover between them and Prussia, 1726. Denmark, and Sweden. The emperor and the king of Spain remained quiet; but the English fitted out three fleets, one of which, under admiral Hosier, was sent to the West Indies to block up the galleons at Porto Bello ; but the attempt was a complete failure. The Spaniards, in return, laid seige to Gibraltar. By the mediation of France a treaty was made 1729. at Seville, by which it was agreed that all the stipulations of the quadruple alliance should be fulfilled. 1731. The treaty of Seville was confirmed by the emperor,'and the Spanish troops took possession of Parma and Placentia. The contracting powers agreed to guaranty the Pragmatic Sanction, or law by which the emperor secured to his female heirs the succession of the Austrian dominions in case of his dying without male issue, and the peace of Europe was now restored. 1733. But, on the death of Augustus king of Poland, Stanislaus, who was recommended by the king of France, who had mar- ried his daughter, being a second time chosen king, the em- peror and the Russians made the Poles proceed to another election, and choose the elector of Saxony, son of Augustus. The king of France entered into an alliance with the kings of Spain and Sardinia, and war was commenced against the emperor in Germany and Italy. The French arms were suc- cessful in Germany. In two campaigns the Spaniards be- came masters of Naples and Sicily ; the troops of France and Savoy took Milan and other places, and gave the imperialists two complete defeats at Parma and at Guastella. The em- peror was now desirous of peace ; and as the pacific Fleury directed the councils of France, a treaty was easily brought 1735. about. Stanislaus was to resign his claim to the crown of Polaml for the ducliy of Lorrain, the duke of Lorrain being CHAP. VI. PERIOD OP COMPARATIVE REPOSE. 819 secured by Louis an annual pen.sion of 3,500,000 livres till the death of John Gaston, the last of the house of Medici, and in that event the duchy of Tuscany ; the emperor was to ac- knowledge Don Carlos as king of the two Sicilies, and to re- ceive the duchies of Parma and Placentia ; Novara and Tor- tona were to be given to the king of Sardinia ; France was to give back her conquests in Germany, and to guaranty the a. d. Pragmatic Sanction. Peace was made at Vienna on these 1738. terms. Russia. Catherine reigned but two years after the death of Peter. She died in the 38th year of her age, and her son Peter became 1727. emperor. After a short reign of three years, Peter also died. The Dolgoruki family, as the male line of the liouse of Romanov 1730. expired in him, thought this a flivorable occasion for gaining the love of tlie nation by limiting the imperial authority. Deputies were sent to offer the crown, on certain conditions, to Anne, the widow of the duke of Courland, and daughter of the Tsar Ivan, brother of Peter the Great. She accepted the conditions; but when she found herself fixed on the throne, she tore the contract, and ruled with absolute power. Having no children, Anne fixed on marrying the daughter of her sister Catherine, duchess of Mecklenburg, also named Anne, to some foreign prince, and settling the succession on the offspring of their marriage. Tlie princess was, therefore, united to Anton Uh-ich of Bmnswick-Bevern, by whom she bare a son named Ivan, wiio succeeded the empress. 1740. Turkish wars. The Turks had, in 1669, taken Candia from the Venetians. By the peace of Carlowitz (1699), the Venetians obtained the Morea, and some places in Dalmatia. While Charles XII. was in Turkey, a war broke out between the Turks and Russians; but the Tsar, who had advanced to the Pruth, be- ing greatly outnumbered by the army of the vizier, was glad to conclude a treaty. 1711. Immediately after the peace of Utrecht, sultan Ahmed III. 1715. declared war ag-ainst the Venetians, and overran the Morea. The emperor Charles VI., as guarantee of the peace of Carlowitz, declared war against the Turks, and prinx^e Eu- gene gave the troops of the sultan a total defeat at Peter- waradin. He laid siege to Belgrade, defeated an army that 1717. came to its relief, and compelled it to surrender. A peace was made at Passarowitz, by which the Turks 1718. 320 OUTLINES OF HISTORY, PART III. surrendered Belgrade and the Bannat of Temiswar, but re- tained the Morea. A D. Under the pretext of the incursions of the Nogai Tatars 1736. not being checked, the empress of Russia declared war against Turkey. A Russian army, under Miinnich, took pos- session of the Crimea. In the following campaign the town 1737. of OczacofF was taken by storm. The emperor now joined the Russians, as he was bound to do by treaty ; but the im- perial arms met little success, and a peace was concluded, to which the Russian empress, though her forces had gained a great victory at Chotin, was obliged to accede, Belgrade, 1739. Sabatch, and the Austrian part of Servia, were ceded to Turkey ; Russia retained Azoph. Persia — Nadir Shah. The dynasty of the Suffavies had occupied the throne of Persia for 220 years. Their latter princes had been eifemi- nate sensualists, and capricious tyrants. In the reign of 1722. Shah Hoossein, Mahmood, an Affghan prince, invaded Persia, defeated the troops of Hoossein, and forced him to abdicate in his favor. Tamasp, the son of Hoossein, struggled inef- 1725. fectually against the usurper. The Turks and the Russians invaded Persia. Mahmood dying, was succeeded by Ashraff, a valiant Affghan chief: but Tamasp was now supported by Nadir Kooli, who, from a low rank in one of the Turkish tribes in Kliorassan, had, by his valor and talents, raised him- self to power and importance. The fortune of war was ad- 1729. verse to the Affghan monarch ; he was defeated, and after- wards slain. Nadir was presented by Shah Tamasp with the four finest provinces of the empire. He turned his arms with success against the Turks ; but while he was absent in Khorassan, Tamasp marched against them, was defeated, and reduced to make an ignominious peace. Nadir, inveighing against this national disgrace, dethroned the unhappy prince, and occu- 1732. pied his place. He then commenced operations anew against the Turkish forces, and defeated them. Offended at a breach of friendship by the emperor of India, Nadir invaded that country. One great victory, near Delhi, laid the power of 1738. the descendant of Timoor at his feet. Upwards of 30,000,000 sterling of booty, and the annexation of the country west of the Indus to his dominions, rewarded the victory of Nadir, who committed less crimes in so great a conquest than almost any Asiatic victor. He afterwards subdued the kings of Bok- hara and Khowaresm, and gained a final victory over the Turks in Armenia. For the last five years of his life, Nadir CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 321 exercised the most dreadful tyranny : he blinded his brave son, Riza Kooli, massacred his subjects by thousands, and a. d. was at length assassinated by his own officers. His nephew, 1747. Adil Shah, seized on the supreme power, and murdered all the family of Nadir but his grandson, Shah Rokh, who ruled Khorassan while Persia was struggled for by contending chiefs. CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. The Silesian Wars. The emperor Charles VI. was succeeded in his hereditary 1740. dominions by his daughter Maria Theresa, who was in her twenty-fourth year, and married to Francis duke of Lorrain, now grand duke of Tuscany. Various princes laid claim to the whole or a part of her dominions ; but allegiance was readily sworn to her by all her subjects, and by her volunta- rily taking the oath of their ancient sovereigns, she com- pletely gained the affections of the Hungarians. The first power by which she was assailed was Prussia. 1741. Frederic William, the late king, had amassed a considerable treasure, and formed an army of 60,000 men. His son, Fred- eric II., was young, talented, and ambitious: he resolved to take advantage of the present state of the queen of Hungary, and he revived an antiquated claim to a part of Silesia. At the head of 30,000 men he overran a great part of that prov- ince, and took Breslau, its capital. He offered to aid the queen with men and money to protect the rest of her domin- ions, and to assist in obtaining the imperial throne for her husband, if she would cede to him Lower Silesia. Maria re- fused, and sent an army against him: their forces met at Molwitz, near Neiss, and the superiority of the Prussian in- fantry won the day. France had guarantied the Pragmatic Sanction, and Fleury wished to observe it ; but the princes and the young nobility were eager for war, and represented that the time was come for humbling the house of Austria, and exalting that of Bour- bon, by diminishing the Austrian dominions, and raising to the imperial dignity the elector of Bavaria, the stipendiary of France. The moderation of Louis yielded to these brilliant pros- pects: treaties of spoliation and division were made v/ith the 322 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. elector of Bavaria and the kings of Prussia and Poland. The French forces were put in motion ; Louis appointed the elec- tor of Bavaria to be his lieutenant-general, with the marshals Belleisle and Broglio under him. The king of England, fear- ing for his German dominions, concluded a treaty of neutrality for Hanover. The elector of Bavaria, being joined by Broglio, surprised Passau, and entering Upper Austria, took Lintz and menaced Vienna. The queen fled to Hungary, and, with her infant son in her arms, called on the assembled nobles for protection. They swore to defend her cause till death.* These were not idle words ; crowds of warriors rushed to the field. To the astonishment of her enemies, 30,000 Hungarians marched to the relief of Vienna. The elector retired into Bohemia, where, joined by 15,000 Saxons, he took Prague, and having A. D. been crowned king of Bohemia, proceeded to Frankfort, where 1742. he was chosen emperor under the name of Charles VII. The English nation was eager for war; the pacific Sir Robert Walpole was obliged to retire from the helm of the state ; his successors resolved to assist the queen of Hungary ; troops were sent to the Netherlands, and a subsidy voted to the queen. Meantime, the Austrians had recovered Lintz, and they entered Bavaria, and took Munich. Another army advanced against the king of Prussia, who had entered Mo- ravia, which was to be a part of his share of the spoil. He retired before it, abandoning Olmutz which he had taken. The Austrians now intended uniting all their forces against Broglio and Belleisle; but the king of Prussia, having been reinforced, marched to their aid, and gave battle to prince Charles of Lorrain at Czaslau, where, after an obstinate con- flict, the prince was forced to retire with the loss of 4000 men. Immediately after this battle, the king of Prussia made at Breslau a separate treaty with the queen of Hungary, who ceded to him Silesia and Glatz, on condition of his neutrality. A treaty was at the same time concluded with the king of Poland. The court of France was filled with indignation at the conduct of the king of Prussia. Broglio and Belleisle retired under the walls of Prague, and offered to surrender all their conquests in Bohemia for permission to retire. The queen insisted on their surrendering as prisoners of war. They in- dignantly refused. Maillebois, who commanded on the Rhine, marched with 40,000 men to their relief Being joined by 30,000 Bavarians and French, he entered Bohemia ; but, un- * Moriamur pro rege nostro Maria Theresa, CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 323 able to join Broglio and Belleisle, he was obliged to retire to the Palatinate. The French were blockaded in Prague. Belleisle made a most gallant defence, and at last secretly left tlie city, and conducted his arniy in safety to Egra in the mid-winter, and through a country possessed by the enemy. The Spaniards had sent an army to seize the Italian do- minions of the house of Austria ; but by the active exertions of the English fleet, and of the king of Sardinia and the Austrian general Traun, they gained little advantage. The court of Versailles now made offers of peace on most equi- table terms ; but the queen, elated with success, rejected all pacific measures. The imperialists were defeated at Bran- nau ; the French were driven towards the Rhine; and the emperor was obliged to take refuge at Frankfort, where he lived in indigence and obscurity. The British and Hanoverian troops under tlie earl of Stair, and the Austrians under thedukeof Aremburg, marched from the Low Countries towards Germany. The French army under the duke of Noailles was posted near Frankfort. The king of England had arrived in the camp of the allies. Noa- illes had cut off all their supplies. It was expected that they must surrender, or be cut to pieces in their retreat. The re- treat began : their route lay between a mountain and the Main. Noailles had taken possession of the village of Det- tingen in their front. His dispositions were admirable ; but having repassed the river, his nephew, the duke of Gram- mont, advanced (June 26), into a small plain to engage the allies. Noailles saw, but could not remedy, this act of im- prudence : the impetuosity of the French was forced to yield to the steadiness of the allies, and they were driven over the Main with the loss of 5000 men. The victory was produc- tive of no important results. The haughty conduct of Maria Theresa began now to give great offence in the empire ; several princes entered inlo a private negotiation with Charles VII. ; the king of Prussia promised his aid on his usual terms — increase of territory. A a. d. family compact was entered into between France and Spain, 1744. and an invasion of England attempted in favor of the pre-. tender. In Italy, the French and Spaniards were successfnL A treaty was formed at Frankfort between the emperor, the king of Prussia, the elector palatine, and the landgraf of Hesse Cassel. The French arms were victorious in Flan- ders: the king of Prussia invaded Bohemia; but he was driven out of it with the loss of 20,000 men, and all his bag- gage and artillery. The emperor had recovered his domin- 324 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. ions and capital ; but, on the retreat of the Prussians, he was A. D. again expecting to lose tliem, when death came to his relief. 1745. His son Maximilian, being only seventeen years of age, con- cluded a treaty of peace with the queen of Hungary. She agreed to recognize the imperial dignity of his late father, and to put him in possession of all his hereditary dominions; and he renounced all claim to any part of the Austrian suc- cession, and promised to give his vote for the grand duke of Tuscany at the ensuing election of an emperor. France and Spain resolved to continue the war. Elizabeth Farnese, who still directed the councils of the latter, was de- termined to gain a sovereignty in Italy for her second son Philip. The republic of Genoa concluded an alliance with the house of Bourbon : the army of the confederates was more than double that opposed to it, and Milan, Pavia, and several other towns were taken. A large French army marched to the Main, to hold the queen of Hungary in check; another of 76,000 men, under marshal Saxc, invested Tour- nay. The allied army of 50,000 men resolved to attempt its relief The king and dauphin were in the French camp, and Saxe posted his troops strongly behind the village of Fonte- noy. (April 30). The allies attacked : the action commenced at nine, and lasted till three. The efforts made by the British infantry were incredible ; but not being duly supported by the Dutch and Austrians, they were obliged to retire, after having lost 10,000 men. The victory of the French cost them nearly an equal loss. But.Tournay, Ghent, Ostend, and several other towns, became their reward. The grand duke was meanwhile elected emperor, under the title of Francis I. Tlie king of Prussia gained two bloody victories over the Austrian troops, and he entered Saxony and took Dresden. Peace was then concluded between him and the queen of Hungary, and the king of Poland. 1746. Brussels was taken by marshal Saxe, and all Flanders, Hainault, and Brabant reduced. Prince Charles of Lorrain was unable to check the progress of Saxe ; Namur surren- dered, and the indecisive battle of Roucoux ended the cam- paign. In Italy, the arms of France and her allies were less successful : an attack on the camp of prince Lichtenstein at St. Lazaro failed, with great loss. The king of Sardinia formed a junction with the Austrians ; the French and Span- iards were driven under the walls of Genoa, and forced to retire into France and Savoy ; and Genoa surrendered, and was treated in worse than the usual Austrian mode in Italy. Tiie Austrians, under count Bro\vn, 50,000 strong, invaded CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 325 Provence, but were soon obliged to retire, and the Genoese rose and expelled them from their city. The French, under Lowendahl, invaded the United Prov- ^^ p. inces, and took several towns. The Dutch, become suspi- 1747. cious of their rulers, renewed, in the person of William Henry, prince of Orange, the dignity of stadtholder, which had been discontinued since the death of William III. New energy was infused into their councils. The allies, under the duke of Cumberland, gave battle to Saxe at Val, on his way to in- vest Maestricht; but, the British not being properly supported, the advantage remained with the French. Bergen-op-Zoom was besieged, and carried by assault by LowendahK Nice and Villafranca w^ere meanwhile taken by Belleisle in Italy, and an army of Austrians and Piedmontese formed, but were forced to raise the siege of Genoa. The English were suc- cessful at sea. Louis became anxious for peace. A congress was opened at Aix-la-Chapelle. Saxe laid 1749. siege to Maestricht : while he was occupied in it, a cessation of arms was ordered, and peace was concluded at the end of the year. Parma, Placentia, and Guastalla were ceded to Philip, with provision against their being united to the crown of Spain, or of the Two Sicilies. Silesia and Glatz were guarantied to the king of Prussia, whose selfish policy began the war, and who was the only real gainer by it. France and England, by all their waste of blood and treasure, gained — nothing. England, During these continental wars, England had enjoyed inter- nal tranquillity, till, in 1745, Charles Edward, son of the pre- tender, landed in the north of Scotland, and was joined by several of the Highland clans. There being no adequate force there to oppose them, they took possession of Dunkeld, Perth, Dundee, and Edinburgh. At Preston Pans they de- feated the royal troops. After some delay, they marched into England, took Carlisle, and advanced as far as Derby. But not finding themselves to be joined by the English Jacobites, they retreated homewards. Carlisle was retaken by the duke of Cumberland ; but Stirling fell into the hands of the rebels, and general Hawley, who was coming to its relief, was routed by them at Falkirk. On the advance of the duke of Cum- berland, the pretender retired northwards, followed by the royal army. The final and fatal battle to the hopes of the pretender was fought at Culloden (April 16). After long 1746, skulking in various disguises, and experiencing a fidelity and honor creditable to the national character, he made his escape 2C 326 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART IIL to France. The barbarity exercised by the victors would dis- grace the best of causes. Perhaps, few greater instances of human folly could be shown than this blind attachment to an . obstinate, tyrannical, and bigoted family. | Russia. In the semi-barbarous court of Russia, revolution succeeded revolution, and ended in placing Elizabeth, daughter of Peter the Great and Catherine, on the throne. She nominated as A. D. her successor Charles Peter Ulrick, duke of Holstein, son of 1744. her sister Anna. She had him styled Grand Prince, and he espoused Sophia Augustus, princess of Anhalt-Zerbst, who ' took the name of Catherine Alexievna. This prince had had his choice of the crowns of Sweden and Russia. He unfor- tunately chose the latter. The Seven Years' War. Europe enjoyed but short repose after the peace of Aix- la-Chapelle. France and England still quarrelled about boundaries in America, and still carried on war in India. England, as war seemed inevitable, wished to make it solely a naval one ; and it was arranged to put Hanover under the protection of the king of Prussia. The court of France was displeased at this project; and the court of Vienna hoped, by means of this displeasure, to recover Silesia, and to free itself ■ from the fears it entertained of the ambition of Frederic. The 1755. houses of Bourbon and Habsburg laid aside their jealousy, of two hundred and eighty years' standing, and concluded an alliance : they were joined by Sweden and Saxony. The empress of Russia, who was bound to aid the king of Prussia in protecting Hanover, declared against him. Spain, Portugal, the Italian powers, and the United Provinces remained neu- tral. Prussia and England stood alone. 1756. The island of Minorca was taken by the French ; and their arms were successful in India and America. The king of Prussia entered Saxony, and madehimself master of Dresden: he invaded Bohemia, and routed the Austrians at Lowesitz; the Saxon army surrendered at Ebenhert. 1757. The marshal d'Estrees passed the Rhine, with eighty thousand men, to invade Hanover. The duke of Cumber- land, with forty thousand Hanoverians and Hessians, attempt- ed its defence, but was driven across the Weser ; and the French became masters of the electorate. The Prussians entered Bohemia in four divisions : that commanded by the prince of Bevern obliged the Austrians to retire at Reichen- berg. This division, and that of marshal Schwerin, united CTIAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 327 with the one led by the king-, engaged the Austrian army under prince Charles of Lorrain and count Brown, at Prague. The PruLsians were victorious, and besieged the Austrians in that town ; but having been defeated at Colin, they raised the siege, and evacuated Bohemia. 7'he combined German and French army had meantime advanced into Saxony : the king of Prussia hastened to Dresden, assembled an army, and at the village of Rosbach (Nov. 5) gave them battle, with but half their number of men. His victory was brilliant, his loss being but five hundred, while that of the enemy was nine thousand killed, wounded, and taken. The Austrians had de- feated the prince of Bevern, and taken Breslau. Frederic gave them battle, and defeated them at Lissa : Breslau was recovered. The Russians, who had entered the Prussian do- minions, were forced, by want of provisions, to return home : the Swedes were driven under the walls of Stral&und : the Hanoverians rose against the French ; but the English were unsuccessful in North America, and at sea. At the head of the Hanoverians, prince Ferdinand of a-d. Brunswick obliged the French to cross the Rhine, and de- ^58. feated them at Crevelt. The king of Prussia recovered Schweidnitz, and invested Olmutz ; but the approach of a large Russian force obliged him to raise the siege. At Zorn- dorf he defeated them with g-reat slaughter. At Hochkirchen he was himself defeated by the Austrians : he afterwards forced them to retire into Bohemia. Marshal Daun was obliged to retire from before Dresden, and Frederic entered it in triumph. The English admirals Hawke and Anson restored the lus- tre of the British arms at sea. In America, the islands of Gape Breton and St. John's were taken by general Amherst ; the French settlements on the coast of Africa were reduced. In India, the advantage was on the side of the French. • At the commencement of the next campaign, the Prussian 1759. arms were victorious on all sides. The French had made themselves masters of Frankfort on the Main. Prince Fer- dinand, with an inferior force, attacked the duke of Broglio at Bergen, in its vicinity, but was forced to retire with some loss. The French reduced Minden, Mtinster, and some other places. To save Hanover, the prince found it necessary to give them battle : the conflict took place (Aug. 8) at Minden : the French were defeated. The blame of the vic- tory not being complete was laid on lord George Sackville, the English commander. The Russians defeated the Prussian general Wedel in Sile- sia. Frederic attacked the combined Austrian and Russian 328 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. army, of eighty thousand men, at Cunersdorf; and the hor- rible carnage of the day ended in the defeat of the Prussians: yet Frederic, almost immediately after, forced his enemies to act on the defensive. The French army in Westphalia was extremely numerous : a portion of it was defeated by prince Ferdinand at Warburg ; but the French remained masters of Hesse. The Austrians and Russians poured into the dominions and conquests of Frederic, and in his camp at Lignitz he was in danger of be- ing surrounded by three hostile armies. He advanced to meet, and defeated that of general Laudohn, and thus escaped; but the. Russians and Austrians entered Brandenburg, and pillaged Berlin. Frederic rushed into Saxony at the head of fifty thousand men, followed by Daun with seventy thou- sand men ; and at Torgau the Prussian monarch gained a hard-fought battle. The English took the island of Guadaloupe, in the West Indies : Crown Point and Ticonderoga were taken by gene- ral Amherst. Quebec, after the defeat of the French army by general Wolf, surrendered. The British arms were vic- torious in India. Admirals Boscawen and Hawke defeated the French fleets off Cape Lagos and Belleisle. A. D. George II. died ; but his successor resolved to continue the 1761. war. A family compact was concluded between the courts of Versailles and Madrid. Prince Ferdinand repelled an at- tack of the French armies at Kirche Denkern; and Belleisle was taken by a British force. 1762. War was now mutually declared by the courts of London and Madrid. Portugal, refusing to join the alliance against England, was invaded by the Spaniards; but they were driven out of it by the British and native troops. Prince Ferdinand was everywhere successful in Westphalia. The death of the empress of Russia relieved the king of Prussia from his apparently desperate situation. Peter III. was mild and pacific : he made a peace and alliance with the Prussian monarch. Frederic carried on the war with vigor against the Austrians ; but the dethronement and death of his Russian ally perplexed him, as he knew not what the policy of Catherine 11. might be : she continued the peace, but recalled her troops. Frederic recovered Silesia. A ces- sation of arms was made for Saxony and Silesia. Frederic ravaged Bohemia and Franconia. The British fleets and troops took Martinique and the Havannah, in the West Indies, and Manilla, in the Philippine islands. Negotiations for peace had long been going on, and 1763. the definitive treaty was signed at Paris (Feb.. 10); and CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 329 about the same time another at Hubertsburg, between the em- press-queen and the king of Prussia, Eno-land obtained all Canada^ and the islands of St. John and Cape Breton, great part of Louisiana, her conquests on the Senegal, the island of Grenada : all her other conquests she restored. Prussia and Austria agreed to place themselves on the footing they were on at the commencement of hos- tilities. Thus ended the Seven Years' War — a war which had caused such an effusion of blood and treasure: it ended with- out being productive of any real advantage to any one of the parties. Suppression of the Jesuits. Europe now reposed from war. This period of tranquillity is marked by the suppression of the order of the Jesuits. This order was founded by a soldier, Ignatius Loyola, in the time of Charles V. Retaining his military ideas, Ignatius imposed on the members of his new order the strictest obe- dience ; but his rules were simple and innocent. His suc- cessors, Lainez and Aquaviva, formed it into an institution which might vie with any of ancient or modern times. It speedily developed its powers ; the Jesuits became directors of the consciences of the great, and teachers of the young ; they excelled in learning ; they were the most zealous of missionaries. Forming a body, whose soul was the general of the order at Rome, they were the chief stay of papal power, and on them rested the remaining faint hopes of regaining spiritual dominion. But with all its great qualities and high aspirations, the order was fated to meet with no final suc- cess ; the spirit of the age was against it ; its assumptions were too high, its moral system too lax, its intrigues and movements too dark and complicated. The marquis of Pombal, the Richelieu of Portugal, hated the order, which stood in his way: vile calumnies were forged against them, and they were expelled from Portugal. The example was followed by France, then by Spain, Na- ples, and finally by Austria, Their property was seized by the rapacious governments : Spain and Portugal, the most bigoted nations, were their most relentless persecutors. It was the expulsion of the Moriscoes on a minor scale. The unhappy fathers were forced on shipboard, and landed in the papal states. The good Clement XIII, remonstrated — he a.d. could do no more — in their favor: the excellent Clement 1773, XIV, yielded to the torrent, and suppressed the order, 2C2 330 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 111. First Partition of Poland. An event now occurred which throws into the shade all that we have previously seen of injustice and aggression. A. D. The empress Catherine II. the northern Clytemnestra, had 1762. ascended the throne of her deposed and murdered husband, and had piously restored to the clergy their beards, pictures, and revenues, of which he had deprived them. Augustus HI. king of Poland dying, the diet assembled at Warsaw to choose a successor proved a stormy one : the pacific empress considerately sent a body of troops thither to preserve the peace ; and Stanislaus Poniatovsky, the candidate whom she 1764. favored, was of course elected. He mounted the throne in tranquillity ; but that state did not long endure. Animosities broke out between the Catholic party and that of the dissi- dents, who demanded an equality of rights : the latter were supported by the empress of Russia and the king of Prussia. Catherine fomented the disorders ; her troops behaved with the greatest insolence ; a civil war, and a war against the Russian intruders, agitated the unhappy country. At length the time seemed to be arrived for the execution of a project, first conceived by the royal philosopher of Sans Souci, — the tranquillizing of Poland by its dismemberment. Religion ex- cited some qualms in the mind of Maria Theresa ; it was, however, forced to yield to the arguments of her enlightened son, Joseph. On the part of Catherine, no one looked for scruples. The plunderers would act with some faint semblance of justice ; some ridiculous old claims were therefore trumped up against Poland. The king and people appealed to justice ; a weak appeal against Russian bayonets. All good men be- held with abhorrence the flagrant breach of divine and human laws, and the hypocrisy employed to veil it : the remaining powers of Europe were not in a condition to interfere. A . third part of Poland was divided among the diademed rob- bers. A diet was called to sanction the dismemberment of their country; three foreign armies were at hand to prevent tumult : money and promises were distributed, and a majority of six votes in the senate, of one in the assembly of nuncios, sanctioned this detestable iniquity.l The ravished provinces were, perhaps, better under their new owners; for Frederic and Catherine were both wise sovereigns, and Joseph thought himself an adept in legislative wisdom ; but eternal infamy will pursue their names, and the partition of Poland disgrace the eighteenth century of the Christian era. CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 331 Turkish War. The affairs of Poland involved Russia in a war with Tur- key. Large armies on both sides advanced towards the Dan- a. d. ube. The war commenced with the ravage of the frontiers. 1769. In the spring the standard of the prophet Was displayed. The Russians were driven by the vizier beyond the Dneister. The able vizier was recalled ; his successor crossed the Dneister, and was defeated : Chotin and other fortresses were taken. A Russian fleet sailed round Europe, and appeared in the 1770. Grecian seas. The Turks had driven the Russians out of Moldavia and Wallachia ; but the vizier was defeated near the mouth of the Pruth. Bender was stormed, after a siege of two months, and experienced Russian barbarity. The Greeks of the Morea rose at the call of Russia ; the pasha of Bosnia entered it with 30,000 men ; at Modon the hopes of Greece were crushed. The Turkish fleet was defeated at Epidaurus, and again defeated at Chios, and burnt at Chesme. Syria and Egypt were in rebellion. The plague broke out at Yassy, and spread to Moscow, where 90,000 persons died of it. The Russians broke into and seized the Crimea. The jani- 1772; zaries rose, murdered their aga, and set fire to their camp. Ali, the Egyptian pasha, fell in battle against his brother-in- law Mohammed, and his head was sent to Constantinople. The Russians crossed the Danube : they were twice forced 1773. to raise the siege of Silistria, and they lost at Varna the greater part of their artillery. Hassan Pasha swore to the sultan to drive them over the Danube, and he performed his oath. Mustafa III. died, and appointed his brother Abd-ul-Hamed 1774. to succeed, instead of his young son Selim. As no largesses were distributed, the janizaries would serve no longer. " Peace is necessary," said the mufti to the sultan, " since thy people will fight no more." Catherine was also anxious to end the w^ar, and peace was concluded at Kainargi. The free navigation of the Black Sea and some territory were ceded to Russia. American Revolutionary War. Northern America had been chiefly colonized by the Eng- lish ; the settlements of the Dutch and French were acquired by conquest. All these colonies were in the enjoyment of liberal and popular constitutions; the country was highly fertile, population rapidly increased, the energy and the bold- ness of youth animated the people, and crowds of colonists 83S OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. from Europe annually arrived on their shores. The mother country being oppressed by debt, a plan was devised to make ^ u the colonies contribute to her relief, and a stamp-duty on va- v 1765! rious articles was imposed. The Americans remonstrated ; a I 1766. change took place in the ministry, and the act was repealed.- The spirit of oppression on the one hand, and of resistance on the other, still continued ; and when the parliament ini- ^ posed a duty on tea, the Americans refused to pay it, and at j Boston the tea was flung into the sea. The British parlia-T ment passed bills for shutting up the port of Boston, and al 1T74. tering the constitution of Massachusetts. The colonists called a provincial congress, and addressed a manly petition tol the king. It was not received. The king and parliament! in their wisdom, or rather in their pride, determined on what are called strong measures, and a civil war began, 1775. In the contest between England and her American colonies, the first blood was shed at Lexington, in New-England. Eight hundred British grenadiers and light infantry were sent out from Boston, for the purpose of destroying some military stores collected at Concord. On receiving intelligence of this movement, the provincials of that neighborhood rose en masse. A small body of them, appearing at Lexington, were fired upon by the British, who then proceeded to Concord and destroyed the public stores ; but they were here attacked' with such spirit by the provincials, as to compel their imme- diate retreat to Boston, with the loss of sixty-five killed and two hundred and eight wounded and prisoners. From this day, (April 18th,) the British were formally besieged in Boston. On the 17th June, the provincials, having thrown up a re- doubt on Bunker's Hill, a position which commanded Boston, were attacked by 3000 British, under generals Howe and Pigot. The British were twice repulsed with heavy loss. On the third attack, being reinforced, and the Americans having exhausted their ammunition, the redoubt was carried with the loss of 1054 British, and 450 Americans. General Montgomery entered Canada with a small force, and fell in an unsuccessful attempt on Quebec. The first provincial congress had assembled at Concord, Massachusetts, in 1774. A second assembled at Philadelphia (May 1775), appointed John Hancock their president, and George Washington commander-in-chief of the provincial forces. He joined the army at Cambridge in July, and held the British under general Howe closely besieged in Boston till March, 1776, when the town was evacuated, and Washing- 1776. ton entered it in triumph. The British admiral Sir Peter Parker, with a heavy naval CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC 11. 333 force, was defeated in an attempt on Charleston, the capital of South Carolina, by four hundred militia and soldiers of the line intrenched on Sullivan's Island, under colonel Moultrie. On the 4th of July, 1776, the congress declared the inde- pendence of the United States of America. New-York was occupied by the British, under general Howe, and the Americans were compelled to retreat from New-Jersey. The latter, however, was soon recovered by a. d. general Washington, in the decisive actions of Trenton and 1777. Princeton. General Washington, with an inferior force, hazarded an engagement with Sir W. Howe, near the river Brandywine, and was defeated with the loss of 1200 men. This was the first action m which the marquis de La Fayette was engaged. He was a young French nobleman, who had abandoned his brilliant prospects at the court of his sovereign, to embrace the cause of liberty. The English took Philadelphia, and defeated the republic- ans, who attacked them at Germantown ; but general Bur- goyne, who, having reduced Ticonderoga, was advancing to join general Howe, was attacked at Saratoga, by colonel Ar- nold : general Gates coming up with a considerable force, prepared to surround Burgoyne, who, after a fruitless attempt to force his way, was obliged to fall back on Saratoga, and there to capitulate. His troops, 5790 in number, were to be sent to England,- and not to serve again in North America during the war. The killed, wounded, and prisoners in the preceding part of the expedition, amounted to upwards of 4000 men. France had long been watching the progress of the con- 1778. test. This last event decided her, and an alliance was formed with the infant republic. The court of Spain soon after fol- lowed her example. An indecisive engagement took place between the British and French fleets off Ushant : Sir Henry Clinton took the cliief command in America : he forthwith abandoned Philadelphia, and retired to New- York. An at- tempt on Rhode Island, by the American general Sullivan and the French admiral d'Estaine, proved a failure. Com- missioners were sent out from England to treat with the Americans ; but as the latter insisted on the recognition of their independence, nothing could be effected. Savannah, the capital of Georgia, having been taken by colonel Campbell with 2000 British troops, the whole prov- ince of Georgia seemed reunited to the British crown. An 1779. unsuccessful attempt was made to recover Savannah by gen- eral Lincoln, aided bv a naval force under d'Estaine. S34 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. A. D. 1780. Charleston capitulated to general Clinton, and the province of South Carolina was forced into a temporary submission to the British. A provincial force, consisting principally of mi- litia, under general Gates, was defeated, at Camden by the British under earl Cornwallis and lord Rawdon. In this cam- paign occurred the defection of Arnold, and the detection and execution of the British major Andre as a spy. Sir George Rodney defeated the Spanish fleet off cape St. Vin- cent, and thrice engaged, though not with decided success, the French fleet under count de Guichen. The jealousy of the continental powers of Europe now showed itself, by the armed neutrality, which they all, under the guidance of the tsarina of Russia, now entered into to resist the right of search and blockade claimed by England. A correspondence between Holland and the United States relating to a loan and treaty being discovered, England de- clared war against the Dutch ; and the island of St. Eustatia, a rich magazine of wealth, was taken and plundered by a naval force under admiral Rodney. While his fleet was weak- ened by a detachment sent to England with the produce of the sales of confiscated property, the French were enabled to gain a superiority on the American coast, which led to the total ruin of the British army in America. 1781. The Spaniards laid siege to Gibraltar, which was gallantly defended ; but Minorca was forced to surrender. Indecisive sea-actions were fought between Sir Hyde Parker and the Dutch, and between Sir S. Hood and the count de Grasse. The island of Tobago surrendered to the French. The French admiral now resolved to assist the Americans with vigor. They had defeated colonel Tarleton at the Cow- pens, in Carolina, and, though not victorious in their attack on Cornwallis at Guilford, had caused him considerable loss. General Greene was defeated by lord Rawdon at Hobkirk; but soon after attacked the British force under colonel Stew- art at Eutaw Springs, and overthrew them with a loss on their side of eleven hundred men, including prisoners and wounded. This action terminated the war in South Caro- lina. Earl Cornwallis having retreated from Carolina, took a sta- tion at Yorktown, on York river, in Virginia, and had fortified it and Gloucester on the opposite bank. The count de Grasse, with a French fleet of 28 sail, havino- entered the Chesa- peake, prevented admiral Greaves affording any relief to Cornwallis, and general Clinton failed to send any aid from New- York. A combined American and French army, under Washington and Rochambeau, besieged him, and after some CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 335 weeks Cornwallis was compelled to capitulate. The troops, 7000 in number, were made prisoners of war; the ships be- -came prizes to the French. ^ ^ jj The war in America was now ended. The British ministry 1782. was changed. England saw the folly of protracting a useless and destructive contest. She acknowledged (Jan. 20) the 1783. independence of the United States. A new constitution of government was formed, and Washington was chosen presi- dent. Of the injustice of this war on the part of England, few now have any doubt ; its importance, as an example, has been felt in every subsequent struggle for liberty which the world has witnessed. India. The conquests of the Portuguese in the East were amaz- ingly rapid. At the time they fell under the yoke of Spain, '1580, they were all-powerful on the coasts of India, possessed the Moluccas, the coast of Ceylon, the isles of Sunda, and the trade of China and Japan. The Dutch used to purchase the products of the East at Lisbon, and distribute them over Eu- rope. Philip 11. having prohibited all intercourse with them as rebels, they made their way to India, and formed a settle- ment in Java, and an East India company was established. While Portugal was united with Spain, they made constant 1595, war on her in the East, and in a few years they left her no- thing there but Goa. The English appeared in India a few years after the Dutch. 1600. They also had formed a company. Their first settlements were in Java, Banda, Amboyna, and Poleron. The Dutch were jealous of them, and the rival companies carried on war against each other. A treaty was concluded to arrange their 1623. differences; but tlie Dutch, regardless of it, barbarously mas- sacred the English at Amboyna and other places, and ex- pelled them from the Spice Islands. The sup'neness of Jamos; I., and afterwards the civil wars of England, prevented the nation attending to the East. Cromwell had a British spirit; the company throve in his time : Charles II, betrayed and oppressed it. The great Colbert had foriied a French East India com- 1664. pany ; their chief settiemciit was at Pondicherry, on the Coromandel coast. Thus the three greatest maritime powers were established in India, and the wars of Europe were now to be extended to that distant region. During the war of the succession, the French had taken 1746. the English settlement of Madras. At the peace of Aix-la- e336 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. * PART III. Chapelle it was restored. M. Dupleix, the governor of Pon- dicherry, formed a grand plan for gaining- territory for the French India Company. Having a good body of troops under him, he, by their valor, and his own intrigues, managed to have the candidate he sided with appointed subahdar of the Decan, and to get the nabobship of the Carnatic for Chunda Sahib, for whose life he was himself appointed nabob of that province. Dupleix aimed at obtaining all the country be- tween Masulipatam, Goa, and Cape Comorin. Mohamnjed Ali, son of the late nabob of Arcot, implored the assistance A. Y). of the English, who gave him some reinforcements, and sev- 1751. eral actions took place. In this war the famous Clive first appeared ; with a small force he took Arcot, and when Chunda Sahib besieged it with a large army, he defended it with amazing talent and courage, and repelled the assailants. Re- inforced by colonel Kirkpatrick, he pursued and defeated the enemy on the plains of Ami. The rajah of Tanjore, and other princes, joined the English : Chunda and the French were several times defeated. Mohammed was acknowledged nabob of Arcot ; the French lost the greater part of their ac- quisitions ; and peace was about to be made, when a new war broke out in Europe. The three rival companies had early established factories in Bengal ; but the good policy of the Mogul government pre- 1696. vented their having any garrison or works of defence. On occasion of a rebellion of the rajahs west of the Hooglee, the factories augmented their soldiery and declared for the nabob, who gave them permission to put their settlements in a state of defence. The Dutch then fortified their factory at Hoog- lee, the French theirs at Chandernagore, and the English theirs of Fort William at Calcutta. The English obtained some advantages from the court of Delhi, and increased their wealth and power. Suraj-ud- 1756. Dowlah, the subahdar of Bengal, Bahar, and Orissa, offended at their abuse of their privileges, and by their protecting a nobleman who had fled from his vengeance, suddenly marched with 50,000 men against Calcutta. After an ineffectual re- sistance, the governor and all but 200 of the garrison of Fort William escaped on shipboard. Mr. Holwell, who now took the command, soon saw himself and his unhappy companions immured by the cruel subahdar in the Black Hole, where nearly the whole perished. The affairs of the English in Bengal seemed now entirely ruined. 1757. But the affairs of the company on the coast of Coromandel being now settled, admiral Watson took on board colonel Clive and some troops, and sailed for Calcutta. That town CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 337 was recovered, Hooglee reduced, and the subahdar obliged to sue for peace. He agreed to restore every thing, and to allow the presidency to extend over thirty-eight neighboring villages. The English now turned their arms against the French, and besieged and took Chandernagore. Clive aimed at farther humbling the subahdar, who was backward in ful- filling the treaty. In artifice, dissimulation, and what else is dignified with the name of policy, he was a full match for an Asiatic : he secretly gained Jaffier, the commander of the troops of the province, and he persuaded the subahdar to dis- band the forces he had collected at Plassy. Clive advanced to take that important post ; but the subahdar had reassembled his army, and occupied it. His forces were 50,000 foot, and 18,000 horse ; those of Clive 1000 Europeans, and 2000 Se- poys ; yet he ventured to give battle, and gained a victory, Jaffier was acknowledged by him subahdar. Suraj-ud-Dowlah was taken and put to death by order of the son of Jaffier ; and the latter agreed to pay his allies the sum of 2,750,000 pounds sterling, and to enlarge tlieir territory. The war was carried on between the French and English ^^ jy in the Carnatic. Count Lally, the French commander, being 1758- largely reinforced from home, reduced Cudalore and Fort St. David. Next year he failed in an attempt on Madras. The 1759. British now took the field, and reduced Masulipatam and Con- jeveram. Wandewash was reduced by colonel Coote, who defeated a strong army led by Lally to attempt its recovery. Surat was taken by an English force from Bombay ; and the Dutch were well castigated in Bengal for their designs against the English in that quarter. The English had deposed their ally Jaffier in Bengal (1760), and placed Cossim on the musnud. Their cupidity made them seize a pretext for making war on this prince : they de- prived him of the whole province of Bengal, and Jaffier was again declared subahdar. The Great Mogul and the nabob 1765. of Oude in vain supported Cossim : they were obliged to sue for peace. In the Mysore a war was carried on, mostly to the advantage of th^^nglish, against Hyder Ali. During the American war, the French lost all their set- tlements in India. The company carried on a vigorous war against Hyder Ali and the Mahrattas. Colonels Baillie and 1778. Fletcher were with their whole force taken or slain by Hyder and his son Tippoo; but Sir Eyre Coote defeated them in 1781. several engagements. After the death of his father, Tippoo continued the war. The English had now an extensive empire in India. Much is it to be deplored that in the acquisition and management 2D 338 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. of it, the rights of humanity and justice were so frequently trampled upon. It is an important inquiry what has been or is to be the advantage or evil to India and Britain from their close connexion. Persia. A. D. When the dynasty of Nadir had been extinguished in Per- ^'^^'^' sia, the sovereignty of that country v^^as contended for by the different rival chiefs, whose claims were all successively forced to yield to the power and the merit of Kerreem Khan, a chief of the native Persian tribe of Zend. The reign of this excellent prince, who occupied the throne twenty-six years, is a delightful object of contemplation amid the scenes of barbarity characteristic of eastern despotism. Justice, clemency, moderation, goodness of lieart, distinguished all his actions. He lived and died happily amidst a grateful and 1779. contented people. On the death of Kerreem Khan,~his brothers and nephews contended for the vacant throne. After the usual series of 1789. atrocities attendant on such an event, the power remained in the hands of Lootf Ali Khan, a youth of astonishing military talent and courage ; but having behaved with ingratitude to the able and virtuous Hajee Ibrahim, governor of Sheeraz, to whom he was chiefly indebted for his throne, the latter, seeing that he had no security for his life but in depriving the king of the power to injure him, entered into a secret treaty with Aga Mohammed Khan, chief of the Kajirs, a Turkish tribe, settled in Mazenderan by Abbas the Great, who was now grown so powerful as openly to aspire to the empire. Lootf Ali Khan, after struggling for his crown with a heroism 1795. rarely paralleled, fell at length into the hands of his cruel rival, by whom he was put to deatli, with every refinement of barbarity. This unhappy prince was but twenty-five years old. Aga Mohammed, who had been castrated in his child- hood, was uncle to the present king of Persia; and by his 1796. vigor and cruelty he left the kingdom to his successor in the state of obedience it has ever since maintained. CHAP. VIII. TIMES OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. State of Europe. Literature now exerted a much more powerful influence over the public mind than it had done at any preceding period. A set of men, many of them of talents of the first order, ar- CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 339 rotating to themselves the exclusive title of philosophers, and actuated at first, perhaps, by a zeal for truth, carried on an incessant warfare against all that they were pleased to de- signate as superstition and vulgar prejudice. But theirs was not that philosophy which, elevated above all low and grovel- ing passions, and irradiated by light from heaven, views with pity rather than contempt the aberrations of man, and seeks by mild and gentle methods to lead him into the way of truth. It was heartless, cold, and cheerless; its summum bonum was sensual indulgence or literary fame, and few of its pro- fessors displayed any real dignity of soul: its favorite weapon was ridicule; it attacked not alone the absurdities of the popular faith, but it levelled its shafts at the sublimest truths of religion ; it shook the firmest bases of social order, and sought to rob man of all lofty hopes and aspirations. Every mode of composition, from the highest science and most seri- ous history down to the lightest tale, was made the vehicle of this philosophy, with which was often joined a sickly, affected sensibility, calculated to gain it admittance even into the female bosom. The consequence was, as might be ex- pected, a general laxity of principle. The chief seat of this philosophy was France, where a court, corrupt and profligate beyond, perhaps, any which Europe had yet witnessed, had utterly degraded the minds of the upper classes of society. The efforts of the virtuous Louis XVI. to stem this torrent were unavailing : national vice was not to escape its merited chastisement. The middle orders were disgusted and galled by the privileges of the noblesse, and their excessive pride and insolence ; the writings of the philosophers, and the scandalous lives of many of the clergy, had shaken their reverence for religion ; the abuses and oppression of arbitrary and extravagant government were keenly felt ; the glorious struggle of the English for liberty in the last century, and the dignity and prosperity consequent on it, awaked the aspirations of the better disposed; the achievement of American independence filled the minds of many enthusiasts with vague ideas of freedom and happi- ness beneath republican institutions ; and the lower orders in general looked forward to any change as a benefit. ■' It was a time of innovation, turmoil, and violent change. The English colonies had thrown off the bridle of the mother country, whom she curbed too straitly. The kingdom of Poland had been most nefariously dismembered. Gustavus III. of Sweden had overthrown the aristocracy, and made himself absolute. A contest arose in the United Provinces, a. d. between the party of the stadtholder and those who wished 1772. 340 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. to make the government of a more republican form, which drew the attention of all the principal powers : the respective A. u. parties appealed to arms, and by Prussian aid the republicans 1787. were crushed. All these were but preludes to the storm which was soon to burst over Europe. 1787. The east of Europe was meantime precipitated into war. The Turkish sultan, apprehensive of the designs of the tsarina and the emperor Joseph, declared war against Russia. The Turks commenced by the bombardment of Kilburn, on the Dneiper ; but, while forming the trenches, they were at- tacked by Suvaroff, and nearly their whole force destroyed. Joseph now took part in the war, and opened it by a treach- erous attempt on Belgrade : he entered the Turkish domin- ions at the head of a considerable force ; but he reaped little 1788. military fame, and could only boast of the reduction of Choczim. The king of Sweden now entered into the war at the in- stigation of the king of Prussia and the Porte, and severe naval conflicts took place in the Baltic ; but several of Gus- tavus's officers refused obedience to him, and the Danes pre- pared to attack him on the sade of Norway. A Russian flo- tilla, under the prince of Nassau Siegen, defeated Hassan, the capudan-pasha, off" Oczakoff! In three other conflicts he was equally unfortunate. The siege of Oczakoff" was formed by prince Potemkin : the town was taken by assault, and the inhabitants butchered and pillaged by the soldiery. 1789. Abd-ul-hamed, dying suddenly, was succeeded by his nephew Selim III. ; but success did not revisit the Ottoman arms. On the plains of Rimnik they failed before the Austrians and Russians, and Belgrade surrendered to the Austrian general Laudohn. But disease and chagrin at the resistance offered to his innovations in the Netherlands, and the discontents in 1790. Hungary, terminated the existence of Joseph; and his brother Leopold, grand duke of Tuscany, who succeeded him, after some unsuccessful efforts, concluded an armistice with Selim. On the part of the Russians, Ismael, a strong town in Bes- sarabia, was taken by assault by Suvaroff", during the very middle of winter. The ferocious warriors massacred in this assault fifty thousand Turks : their own loss was, according to their veracious commander, four thousand three hundred ; according to others, fifteen thousand. In the Baltic, the Rus- sian fleet was completely defeated by that of the Swedes, commanded by Gustavus in person ; and preliminaries for a peace were soon afterwards agreed on. The war was carried on with vigor in Turkey: the Moslems were defeated at CHAP. VIIL FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 341 Maczin, and Bahada, and the tsarina at length agreed that a a. d. congress should be held at Yassy to arrange the terms of a 1791. peace, which was concluded in the following year. An attempt made by the patriotic portion of the Polish nation to regain their independence was crushed by the arms of the Russian despot, and the nation fell back into its former state of degradation. Frederic II. of Prussia had died in 1786. Catherine sur- vived him ten years, and lived to witness the horrors of the French revolution. The French Revolution. The disordered state of the French finances induced the 1737. court, displeased with the parliament of Paris, to assemble the Notables; that is, persons selected from the privileged orders. This measure produced no advantage, and all classes called for a meeting of the states-general. This national council was at length convoked, and met at Versailles ; but 1789. the commons were thought to assume so much power, and to encroach so on the other orders, that the king dismissed Necker, his minister of finance, and ordered some regiments to advance towards the capital. The populace, excited by the democrats, committed several outrages, and they took and demolished the fortress named the Bastile. The privi- leges of the nobility and clergy were soon abolished. The king was obliged to recall Necker, and to transfer the assem- bly to Paris, where the mob was at the devotion of the demo- crats. The property of the church was now transferred to the nation; the kingdom was divided into departments; change followed change without intermission ; the king, for peace sake, assented to every thing; but commotion and bloodshed prevailed in different parts of the kingdom. The power of the democrats still increased, and the famous 1790. Jacobin club was formed by them. Several of the nobility and of the royal family quitted France. A project being formed for the emperor and other powers to assist the king in the recovery of his authority, of which he was now nearly 1791. deprived, he and the royal family endeavored to escape out of France ; but they were stopped at Varennes, and forced to return to Paris. The Jacobin and Cordelier factions loudly demanded his death, and a violent riot took place in the Champ de Mars. A constitutional code was at this time completed. Brissot, the leader of the Jacobms, procured a declaration 1792>, of war against Austria, and La Fayette invaded the Nether- lands, but he was unsuccessful. A Prussian army, under 2D2 342 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART III. the duke of Brunswick, approached the French frontier; but the violent and silly manifesto he put forth served only, to in- jure the cause it advocated. The Jacobins, urged on by their atrocious leaders, excited the populace ; the king and royal family were put into conjfinement. Numbers of the nobility and others were murdered to prevent their joining the Prus- sians. Royalty was abolished. The Jacobins split into the Girondists, headed by Brissot and Roland, and the Jacobins, led by Robespierre, Danton, and Marat, three daring men whose bosoms knew not remorse. Disease and want of sup- plies forcing the Prussians and Austrians, who had nearly reached Paris, to retire, Dumouriez invaded the Netherlands, and, as the people were in his favor, speedily reduced them. Savoy was conquered, Germany invaded. The measure of ^ p^ Jacobin guilt was now nearly filled up : they brought their 1793. amiable and unhappy king to trial, and judicially murdered him. This iniquitous act was followed by a declaration of war against the kings of England and Spain and the stadt- holder of Holland. Dumouriez invaded Holland, and reduced several towns ; but he was defeated by the Austrians at Neer-Winden. The French arms were unfortunate also in Germany. Dumouriez formed a plan for restoring a king and constitutional govern- ment to France ; but it being detected, he wsls forced to take refuge with the Austrians. An English army, under the duke of York, was now in Holland. Dampierre, Dumou- riez's successor, was defeated and slain. The French lost almost all their conquests; their raw levies were cut to pieces ; yet, under Hoche, they were again successful. The English failed in an attack on Dunkirk : the Austrians were driven within their own boundaries. The French and Spaniards fought with various success at the Pyrenees. A savage civil war now broke out in the island of St. Domingo. At home, the Brissotine party was overthrown, and all the heads of it executed : the infamous duke of Orleans also suffered the fate he had so long merited. The monsters now too shed the blood of the unhappy queen. A revolt having broken out in the south of France, it was quenched in blood ; and the city of Lyons had a bitter expe- rience of republican humanity. A war was carried on in La Vendee by the friends of royalty and religion ; but for- tune favored the enemies of both. The English, aided by Spain and Naples, had taken possession of Toulon ; they were forced, however, to abandon it. 1794. The war in the Netherlands was carried on with great vigor : the French troops were commanded by Pichegru and CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 343 - Jourdan. After a variety of fortune, and the battle of Fleurus, gained by the latter, the tide ran in favor of the French, and the w^hole of the Netherlands were subdued. In Germany, Jourdan defeated Clairfait, and reduced Juliers and Cologne. In France, the guillotine was pouring out blood in all quar- ters at the command of Robespierre and his ruthless asso- ciates ; but at last Justice awoke a little from her slumber, and the tyrant himself met the fate he more than deserved. Danton had already experienced it, and Marat had fallen by the hand of Charlotte Corde. Howe on the 1st of June defeated the French fleet. The Corsicans placed themselves under the king of England. But the French were victorious at the Pyrenees, and in Holland they met with uniform success. The middle ranks of the Dutch were in their favor ; a revolution took place, and the a. d. people of the United Provinces, under the name of allies, be- 1795. came the subjects of France. Europe, to the peace of Campo Formio. While exclaiming agamst the horrors of the French revo- 1792. lution, the royal spoilers fell again on unhappy Poland, and tore away some more of her limbs. The Poles, led by the brave Kosciuszko, took arms, and made a brave resistance ; but the defeat at Matchewitz broke their hopes, which finally expired when Warsaw was taken, and its garrison massacred by the ferocious Suvaroff. A new division of plunder now 1795. took place. How rarely are uncontrolled power and a due sense of justice to be found in union ! Glutted with spoil, and now desirous of repose, the kmg of Prussia made a peace with France. In that country there had been a reaction, and the Jacobins were murdered and guillotined in their turn. The king of Spaui was forced to seek for peace. In Germany there was some severe fighting between Jourdan and Clairfait. The Vendeans rose agam, but were speedily crushed. Lord Bridport and admiral Corn- wallis were successful against the French fleets. Most of the foreign possessions of the French and Dutch were re- duced by the English. An insurrection broke out in Paris, but it was easily quelled. The constitution was now re- modelled. Numerous conflicts took place in Germany ; but the 1796. French, under Jourdan and Moreau, were unable to withstand the Austrians, commanded by the archduke Charles. The retreat of Moreau to the Rhine, ranks as one of the most mas- terly in history. Brilliant success attended the arms of the republic in Italy, ^44 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART lil. under the young* Bonaparte. The victories of Monte Notte and Monte Lezino compelled the king of Sardinia to sue for peace, with loss of territory. The forcing-, with excessive loss, of the bridge of Lodi, opened Lombardy to the French. The pope, the princes of Tuscany, Modena, and Parma, were obliged to purchase safety by money, books, pictures, and statues. Mantua was besieged : the Austrians, who had been reinforced, approaching to its relief, were defeated at Lonato and Castiglione, and Mantua was reinvested. The Trans and Cis-Padane republics were at this time erected. The English were deprived of Corsica. Spain was now at length induced to join in the war against England, and a mutiny which broke out in the navy of the latter power seemed to threaten her existence. A. D. Every attempt was made to relieve Mantua, and several 1'''97- actions were fought. At Rivoli the Austrians, under Alvinzi, struggled in vain with the utmost heroism, and Mantua was at length obliged to capitulate. The territories of the pope were next overrun, and he was forced to surrender the greater part of them, and pay large sums of money. Bona- parte then led his army northwards, resolved to invade the hereditary dominions of the emperor. He overran Carinthia and part of Styria, Carniola, and Istria ; but by the desire of the directory, who now governed France, he made proposals of peace, and articles were signed at Leoben. Venice now was to be favored with a new constitution by the French empirics. The vile oligarchy who ruled it were paralyzed with terror : while they negotiated, French troops seized all their towns, and Venice, after an independent ex- istence of more than 1000 years, submitted, without striking a blow, to be blotted out of the list of nations ; and who will deplore the fate of an oligarchy of whom history records hardly a single noble or generous action I Genoa, a name dearer to liberty, underwent a similar fate, and became the Ligurian republic. Peace was at length concluded at Campo Formio. Austria got Venice and the greater part of her territory; but she lost the Netherlands and her Italian dominions. The Ionian isl- ands fell to France. Affairs to the assumption of the chief power hy Bonaparte. 1798. Rome was pillaged, and a republic erected there. The machinations of the French produced a revolution in Switzer- land, and that republic was united to France. Some of the cantons refused submission : they fought with the valor of patriots, but they were constrained to yield to superior power. CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLU'HON AND EMPIRE. 345 Malta was now treacherously assailed and taken by Bona- parte, on his way to Egypt, whither, with their usual regard to good faith and justice, the directory had sent him. He landed near Alexandria, stormed that town, and massacred the inhabitants. The Mamelukes were routed at Embaba, and Cairo submitted. Meanwhile the English admiral Nel- son destroyed (Aug. 1) the French fleet at Aboukir. A rebellion broke out in Ireland ; but after a short strug- gle, the insurgents, not being aided by France, were forced to submit. The tsar now took share in the war, and the em- peror of Austria and the king of Naples also prepared to en- gage in it. The Neapolitan troops invaded the Roman territory, but a. d were driven back. The French advanced ; the king fled to J'799- Palermo ; Capua surrendered. The peasantry and populace of Naples fought, but in vain, in defence of their country. Naples was entered. The French were anxious to obtain possession of the Grison country. At Ostrach and Stockach, Jourdan was defeated by the archduke Charles. A Russian army under Suvaroff entered Italy, and in union with the Austrians defeated the French at Cassano, and drove them to Milan and Genoa. Al- exandria was taken, and the French, under Joubert and Mo- reau, were routed at Novi. Suvaroff marched into Switzer- land, where there had been some severe fighting. Korsakoff had led another Russian army into that country. Massena, the French commander, attacked and defeated this last offi- cer, and Zurich was taken by storm. The Austrians in Italy reduced Coni, and invested Genoa. Bonaparte having reduced Egypt, turned his thoughts to Syria. . General Regnier, with 12,000 men, was sent towards that country, ruled over by the sanguinary Jezzar, who was aided by Sir Sidney Smith, and some troops of the Porte. At Al-Arish, Regnier defeated a body of Mamelukes. Bonaparte soon joined the army; Al-Arish and Gaza surrendered: Jaffa was taken by storm. Acre was, as of old, gallantly defended by a Christian hero, Sir Sidney Smith, and Bonaparte was obliged to raise the siege, and return to Egypt. Desaix had been there engaged against the Mamelukes in Upper Egypt, and had driven them beyond the Cataracts. A Turkish army under the vizier having landed in Egypt, and taken Aboukir, Bonaparte attacked and defeated them, and recovered the fort. Soon afterwards, seeing that nothing more was to be gained in Egypt, he secretly returned to France, leaving the command to Kleber, who defeated a Turkish division ; but his troops being in want of every thing, 346 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III he signed a convention with the vizier to quit the country. Lord Keith declared it should not be executed, and Kleber again attacked and defeated the Turks. The English, Austrians, and Neapolitans recovered the papal territories. The English and Russians landed in Hol- land ; but after obtaining some advantages oyer general Van- damme, they were obliged to negotiate a retreat. The joy of the directory at this success was damped by the appearance of Bonaparte. A revolution in the government was effected ; it was made consular, and Bonaparte was chosen first consul, with Cambaceres and Le Brun for his colleagues. Affairs till the 'peace of Amiens. 1800. Bonaparte, anxious to consolidate his power, made pacific overtures to England, which were rejected : the minister and the nation were bent on war. The long-sought union with Ireland was proposed this year, and in the following year car- ried into effect. The first consul resolved to prosecute the war with vigor. He joined the army assembled at Geneva, crossed Mont St. Bernard, and descended into Italy. The country to the Po was speedily subdued, and that river passed. Genoa had sur- rendered to the Austrians. The Austrian general Melas was defeated at Montebello. On the plains of Marengo, between Alessandria and Tortona, the armies fought (June 14) again : victory seemed ready to declare for the Austrians, when the arrival of the divisions of Monnier and Desaix turned the for- tune of the day, and gave the first consul the glory of a con- queror. A truce, and the surrender of Genoa and other strong places, were the immediate result. In Germany, Moreau penetrated into Bavaria : a negotia- tion was ineffectually entered into; the war recommenced, and the defeat of Hohenlinden (Dec. 3) led to the treaty of Lu- neville, by which Francis gave up more territory in Germany, and consented to the transfer of Tuscany to the duke of Parma. 1801. The fickle tsar Paul had been gained over by the French. He detained the ships of the English, and prevailed on Den- mark and Sweden to engage in an armed neutrality. The English, who .considered their existence to depend on their maritime superiority, sent a large fleet to the Baltic, under Sir Hyde Parker, to break up the confederacy. The Danes were first attacked ; lord Nelson destroyed their line of de- fence before Copenhagen, and they sued for peace : the king of Sweden agreed to treat. The tsar Paul was murdered by CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 347 conspirators, and his son Alexander was inclined to England. The kin^ of Prussia, who had seized on Hanover, now de- clared himself ready to renew his amity with Great Britain. An English army, under Sir Ralph Ahercrombie, had ar- rived in Egypt, Immediately on its landing a battle ensued, which the English gained with the loss of their general. Grand Cairo surrendered. Its example was followed by Alexandria, and the French agreed to evacuate the country. Peace was signed at Amiens. The English consented to a. d. give up all their conquests but Ceylon and Trinidad ; the 1802. Ionian islands were to form a republic ; Malta to be restored to the knights. Affairs of Europe to the treaty of Tilsit. Bonaparte was now declared chief consul for life. He re- stored the Catholic religion, and gave new constitutions to France, Genoa, and Switzerland. A force was sent to St. Domingo, where Toussaint I'Ouverture, a negro, had erected a republic. That chief was treacherously seized and sent to France ; but the French were unable fully to recover the island. Disputes arising respecting the fulfilment of the treaty of 1803. Amiens, the war was resumed. Hanover was invaded and reduced by the French ; Holland was dragged into the war, and immediately lost her colonies. In St. Domingo the French power was finally overthrown, and Dessalines made 1804. chief of the republic. Bonaparte at length ventured to assume the imperial dig- nity, and the princes of Europe mostly acknowledged their new associate, who insulted and domineered over the greater part of the continent. The following year, after bestowing a new constitution on 1805. Holland, Napoleon made himself king of Italy, adding the Ligurian republic to his kingdom. This last act of injustice induced the emperors of Austria and Russia to enter into a confederacy with Great Britain, and the glorious victory gained by Nelson off Trafalgar (Oct. 21) over the combined fleets of France and Spain, gave spirits to the allies ; but the French poured over the Rhine, and drove back the Austrians. At Ulm 20,000 Austrians surrendered. Vienna was entered by Napoleon : the Austrians and Russians were completely defeated at Austerlitz (Dec. 2). Francis lost courage, and concluded a treaty at Presburg, by which he gave up more territory, including Venice, acknowledged the king of Italy and two new kings, namely, those of Bavaria and Wiirtem- burg. 348 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III, The French invaded Naples, and Joseph Bonaparte was seated on the throne of that country. A victory was gained at Maida (July 4) by the English, and the Calabrians rose ; but the power of the usurper was too great for resistance. Holland was also made a kingdom for Louis Bonaparte. At the command of Napoleon, his two new German kings, and some other princes, detached themselves from the Germanic body, and formed the confederacy of the Rhine, in alliance with France. The king of Prussia, who had been encouraged to seize Hanover, firyiing that in some late negotiations be- tween France and England its restoration had been offered, and otherwise disgusted with his friend the emperor, rushed _ precipitately into a war: he imprudently gave the chief command to the duke of Brunswick. The French advanced with rapidity, A Prussian army of 6000 men was defeated at Saalfeld. Near Jena and Auerstadt (Oct. 14) the Prussian and Saxon army of 110,000 men was attacked by that of the French of 150,000, and defeated. Erfurt was taken ; prince Hohenlohe and his army surrendered at Prentzlau: Berlin was entered. The king of Holland conquered to the Weser : Jerome Bonaparte subdued Silesia: general Bliicher and 9400 men capitulated at Ratkau : the Poles were excited to rise. The Russians, who were now advancing, met and de- feated the French at Pultusk, and repulsed them at Golomyn. At Berlin, Bonaparte declared the British isles in a state of blockade, and, by what he called the continental system, pro- hibited all intercourse with them. A, D. The Turks now shared in the war. The Russian emperor 1807. foolishly quarrelled with the Porte, and overran its northern provinces. An English fleet fruitlessly menaced Constanti- nople, and an ineffectual attempt was made on Egypt. The war was renewed in the north, and a desperate but indecisive battle was fought at Prussian Eylau ; Dantzig wa^ taken by Lefevre. The allies sustained a defeat at Friedland (June 14), which was followed by the capture of Konigsburg^ and the treaty of Tilsit, which deprived the king of Prussia of one-third of his dominions, and erected the kingdom of Westphalia for Jerome Bonaparte. Affairs to the treaty of Vienna. An expedition, little creditable to England, was sent out against Denmark, a power with whom she was at peace. Copenhagen was bombarded, and all the ships and naval stores carried away. A rupture ensued between Russia and England. 1808. The demands made by France on the regent of Portugal CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 349 were so unjust, that that prince, at the desire of the British cabinet, departed for the Brazils. Portugal was occupied by the French. Intrigues were set on foot in Spain ; the king, Charles IV., resigned in favor of his son Ferdinand. The a. d. royal family were decoyed to Bayonne ; both father and son 180^, were terrified into abdication, and the crown transferred to Joseph Bonaparte. Large bodies of troops had already been sent into Spain, and no opposition was dreaded ; but the peo- ple rose in all quarters, and proclaimed Ferdinand VII. : the French fleet at Cadiz was obliged to surrender, as also the army of Dupont at Baylen. Saragossa was heroically de- fended against the troops of Joseph, who at length raised the siege. The Portuguese rose also against the French. A British army landed and defeated the French general Junot at Vi- meiro (Aug. 21). By a convention made at Cintra, the French evacuated that kingdom. A Russian fleet was taken in the Tagus. In the north of Europe, Sweden was hard pressed by the Russians and Danes. The conduct of Gustavus bordering on insanity, he was the next year dethroned, and his uncle made king in his place. The French were victorious in Spain, defeating Blake at Reynosa, and Castanos at Tudela. Napoleon arrived, and Madrid was taken. An English army, under Sir John Moore, had advanced as far as Salamanca ; but it was forced to re- treat. At Corunna it was attacked (Jan. 16), and general l^^a Moore mortally wounded. Encouraged by the resistance made by the Spaniards, the emperor of Austria resolved anew on war : it commenced in Bavaria. Napoleon having driven back the Austrians at Eckmuhl, advanced rapidly and occupied Vienna. At Aspern and Essling, after dreadful slaughter on both sides, the victory remained with the Austrians. -The battle of Wagram ter- minated in favor of the French. A most ill-conceived project of creating a diversion in Hol- land was formed by the British cabinet. An army of 39,000 men, under the earl of Cathcart, sailed to Walcheren, and took Middleburg and Flushing ; but a large force being col- lected at Antwerp, and a fever breaking out among the troops, nothing further could be effected by such a waste of lives and treasure. The emperor Francis was now constrained to make peace, with additional loss of territory.. In the preceding year, Selim III. had been murdered, and Mahmood, the present E2 350 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. sultan, was seated on the Turkish throne. Peace was con- cluded between England and the Porte. Progress of the Peninsular War. The French were now masters of Spain to Old Castile. Saragossa had stood a second siege with less success than formerly, 20,000 of its defenders being said to have perished. Marshal Soult entered Portugal, and took Oporto. Sir A. Wellesley advanced against him, and drove him back into Spain. The Spaniards defeated marshal Ney at San Payo in Gallicia. Sir A. Wellesley entered Spain and defeated the French at Talavera de la Reyna (July 28) ; but the enemy being reinforced, and the co-operation of the Spaniards not to be depended on, he fell back. Gerona was taken by the French, after a gallant defence. One Spanish army was de- feated at Ocana, and another at Alba de Tormes. A. D. An army of 30,000 Portuguese was raised and paid by the 1810. British government. The French army approached Portugal, took Astorga and Ciudad Rodrigo, and, under Massena, passed the frontier and reduced Almeida. At the pass of Busaco they were repelled. A fortified line was made from the Ta- gus to the ocean, behind which the allies were posted. Mas- sena feared to assail it : after a month's inaction he fell back to Santarem. In the south Seville was taken by the French ; but Cadiz, now the seat of government, was secured against them. 1811. Massena at length commenced his retreat, closely followed by the allies. A sharp action occurred at Fuentes d' Honor, after which Almeida surrendered. Badajoz having been captured by Mortier, Sir W. Beresford laid siege to it. Soult advancing with 23,000 men to its relief, the combined armies of 26,000 gave him battle at the Albuera (May 16), and gained the honor of the day. The siege was resumed by Sir A. Wellesley, now lord Wellington ; but on the approach of Soult and Marmontlie retired across the Tagus. In An- dalusia the French were defeated at Barrosa by general Gra- ham. They had the advantage in the north of Spain, and Tarragona, Murviedro, and Valencia fell into their hands. The revolution commenced this year in South America. 1812. A change having taken place in the government of Spain, the war was resumed with spirit. Lord Wellington reduced Ciudad Rodrigo and Badajoz. Salamanca also fell, and a de- cisive victory was gained (July 22) over Marmont in its vicinity. Madrid, Seville, Valladolid were recovered ; the French raised the siege of Cadiz ; but lord Wellington failed in an attack on Burgos. CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 351 The Invasion of Russia, and fall of Napoleon. Alexander was mortified at the condition to which he was a. d. reduced, and he defied Napoleon. The latter formed the bold 1812. project of invading Russia : an immense army was assembled ; Lithuania was occupied; Napoleon advanced to Smolensk; Oudinot and Macdonald were directed to join, and to get be- tween the great Russian army and St. Petersburg. The for- mer was defeated by Wittgenstein at Polotsk; prince Ba- gration engaged Davoust at Mohiloff"; Wittgenstein com- pletely routed Oudinot a second time at Polotsk. Smolensk was abandoned to the enemy. At Borodino (Sept. 7) a general battle was fought, and the French re- pulsed with a loss of 40,000 men ; but Napoleon being rein- forced, pushed on for Moscow, and Kutusoff", the Russian commander, not feeling himself strong enough to contend with him, he reached that city, but found it in flames. Thus disappointed of supplies, he offered in vain to treat. He then commenced his retreat. It was mid- winter ; the sufferings of the army were dreadful. The Russians closely pursued ; and of the immense host which had entered Russia, not more than 30,000, exclusive of the Austrians, passed the frontiers. The dead and prisoners exceeded 300,000 in number. Alexander had already concluded a league with Sweden, whose councils were directed by the French marshal Berna- dotte, who had been chosen crown-prince. He now roused the king of Prussia to resistance. A treaty was formed be- tween them. The combined armies fought the new levies of Napoleon at Liitzen ; the action was indecisive, and they 1813 were repulsed at Bautzen. A truce was made ; during its continuance the emperor of Austria joined the alliance, as did Sweden now openly. The allied army of 180,000 men was commanded by the Austrian prince Schwarzenburg. The battle of Katzbach, gained by the Prussian general Bliicher, delivered Silesia. An indecisive action took place at Dresden : Vandamme was defeated at Culm, and Ney at Juterbock. Napoleon concen- trated his forces at Leipzig, where (October 18) the allies attacked and totally defeated him. The city was taken : the king of Bavaria joined the league ; and his troops, combined with the Austrians, defeated, at Hanau, the French as they were retreating from Leipzig. Holland now flung off" the yoke, and recalled the prince of Orange. At Frankfort the allied monarchs put forth a declaration of the justice and moderation of their views. In Spain, lord Wellington being reinforced, and now well 1813. 362 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. supported by the Spaniards, crossed the Douro, and marched northwards. At Vittoria (June 21) he engaged and totally defeated the French army, commanded by marshal Jourdan. Pgynpeluna was blockaded ; St. Sebastian besieged ; marshal Soult in vain endeavored to check their progress. St. Sebas- tian fell, and the allies entered France. A. D. France was now invaded north and south. The armies 1814. from Germany met little check. Murat, the king of Naples, abandoned Napoleon. The allies appeared before Paris, and that haughty capital capitulated. In the south the allied arms were still crowned with success ; and Bourdeaux proclaimed Louis XVIII. Napoleon was obliged to sign an act of abdication ; and the island of Elba, with a sufficient income, was assigned him for his residence. Louis XVIII. was restored ; as were the pope, and the other sovereigns who had been deprived of their do- minions. All Europe was now at peace. 1815. > While a congress was engaged in arranging the affairs of Europe, news arrived that Napoleon had left Elba, and landed in France. He was received everywhere with enthusiasm by the army, and Louis was obliged to quit France, and to seek a refuge in the Netherlands. The allied princes issued a strong manifesto, and large armies were assembled to op- pose the usurper. Some partial advantages attended his first operations ; but on the field of Waterloo (June 18), his last battle was fought. The genius of Wellington and the steadi- ness of the British troops were triumphant. After a brief reign of 100 days, he fled to the sea-coast, where he surren- dered himself to a British naval commander : and six years afterwards, he who had lorded it over the nations expired a captive on a rock of the Atlantic. Louis XVIII. was recon- ducted to his capital by the allied armies, and firmly seated on his throne ; and the convulsions which had agitated Eu- rope for a quarter of a century at length terminated. After the destruction of the power of Napoleon, the allied sovereigns undertook to remodel different parts of Europe, and they proceeded to their object with what they deemed expe- diency in view, but with too little regard to popular feelings or to national and hereditary rights. Denmark was forced to yield Norway to Sweden, and take in exchange Riigen and Pomerania ; and then to give these to Prussia for Lauenburg. Prussia, always grasping, received a large portion of the do- minions of the king of Saxony, who had been guilty of the crime of fidelity to Napoleon. Austria extended her sway, now odious to the people, over the north of Italy. Genoa was forced to submit to become a part of the dominions of the CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 853 king- of Sardinia. The Netherlands and the United Provinces were formed into a kingdom for the prince of Orange: a large part of Poland composed one for the emperor of Rus- sia. A new confederation for mutual defence, and the pre- vention of internal war, was entered into by the sovereign states of Germany, who promised representative constitutions to their subjects, — a promise which but few of them have kept. England, the choragus of the great drama which was now concluded, who had shed her blood, and lavished her treasure so unsparingly, remained covered with glory, but deeply immersed in debt. She had, during this period, ex- tended her dominion over nearly the whole peninsula of In- dia ; and the realms, once ruled by the house of Timoor, now bow beneath her commercial sceptre. United Slates of America. During the wars which convulsed Europe, after the ac- complishment of their freedom, the Americans had been ad- vancing in a steady march of national prosperity. An attempt of the French directory to enlist them in their struggle with the other powers of Europe, led to a short war with France, which was not attended with any important consequences. The second president, John Adams, directed his efforts to the formation of a navy ; and two of the American frigates, the a. d. Constellation and Constitution, captured French frigates of 1799. superior force, in the war with the republic. From this pe- riod a strict neutrality being observed, the Americans acquired most of the carrying trade of the belligerent powers in Eu- rope, and extended their commerce into every part of the world. Napoleon was the first to invade this privilege of the 1806. Americans in the Berlin and Milan decrees, issued to prevent them from trading with Great Britain ; which were followed by the British orders in council, prohibiting them from inter- course with France. A farther cause of irritation against Great Britain, existed in the custom of searching American vessels on the ocean, and impressing from them British seamen. This was even 1807. carried so far, that the commander of a British frigate, the Leopard, after demanding four seamen from the American frigate Chesapeake, and being refused, fired a broadside into her, and compelled her commander, taken by surprise, to sur- render the men. Three of their number were Americans. The depredations of both the French and English on Ameri- can commerce, had become so extensive, that the congress, on the recommendation of the third president, Mr. Jefferson, ordered an embargo, prohibiting all commerce with foreign 2E2 354 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART III, countries. This measure, however, being found to operate ^ jj^ too harshly on the interests of the commercial states of the 1809. union, the embargo law was repealed, and a non-intercourse with France and England was substituted. An offer was made on the part of the United States, that the non-intercourse should be discontinued towards either France or England, as soon as they respectively should cease to violate the commerce of the republic. Napoleon's minister having informed the American agent at Paris that the Berlin and Milan decrees were revoked, the non-intercourse law, as 1811. regarded France, was annulled. But as the official notice of this act was withheld, Great Britain, with good reason, doubted the revocation of the French decrees. When a formal an- nouncement of their revocation was made by France, the British orders in council were also revoked. But in the mean- time, the United States had declared war with Great Britain 1812. (June 18), and as the questions of search and impressment were still unsettled, the war was continued, notwithstanding the revocation of the orders in council. The first object of the United States was the conquest of Canada. General William Hull, with a force sufficient for the reduction of Upper Canada, passed into that province, but after wasting some time in parade and indecision, he sur- rendered his whole force, the fortress at Detroit, and the en- tire territory of Michigan, to the British. For this act, he was afterwards tried, sentenced to be shot, and pardoned. On the 19th of August, the American frigate Constitution, captain Hull, captured the British frigate Guerriere, reducing her to a complete wreck in 15 minutes. This was the first of a series of naval victories which have completely destroyed the proud claim of Britain to the empire of the ocean. It was speedily followed (Oct. 25), by the capture of the British frigate Macedonian, by the American frigate United States, under the command of captain Decatur, off the Western Isles. In November an attempt was made on Queenstown, in Up- per Canada, which, after a severe action, and a heavy loss on both sides in killed and wounded, resulted in the capture of 1000 Americans. In December, the frigate Constitution, captain Bainbridge, captured the British frigate Java, off the coast of Brazil, after an action of one hour, in which the Java was reduced to an unmanageable wreck. General Winchester, with 750 men, 1813. was attacked near the river Raisin, by a superior force of British and Indians, under general Proctor; and after being sur- rendered prisoners of war, many of his men were massacred CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 355 by the Indians. (Jan. 22). An attack on fort Meigs, by the British, was successfully resisted by general Harrison (May). An expedition against York, in Upper Canada, under the command of general Pike, was completely successful. After an obstinate defence, the place was carried with a loss of 750 on the British side. The heroic Pike was mortally wounded by the explosion of a magazine. Fort George and fort Erie were shortly afterwards taken by the Americans, after a brisk action. An attempt was made by the British naval force which blockaded the Chesapeake, on Norfolk; and, on its failure, Hampton, a village 18 miles from jNorfolk, was taken and given up to rapine and plunder. The American frigate Chesapeake was captured by the British frigate Shannon, off Boston harbor, under circumstances which, fairiy considered, tend materially to diminish the glory of the victory. Fort Sandusky was most ably defended against general Proctor, with 1200 British and Indians, by major Croghan, with 160 Americans. (Aug. 1). In September, the American fleet on lake Erie, under the command of captain Perry, captured the whole British squad- ron under captain Barclay, after a well-contested action of three hours. Detroit was soon after retaken, and a superior force of British and Indians, under general Proctor, routed by the Americans under general Harrison. The fortune of the day was decided by a mounted regiment under colonel Johnson, who slew with his own hand, during the action, the celebrated Indian warrior Tecumseh. Extensive preparations were made for renewing the inva- sion of Canada, during the autumn ; but the expedition was abandoned, apparently for want of concert among the leading officers, and fort George and fort Niagara fell into the hands of the British. Overtures of peace being made on the part of Great Britain, a. d. commissioners on both sides were appointed to meet at Ghent 1814. for the purpose of negotiating a treaty. A part of the district of Maine, east of Penobscot river, was occupied by the British. Naval victories were achieved by the American commanders. Porter, Warrington, and Bid- die, and the victories at Chippeway and Niagara witnessed the improved discipline and coolness of the American land forcGS A British force landed from the fleet in the Chesapeake, and, conducted by general Ross, succeeded in penetrating to the city of Washington, where they destroyed the public buildings, library, and records ; a piece of vandalism which 356 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART HI. has scarcely a parallel in modern warfare, and which one of their own ablest statesmen has pronounced a disgrace to the British nation. A subsequent attempt on Baltimore resulted in the defeat of the British, and the death of general Ross. The British squadron on lake Champlain, consisting of 17 vessels, under the command of captain Downie, was defeated by the American squadron of 14 vessels, under captain M'Donough ; and on the same day, the British army under general Prevost was repulsed, with heavy loss, in an attempt to storm the forts at Plattsburg. 1815. Sir Edward Packenham, with 14,000 men, made a descent on New-Orleans, (Jan. 8), which was defended by general Jackson with six thousand men, principally militia. After a well-contested action, the British were repulsed with the loss of 700 killed, 1400 wounded, and 500 prisoners. The Ameri- can loss was 13 killed, 39 wounded, and 19 missing. 1 The treaty of peace had been signed at Ghent, Dec. 24, I 1814, and ratified by the prince regent of England Dec. 28. It was ratified by the president of the United States, Feb. 1815. From the events of this war, the Americans have learnt that their land forces are more fit for the resistance of inva- sion, than for foreign conquest ; and that their best instru- ment of national defence is a well-disciplined navy: the same events have taught other nations, that this people, once sup- posed to be for ever wedded to commerce and peace, has some claims to a character for ability and courage in war. At this momentous era in the history of the world we ter- minate our rapid view of its destinies. We have seen em- pire after empire rise and fall ; each has had its appointed limit: what has been gained by injustice and violence, has been lost by corruption and imbecility. The agency of a great moral superintending power is everywhere perceptible; the slow but sure castigation of national vice everywhere meets our view ; but man will not learn wisdom ; and the latest periods of history present the same scenes of unblushing violations of faith and justice, which occurred ere he had re- ceived the lessons of experience. Like children at their play, nations and princes still go on adding story after story to the political house of cards, fondly hoping that the slight foundation will support, and the loose juncture hold together the towering edifice, till in an instant it falls, levelled by its own weight, and the scattered fragments remain for another equally wise architect to attempt its reconstruction. Occa- CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 357 sional war seems to be necessary to the healthy existence of states ; and war may lead to conquest ; but the voice of his- tory cries aloud, that empire founded on injustice and aggres- sion is rarely lasting. With a general resemblance to the others, each period of history has its own peculiar features. What chiefly distin- guishes Modern History are the increased intercourse and connexion of nations, and the growth of liberty. The civil- ized world now forms one body: collision in one part commu- nicates motion to the whole; a spark of discord, when struck, is apt to kindle a conflagration ; while, on the other hand, the progress of improvement is facilitated, and the discoveries and the knowledge of one people are speedily appropriated by another. But the glory of modern times is the progress of liberty : our last division has presented many a hard-fought contest in its sacred cause ; and we may now say with truth, that there never was a time when so large a portion of man- kind was in possession of civil, religious, and mental liberty. Even the nations which have not yet been cheered by the beams of political freedom are benefited by its proximity ; and public opinion, to which it has given birth, tends to restrain the excesses of absolute power. In the south of Europe, as if for a warning to others to shun the evil, civil and religious despotisms are still suffered by Providence to display their hideous forms ; but in the New World, the incipient and cha- otic state of freedom is travailing in the birth of a purer and more regular order of things. The " march sublime" of lib- erty is, we trust, not to be retarded for ages to come. Eng- land has led the way in the glorious career : and the last blem- ish which stained her fair fame, and afforded a topic of re- proach to her enemies, has been removed, while her councils were directed by the warrior who so often had led her ar- mies to victory. Esto perpetua. TABULAR VIEW ROYAL DYNASTIES. Israel. Saul l6rregnum • . . Lootf Ali Khan . . Aga Mohammed . . Futtch Ali KJiun (the present king) 1627 1641 1666 1694 1722 1725 1729 1732 1747 17.50 1753 1779 1789 1795 1796 Macedon, Kings of. B. c. Philip, sonof Amyn- tas .3fi0 Alexander theGreat 336 Philip Aridaeus 323 Cassander 316 Antipater ; ^^ Alexander ( ^^ 360 ROYAL DYNASTIES. B. C. Demetrius 294 Pyirhus 286 For 16 years 12 kinga 278 AntigonusI.Gonatus 277 Demetrius II 243 AntigonusII.Doson 232 Philip 221 Perseus 179 Pergamus, Kings of. Philetserus 283 Eumenes 1 263 Attalus 1 241 Eumenes II 197 Attalus II. Phila- delphus 159 Attalus III. Philo- metor 138 Syria, Kings of. Seleucus Nicator. . . 312 Antiochus I. Soter. . 280 Antiochus II. Bebs- 261 Seleucus II. Calli- nicus 246 Seleucus III. Cerau- nus 226 Antiochus III. the Great '..... 223 Seleucus IV. Philo- pater 187 Antiochus IV 175 Antiochus V 164 Demetrius I. Soter. . 162 Alexander Balas. .. 150 Demetrius II. Nica- tor 146 Antiochus VI 144 Diodotus 143 Antiochus VII 139 Demetrius II. resto- ration of 130 Alexander Zebina. . 127 Antiochus VIII. ... 123 Philip and Deme- trius Tigranes, king o: Armenia 83 Antiochus IX. Asi- aticus 69 Ptolemy III. Ever getes Ptolemy IV. Philo- pater 221 Ptolemy V. Epipha- Hgg 204 Ptolemy VI. Philo metor 180 Ptolemy VII. Philo- metor Ptolemy VIII. Phys- con Ptolemy IX. La- ^ thyrus i Cleopatra J Alexander ) Cleopatra \ Ptolemy Lathyrus, restoration of. . . . Cleopatra II. ) Alexander II. \ Ptolemy Alexander III Ptolemy Dionysius ) Auletes \ Ptolemy Dionysi us "I 11 } Cleopatra III J Jl'dea, Kings of. Hyrcanus I. (High 246 150 145 116 106 81 65 51 Emperors. Augustus 31 Tiberius 14 Caligula 37 Claudius 41 Nero 54 Galba 68 Otho 1 Vitellius y 69 Vespasian J Titus 79 Domitian 81 Nerva 96 Trajan 98 Adrian 117 Antoninus Pius 138 Marcus Aurelius^j and V 161 Lucius Verus J Commodus 180 Pertinax and Julia- nus 193 Septimius Severus . 193 Caracalla and Geta 211 Opilius Macrinus . . 217 ElagabalusAntonius 218 Alexander Severus. 222 Maximinus The two Gordians . Maximus.Pupienus, and Balbinus Gordian junior 235 Priest) 136 Philip the Arabian 237 238 AristobulusI 105 Alexander Jannai. . 104 Alexandra 78 Hyrcanus II. and ) «o Aristobulus II. . . j ^-^ Hyrcanus II 63 Antigonus 40 Herodes the Great.. 37 Archelaus 3 Judea, a Roman province 8 Agrippa 37 Egypt, Kings op. Ptolemy 1 323 Ptolemy II. Phila- delphus 284 Rome, Kings of. B. C. Romulus 753 Numa Pompilius. .. 715 Tullus Hostilius. .. 672 Ancus Martius .... 640 Tarquinius Priscus 616 ServiusTullius 578 Tarquinius Superbus534 Republic for 461 years. Decius 249 Gallus,HostiHanu3 ) __- Volusianus ) -^^ iEmilianus Valeria- nus andGallienus 254 Gallienus alone.... 260 Claudius 268 Aurelian 270 Tacitus 275 Florianus ) o-« Probus 1 2/6 Marcus AureliusCa- rus 282 Dioclesian 284 Dioclesian andMax- imianus 286 ConstantiusChlorus Galerius Maximi- anus 304 Constantine I. the Great 306 Constantine II. Con- stans, and Con- stantius. 337 Julian 361 Jovian 363 Valentinian I. and ValenB 364 Gratlan, Valentini- an II. and Tlieo- dosius 1 375 Houoiius 395 Valentinian III 424 Maximus 455 Avitus 456 Majorianus 457 Severus 461 Aiifhemius 467 Olybriiis 472 Glyceriu8 473 Julius Nepos 474 Romulus Augustus. 475 Bishops of Rome. A. D. St. Linus G7 St. Cletus. or Ana- cletus 78 St. Clement 1 91 Evaristus 100 Alexander 1 108 Sixtus 1 116 Telespliorus 126 Hygiiius 137 Pius 1 141 Anicetus 157 Soter 168 Eleutherus 177 Victor 192 Zephirinus 201 Calixtus 219 Urban 1 224 Pontianus 231 Anterius Fabianus. 235 Cornelius 251 Lucius , . 253 Stephen 255 Sixtus II 257 Dionysius 259 Felix 1 271 Eutychianus 275 Gains 283 Marceliinus 29G Marcellus 304 Eusebius 309 Melchiades 311 Silvester 314 Marcus 336 Julius 337 Liberius 352 Damasus 367 Siricius 385 Anastatjus 398 Innocent 1 402 Zosimus 417 Boniface 1 418 CJElestinus 423 Sixtus III 432 Leo the Saint 440 Hilary 461 Bimplicius 467 Felix II 483 ROYAL DYNASTIES. A. V. Gelasius 432 Anastatius 496 Symmachus 498 Hormisdas 514 John I. • • 523 Felix III 526 Boniface II 530 John II 532 Agapetus 535 Sylverius 536 Vigilius 540 PeiagiusI 556 John III 560 Benedict 573 Peiagius II 577 Gregory the Great. . 500 Popes. Sabinianus 604 Boniface HI 606 Boniface IV 607 Deusdedit 614 Boniface V 617 Honorius 1 626 Severinus 639 John IV 639 Theodorus 641 Martin 1 649 Eugenius 655 Vitatianus 655 Adeodatus 669 Domnus 676 Agathon 678 Leo If 683 Benedict II 684 John V 685 Conon 686 Sergius 687 John VI 701 John VII. 705 SirisiniusI.Constan- tiae 708 Gregory II 714 Gregory III 731 Zachary 741 Stephen II. and III. 753 Paul 1 757 Stephen IV 768 Adrian 1 772 Leo III 795 Stephen V 816 Pascal 1 817 Eugenius II 824 Valentin 827 Gregory IV 827 Sergius II 844 Leo IV 847 Pope Joan, accord- ") ing to some > 854 Benedict III. J Nicholas 1 858 Adrian II 867 John VIII 872 2F 361 Martin II 882 Adrian III 884 Stephen VI 885 Formosus 891 Boniface VI. ) Stephen VII. \ • • • • 897 Theodorus II. ) of,, John IX. ]■'■' ''"1 Benedict IV 905 Leo V. ) q„ Christopher \ ''^^ Sergius III 907 Anastatius III 910 Lando 912 John X 913 Leo VI 928 Stephen VIII 929 JohnXI. 931 Leo VII 936 Stephen IX 939 Martin III 943 Agapetus II.. 946 John XII 955 Leo VIII. 963 Benedict V 964 John XIII 965 Domnus II. ) Q„n Benedict VL j •••• ^^^ Boniface VII 974 Benedict VII 975 John XIV 984 John XV 985 Gregory V 996 Silvester II 999 John XVI. ) ,nnQ John XVII. i ••• ^""-^ Sergius IV 1009 Benedict VIII 1012 John XVIII 1024 Benedict IX 1034 Gregory VI 1044 Clement 1046 Damasus II 1048 Leo IX 1049 Victor II 1054 Stephen X 1057 Nicholas II 1059 Alexander II 1061 Gregory VII 1073 Victor III 1086 Urban II 1088 Pascal II 1099 GelasusII 1118 Calixtus II 1119 Honorius II 1124 Innocent II 1130 Celestine II 1143 Lucius II 1144 Eugenius III 1145 Anastatius IV 1153 Adrian IV 1154 Alexander III 1159 Lucius III 1181 Urban III 1185 ,. 1294 362 A. D. Gregory VIII 1187 ClemeivtIII 1188 Celestin III 1191 Innocent III 1198 HonoriusIII 1216 Gregory IX 1227 Celestin IV 1241 Innocent IV 1243 Alexander IV 1254 Urban IV 1261 Clement IV 1265 Gregory X 1271 Innocent V. "] Adrian V. V ... 1276 John XIX. J Nicholas III 1277 Martin IV 1281 HonoriusIV 1285 Nicholas IV 1288 Celestin V. Boniface VIII. Benedict X 1303 Clement V 1305 John XX 1316 Benedict XI 1334 Clement VI 1342 Innocent VI 1352! Urban V 1302 j Gregory XI 1370 Urban Vl 1378 j Boniface IX 1389 i Innocent VII 1404 Gregory XII. 1406 | Alexander V 1409 { John XXI 1410! Martin V 1417 Eugene IV 1431 i Nicholas V 1447 j Calixtus III 1455 | Pius II 1458 Paul II 1464 I Sixtus IV 1471 Innocent VIII 1484 Alexander VI 1492 Pius III. I Julius II. S Leo X 1513 Adrian VI......... 1522 Clement VII 1523 1 Paul III 1534 1 Julius III 1550 i Marcellus II Paul IV. Pius IV 15G0I Pius V 1566 1 Gregory XIII 1572 SJxtusV 1585 Urban VII. ) ^^.^^ GrefforyXIV. \ " ^^■'" Innocent IX 1.591 Clement VIII 1592 Leo XI. I Paul V. \ Gregory XV.... 1621 ROYAL DYNASTIES. A. D. Urban VIII 1623 Innocent X 1644 Alexander VII. . . . 1655 Clement IX 1667 Clement X 1670 Innocent XI 1676 Alexander Vin. .. 1689 Innocent XII 1691 Clement XI 1700 Innocent XIII. . .. 1721 Benedict XIII 1724 Clement XII 1730 Benedict XIV 1740 Clement XIII 1758 Pius VI 1774 Pius VII 1800 Leo XII. 1822 Pius VIII 1829 1503 1555 1605 Emperors of the East. Arcadius 395 TlieodosiusII 408 Marcianus 450 Leo I. the Thracian 457 Leo junior H. Zeno 474 Anastatius the Si- lentarv 491 Justinl.theThraciaii 518 Justinian I 527 Justin II 565 Tiberius II 578 Mauricius the Cap- padocian 582 Phocas 602 Heraclius 610 Constantine III. . . . 641 ConstansII 642 Constantine IV. Po- gonatus 668 Justinian II 6H5 Leontius 694 Absimerus Tiberius 697 Justinianll. restored 704 PhillipicusBardanes 711 Anastatius II 713 ThodosiuslII 715 Leo III. Isauricus.. 717 Constantine V. . . . 742 Leo IV 775 Constantine VI. ... 780 797 Nicephorus 802 Michael I 811 Leo V.the Armenian 813 Michaelll.the Stam- merer 821 Theophilus 829 Michael III. the Sot S4^ Basilius the Mace- donian 867' A. D. Leo VI. the Philos- opher 886 ConstantineVn.Por- phyrogenitus .... 912 Roman us with Con- stantine 919 Romanus II 959 Nicephorus II. Pho- cas 963 John Zimisces 969 Basilius 11. and Con- stantine VIII. ... 975 Romanus in 1028 Michael IV 1034 Michael V 1041 Constantine IX. . . 1042 Theodora 1054 Michael VI 1056 Isaac Comnenus . . 1057 Constantine X.Du- cas 1059 Romanus Diogenes 1068 Michael VII 1071 AicpphorusIII. . .. 1078 Alexius Comnenus 1081 John Comnenus, KaXof 1118 Manuel Comnenus 1143 Alexius II 1180 Andronicus 1 1183 Isaac Angel usCom- nenus 1185 Alexius III. the Ty- rant.. 1195 Isaac Angelus re- i ,^(.0 stored \ ^^"^ Theodore Lascaris 1204 JohnDucasVataces 1222 Theodore Lascaris II 1255- John Lascaris .... 1258 MichaelPalaeologus 1259 Andronicus II 1283 Andronicus III.... 1320 John Palieologus. . 1.341 John Cantacuzene 1347 John Palaeologus re- stored 1355 Manuel 1391 John Palceologus. . i424 Constantine Pais- ologus 1448 Kh.vlifs. Aboo Beker 632 Omar 634 Othman 644 Ali 656 Moavviah 660 Yezid 679 Moawiahll 683 Merwan I... Abdiilnielek Walid I .. 684 685 705 Omar II Yezidl]. ... 719 723 Walid II. ... Yezid III . 742 743 Mervvau II.. Saffhh ;. Maiisur . . . 745 750 75 i Mohadi Hadi 775 Haroon-Er-Rasheed 786 Amiii wno fllaniun Motasiiji .... Wathek .... Motawakel . . Mosianser . . . 813 833 §42 847 862 802 Mohtadi Motamed ) Miiaffek \ •• VTotadhed VIohtafi VIoktader 870 892 902 908 932 Radhi 934 Motaki Mostakfi .... Moti 940 944 rat 974 Kader 991 Kaim Moktadi Wostadher. . . VTostarshed . . . lasheed VIoktafi .... 1031 .... 1075 .... 1094 . . . . 1118 . ... 1135 VIostanjed llfiO ^ostadhi 1170 Vaser 1180 ^Iiaher 1225 Hostanser 1226 tfostasem 1242 AR.iGON, Kings of. la mi res. . . ...... 1035 anclio 1067 >eter 1 10:)4 Ufoiisol 1104 lamires II. the Monk 1134 etronilla 1138 ' LlfonsoII.theCiiastellCy ' eter II 11%! ROYAL DYNA.STIES. James I. the Con- 363 Alfonso II loio queror 1213 ' Sancho II 1033 Peter III 1276 I Alfonso III 1246 Alfonso III. the Be- iDionvsius P79 nt^ficent 1285 I Alfonso IV 1305 James II, the Just 1291 | Peter the Cruel... 1357 Alfonso IV 1327 Ferdinand 1307 Peter IV. the Great 1336 j Interregnum for 18 •f"fin 1 1387 months 1383 ^^artin 1395 I John I. the Bastard 1385 Feriliuand 1 1410 ! Edward 1433 Alfonso V 1416 I Alfonso V 1433 John II 1458 I John II 148I Ferdinand II 1481 Emmanuel 1495 John III 1521 Sebastian 1557 Henry the Cardinal 1578 United with Spain 1580 John IV. Duke of Braijanza 1640 Alfonso VI 1G5G Peter II jeeS John V 1706 Joseph 1750 3IariaFrancisca. . 1777 John VI 1799 Castile, Kings of. Ferdinand theGreat 1035 Sancho 1065 AlfonsoVI.the Val- iant 1072 Urraca 1 109 Alfonso VII 1122 Sancho III 1157 Alfonso VIII. the Noble 1158 Peter II ii96 Henry 1 1214 Alfonso IX 1217 Ferdinand III 1226 AJfonsoX.the Wise 1252 Sancho IV 12S4 Ferdinand IV 1295 Alfonso XI 1312 Peter the Cruel 1350 Henryll.tlieBastard 1369 John 1 1379 Henry III 1300 John II 1406 Henry IV. the Im- potent Isabel and Fer dinant V. .. 1454 1476 Spain, Kings of. Charles 1 1516 Plnlip 11 1555 Philip III. 1598 Philip IV 1621 Charles II 1GC5 Philip V 1700 Ferdinand VI 1746 Charles III 1756 Charles IV 1788 Ferdinand VII. . . . 1808 Portugal, Kings of. Alfonso 1 1139 Sancho 1 11B5 Naples and Sicily, Kings of. Roger n 1102 Roger III 1129 William I. the Wicked 1153 Williamll.theGood 1166 TancredtheBastard 1189 William III 1192 Constance and ) ,,„. Henry VI \ • "3* Subjected to the German Empe- rors, till 1250 ... 1198 Conrad 1250 Interregnum 1253 Manfred 1254 Conrad II. ) „ Charles of Anjou j ^^'^^ JVaples alone. CharlesII.theLame 1284 Robert the Wise . . 1309 Joan 1 1343 Charles III 1382 Ladislaus 1386 Joan II 1414 Naples and Sicily. Alfonso, king of Aragon 1434 Ferdinand 1469 Alfonso II 1494 Ferdinand II 1495 364 Frederic 150G Became subject to Spain for 250 years Charles VII 1755 Ferdinand IV 1759 Francis 1825 Denmark, Kings of. Canute II.theGreat 1014 Canute III 1036 Magnus 1041 SuenoII 1048 Harold 1074 CanutelV.the Saint 107G Olaus, surnamed Hunger 1086 Eric III. the Good 1096 Nicholas 1107 Eric IV. Harefoot 1135 EricV. the Lamb.. 1139 Sueno IlI.theGreat 1147 Magnus III., resto- ration of 1147 Waldemar 1157 Canute V il82 Waldemar II 1202 Eric VI 1242 Abel 1250 Christopher 1252 Eric VII 1259 Eric VIII 1286 Christopher II 1321 Waldemar III 1333 Margaret 1375 EricIX 1412 Denmark and JVorway united. Christopher III.... 1438 Christian 1 1448 John 1 1481 Christian II 1513 Frederick 1 1522 Christian III 1533 Frederick II 1559 Christian IV 1588 Frederick III 1648 Christian V 1670 Frederick IV 1699 Christian VI 1730 Frederick V 1746 Christian VII 1766 Frederick VI 1808 Sweden, Kings of. Amundll 1019 Amund 111 10:^5 Haquin III thcRed 1041 ROYAL DYNASTIES. Stenchill and Ingo III 1059 Halstan :.. 1064 Philip 1080 Ingo IV 1110 Ragnald 1129 Svercher II 1140 Eric X. the Saint . 1160 Charles VII 1162 Canute 1168 Svercher III 1192 Eric XL.......... 1210 John 1218 Eric XII. the Stut- terer 1222 Waldemar 1250 Magnus II 1276 Birgerll 1282 Magnus III. ....;. 1326 Albert 1.363 Margaret 1388 Eric XIII 1396 Christopher,King of Sweden, Denmark, and Norway 1438 Charles VIII 1448 Interregnum, thir- teen years 1470 John, King of Den- mark 1483 Christian II 1513 Gustavus I. Vasa. . 1523 Eric XIV 1560 John III 1568 Sigismund, king of Poland 1592 Charles IX 1598 Gustavus II. Adol- phus 1612 Christina 1632 Charles X 1654 Charles XI 1660 Charles XII 1696 FrederickandUlrica 1718 Adolphus Frederick 1751 Gustavus III 1771 Gustavus IV 1792 Charles XIII...... 1809 Charles John 1818 Poland, Kings of. Premislaus 1295 VladislausIV 1296 Wenceslaus 1300 Vladislaus IV 1305 Casimir IIL the Great.....' 1333 Lewis, King of Hungary 1370 Interregnum of 3 years 1383 A. P. Jagellon and Vladis- laus IV 1336 Vladislaus V 1434 Interregnum of 3 years 1444 Casimir IV. 1447 John I. Albert .... 1492 Alexander 1501 Sigismund I. ..... 1507 Sigismund II. Au- gustas 1548 Henry of Anjou.. . 1573 Stephen Balore 1576 Sigismund III l.'»87 Vladislaus VI 1632 John 11. Casimir.. 1648 Michael . . . , ; 1669 John Ill.Sobieski. 1674 Augustus II 1697 Frederick Augus- tus III 1734 Russia, Tsars of. Fedor 1585 Boris Goduhof 1598 Interregnum 1604 Michael 1613 Aiexi 1645 Fedor II 1676 Sophia, Ivan, and ) ,rq„ Peter the Great j ^'^^'^ Peter the Great alone 1696 Catherine 1725 Peter II 1727 Anne 1730 Ivan III 1740 Elizabeth 1741 Peter III 1762 Catherine II 1762 Paul 1796 Alexander 1801 Nicholas. .. 1825 France. Merovingians. Clovis 481 Childebert 511 Clotaire 558 Caribert 5^2 Chilperic 567 Clotaire II 584 Dagobert 623 Clovis II 644 Clotaire III 660 Childeric II 668 Thierri 673 Clovis III 690 A. D. Childebert II 695 Dagobert II 711 Chilperic II 716 Thierrill 720 ChildericIII 742 Carlovingians. Pepin 751 Charlemagne 768 Lewis Lie Debonaire 814 Charles the Bald... 840 Lewis II. the Stam- merer 877 Lewis III. and Car- loman 879 Charles the Fat.... 884 Eudes 888 Charles the Simple.. 898 Rodolph 923 Lewis IV. Outremer 036 Lothaire 954 Lewis V 986 Capetians. Hugh Capet 987 Robert I. the Wise. 996 Henry 1 1031 PhilipI.rAmoureux 1061 Lewis VI. the Fat. 1108 LewisVII.theYoiingJ 137 PhilipII. Augustus. 1180 LewisVIII.theLion 1223 Lewis IX.the Saint 1226 Philip III. the Bold 1270 Philip IV. the Fair 1285 Lewis X 1314 John I. {lived but 8 daifs) 1315 Philfp V. the Long 1316 CharlesIV. the Fair 1321 House of Valois. Philip Vl.ofValois, the Fortunate . . 1328 John II 1351 CharlesV. the Wise 1364 Charles VI. the Be- loved 1380 CharlesVII.theVic- torious 1422 LewisXI 1461 Charles VIII 1483 Lewis XII 1498 Francis 1 1515 Henry II 1547 Francis II 1559 Charles IX 1560 Henry III 1574 House of Bourbon. Henry IV. the Great 1589 Lewis Xm 1610 Lewis XIV 1643 ROYAL DYNASTIES. A. D. Lewis XV 1715 Louis XVI 1774 Louis XVII 1793 Louis XVIII 1796 Charles X 1824 England, Kings of. Anglo-Saxon Line. Egbert 828 Ethel wolf 838 Ethelbald 857 Ethelbert 860 Ethelred 1 866 Alfred the Great ... 872 Edward the Elder. . 900 Athelstan 925 Edmund 1 941 Edred 948 Edwy 955 Edgar the Peaceable 959 Edward II.theMartyr 975 Ethelred II. the Un- ready 978 Edmundll. Ironside 1016 Canute the Great, King of Denmark 1017 Harold Harefoot... 1036 Canute II. Hardi- canute 1039 Edward III. the Confessor 1041 Harold II 1066 JVorman Line. William the Con- queror 1066 William II. Rufus 1087 Henrvl 1100 Stephen of Blois.. 1135 House of Plantagenet. Henry II. Planta- genet 1154 Richard I. Cceur de Lion 1189 John Lackland 1199 Henry m. of Win- chester 1216 Edward I. Long Shanks 1272 Edward II. of Caer- narvon 1307 Edward III. of Windsor 1327 Richard II. of Bour- deaux 1377 Henry IV.ofBoIing- broke 1399 Henry V. of Mon- mouth 1413 2F2 365 HenryVLofWind. sor 1422 Edward IV 1461 Edward V. 1 Richard in. \... 1483 Crook Back J House of Tudor. Henry Vll 14&5 Henry VIII 1509 Edward VI 1547 Mary. 1553 Elizabeth 1558 Great Britain. House of Stuart. James 1 1603 Charles 1 1625 Commonwealth... 1649 Charles II 1660 James II 1685 William III. and Mary 1689 Anne 1702 House of Brunswick. George 1 1714 George II 1727 George III 1760 George IV 1820 Scotland, Kings of. Malcolm II 1004 Duncan 1034 Macbeth 1040 ftlalcolm III. Cean Mohr 1056 Donald Bane 1093 Duncan II 1095 Edgar 1098 Alexander 1 1107 David 1 1124 Malcolm IV 1153 William 1166 Alexander II 1214 Alexander III. . . . 1249 Interregnum of 7 years 1286 John Baliol 1292 Interregnum 1301 Robert Bruce 1306 David II 1329 Robert II 1371 Robert III 1390 James 1 1406 James II 1437 James III. 1460 James IV 1488 Jame3 V. 1513 ROYAL DYNASTIES. A. D. Mary 1542 James VI 1567 Germany, Emperors or. Arnulf 888 Lewis III 900 Conrad 912 Henry I. the Fowler 920 Otho I. the Great . . 936 Otho II. the Bloody 973 Otho III. the Red .". 983 Henry II. the Lame 1002 Conrad II. the Sa- lique 1024 Henrylll.the Black 1039 Henry IV 105C Henry V 1106 Lothario the Saxon 1125 ^-'onrad III 1138 Frederick I. ^ , , .,, Barbarossa \ ^^^^ Henry Vl.the Severe 1190 Philip 119S Otho IV 1208 Frederick II J212 William... 1250 Interregnum for 17 years 12.% Rodolph of Habs- burg, first of the Austrian Family 1273 Adolphus of Nassau 1291 Albert I. of Austria 12D8 Interregnum 1 year 1308 Henry VII. of Lux- emburgh ^ . . 1300 Lewis IV. the Ba- varian 1314 Charles IV. of Lux- emburgh 1.347 Wenceslaus 1378 Rupert 1400 JOBSUS "] Sigismund, King > 1410 of Hungary J j A. D. Albertll.of Austria 1438 Frederick III 1440 Maximilian 1 1493 Charles V 1519 Ferdinand 1 1558 Maximilian II. ... 1564 Rodolph II 1576 Mathias 1612 Ferdinand II 1619 Ferdinand III 1637 Leopold 1658 Joseph 1705 Charles VI 171 1 Charles VII 1741 Francis 1 1745 Joseph II 1765 Leopold n 1790 Francis II 1792 Prussia, Kinqs of. Frederic 1 1701 Frederic William L 1713 Frederic II 1740 FredericWilliamll. 1786 Frederic Wilm. III. 1797 Ottoman Emperors. Osman 1298 Orchan 1325 Moorad, or Amu- rath I 1358 Bayezeed 1 1389 Interregnum 1402 Mohammed 1 1413 Amnrath II 1421 Mohammed II 1451 Bayezeed II 1481 Selim 1 1512 Suleiman 1 1520 Selim II 1566 A. n. Amurath III 1574 Mohammed III.. .. 1595 Ahmed 1 1604 Mustafa 1617 Amurath IV 1623 Ibrahim 1640 Mohammed IV.. .. 1655 Suleiman II 1687 Ahmed II 1690 Mustafa II 1695 Ahmed III 1703 MahmoodI 1730 Mustafa III 1757 Abdul Ahmed 1774 Selim III.. 1789 xMustafa IV. ) .^na Mahmood II. • ' ^""'^ Chinese Dynasties. Hia B. Cc Chang Chew 35 Emperors 1122 Tsin 4— 248 Western Han 25 — 206 Eastern Han ■ 2 - Eastern Tsin. 16- &ong 8- Tpi 5 - Leiing 4 - Chien 5 - Song or Svee. 3- Tang 20- Second Leaug 2- Second Tang. 5- Second Tsin.. 2- Han 2- SecondChew. 3- Song 18- Yven 9 - Ming 16- Tai Tsin 5- A. D. - 238 - 265 - 42U - 480 - 502 - 51 - 590 - 618 - 911 - 924 - 937 - 948 - 951 - 960 -1280 -1368 -1644 EMINENT PERSONS. Name. Plourfjhed. Hemer 907 K«siod 967 Elijah 896 Lycurgus 883 Elisha 846 Isaiah 768 Eumelus 738 'Bappho 601 Name. Flouri»hed. B. C. Epimenides of Crete 594 Jeremiah 594 yEsop 578 Cadmus 562 Solon 561 Thales 559 Ibycus .552 Anaximander ..... 550 Name. Flourished. B. C. Theognis 548 Pythagoras 522 Anacreon 520 Zoroaster 519 Heraclitus 516 Diogenes 476 yEschylus 475 Zeno the Elder 464 EMINENT PERSONS. Nime. Flourished. Pindar 455 Aristarchus 453 Leucippus 452 Aiiaxagoras 452 Charon of Lampas- cas 449 Herodotus 444 Aristippus 432 Euripides 427 Sophocles 426 Socrates 419 Thucydides 417 Aristophanes 416 Ctesias 416 Meton 415 Name. flourished. Damon and Pythias 397 Lysias 396 Pelopidas 395 Hippocrates 381 Xenophon 379 Plato 368 Eudoxus 352 Aristotle 351 Xenocrates 314 Euclid 298 Theophrastus 285 Epicurus 288 Callimachus 244 Archimedes 239 Terence 179 367 Name. Flourished. B. C. Critolaus 160 Lucilius 128 Cinna 100 Possidonius 85 Julius Caesar 64 Cicero 63 Sallust 55 Diodorus Siculusr. . 44 Cornelius Nepos ... 43 Virgil 42 Horace 28 LJvy 20 Ovid 10 Celsus 10 Strabo 5 Name. Birth. Death. A. D. A. D. Dante 1265. 1321 Petrarch 1304. 1374 Boccacio 1313. 1375 Chaucer 1328. 1400 Froissart 1339. 1400 Gower 1402 Muller 1476 Lorenzo de Medici 1448. 1492 Gawin Douglas 1474. 1522 Machiavel 1469. 1527 D'Ercilla 1532 Ariosto 1474. 1533 Erasmus 1467. 1536 Paracelsus 1493. 1541 Coparnicus 1473. 1543 Luther .. 1483. 1546 Howard, Earl of Surrey 1515. 1546 Rabelais 1483. 1553 J. C. Scaliger 1484. 1558 Melancthon 1497. 1560 Vesalius 1514. 1564 Vida 1480. 1566 Ascham.... 1515. 1568 Peter Ramus 1515. 1572 Commandine 1509. 1575 Cardan '. 1501. 1576 Camoens 1524. 1579 Buchanan 1506. 1582 Sir P. Sidney 1554. 1586 Montaigne 1533. 1592 Tasso 1544. 1595 Henry Stephens 1528. 1598 Spenser 1553. 1599 Tycho Brahe 1546. 1601 Henry Carey, Earl of Monmouth 1596. 1616 J. J. Scaliger 1540. 1609 Clavius ..". 1537. 1612 Beaumont 1586. 1616 Shakspeare 1564. 1616 Cervantes 1547. 1616 Napier 1550. 1617 Name. Birth. A. D. PaulSarpi 1552. Camden 1551. John Fletcher 1576. Bacon 1560-1. Sir W. Temple Malherbe 1555. Kepler 1571. Davila 1576. Drayton 1563. Carey Lopez de la Vega 1562. Ben Jonson 1574. Martin Opits 1597. Massinger. 1584. Sir John Suckling 1609. Galileo 1564. Chilli ngvi'orth 1602. Grotius 1583. Torricelli 1608. Drummond 1585. Des Cartes 1596. Iniffo Jones 1572. Arch. Usher 1580. Lovelace 1618. Harvey.. 1569. Scarron 1610. Pascal 1623. Cowley 1618. Davenant 1605. Moliere 1620. Milton 1608, Spinoza 1623. Barrow 1630. Rochefoucault 1613. Butler 1634. Corneille 1606. Otway 1652. Boyle 1626-7. Puffendorf 1631. Huygens 1629. Fontaine 1621. De la Bruyere 1644. 1619 1625 1628 1630 1631 1631 1633 1635 1637 1639 1640 1641 1642 1644 1645 1647 1649 1650 1653 1655 1658 1658 1660 1662 1667 1668 1673 1674 1677 1678 1680 1085 1691 368 EMINENT PERSONS. Name. Birth. Death. A. D. A. D. Racine 1639. 1699 Dryden 1631. 1700 Hooke 1635. 1702 Locke 1632. 1704 Beinouilli 1654. 1705 Anne Dacier 1651. 1707 Faiquhar 1678. 1707 Boileau 1636. 1711 Fenelon 1651. 1715 Charles Montague, Earl of Halifax 1661. 1716 Gronovius 1645. 1716 Flamsteed 1646. 1719 Addison 1672. 1720 Prior 1664. 1721 Sir Christopher Wren. . 1632. 1725 Rapin 1661. 1725 Newton 1642. 1727 Steele 1671. 1729 Congreve 1670. 1729 Atterbury 1662. 1732 James Hermann 1678. 1733 Boerhaave 1668. 1738 Wolfe 1739 Halley 1656. 1741 Rollin 1661. 1741 Bentley 1661-2. 1742 Massillon 1663. 1742 Pope 1688. 1744 Swift 1667. . 1745 Walpole 1676. 1745 Maclaurin 1698. 1746 Thomson.... 1700. 1748 Giannone 1676. 1749 Monroe 1715. 1751 Berkely 1684. 1753 Fielding 1707. 1754 Montesquieu 1689. 1755 FonteneUe 1657. 1757 ColleyCibber 1671. 1757 Allan Ramsay 1685. 1758 Kleist 1715. 1759 Richardson 1689. 1760 T.Simpson 1710. 1761 Lady Montague 1690. 1762 Bradley 1692. 1762 Shenstone 1714. 1763 Simson 1687. 1768 Sterne 1713. 1768 Chatterton 1752. 1770 Smollet 1711. 1771 Reiske 1716. 1774 Goldsmith 1728. 1774 Haller 1708. 1776 Hume 1732. 1776 Rousseau 1711. 1777 Linnaeus 1707. 1778 Voltaire 1694. 1778 Garrick 1716. 1779 Lessing 1729. 1781 Name. Birth. Death. A. D. A. D. Metastasio 1698. 1782 William Hunter 1718. 1783 Euler 1707. 1783 Dr. Johnson 1709. 1784 D'Alembert 1737. 1784 Diderot 1713. 1784 Buftbn 1707. 1788 Cullen 1712. 1789 Dr. Franklin 1706. 1790 Warton 1728. 1790 Adam Smith 1723. 1791 Smeaton 1724. 1792 Robertson 1721. 1793 J. Hunter 1728. 1793 Condorcet 1743. 1794 Lavoisier 174.3. J 794 Sir W. Jones 1746. 1794 Gibbon 1737. 1794 Goldoni 1707. 1795 Burns 1759. 1796 Macpherson 1738. 1796 Reid 1710. 1796 Horace Walpole 1718. 1797 Marmontel 1723. 1799 Black 1728. 1799 Cowper 1731. 1800 Blair 1718. 1800 Lavater 1741. 1801 Fordyce 17.36. 1802 Darwin 1721. 1802 Alfieri 1749. 1803 Klopstock 1724. Ib03 Herder 1741. 1803 Priestley 1733. 1P04 Kant 1724. Ih04 Paley 1743. 1805 Cottin 1772. 1807- Porson 1759. 1808 Holcroft 1744. 1809 Cumberland 1732. 1811 Heyne 1729. 1812 Lagrange 1736. 1813 Wieland 1733. 1813 Sheridan 1751. 1816 Kirk White 1785. 1816 Richter 1792. 1817 DeStael 1766. 1817 Stolberg ■. 1715. 1818 Playfair 1749. 1819 Wolcot - 1738. 1819 Watt ■. 1736. 1819 Kotzebue 1761. 18ld Herschel 1738. 1821 Shelley 1792. 1822 Byron 1788. 1824 Voss 1751. 1826 Volta 1745. 1826 Laplace 1827 Wollaston 1828 Young IMPORTANT EVENTS. 369 CHRONOLOGICAL VIEW OF IMPORTANT EVENTS. B. C. The First Olympiad 776 Commencement of the Decen- nial Aichonfs at Athens 754 Foundation of Rome 753 The Rape of the Sabines 750 Xth Olympiad 747 Commencement of the Nabonas- sar ^ra 747 The first Messenian War 743 Foundation of Tarentum 707 Foundation of Corcyra 703 XXth Olympiad 700 The second Messenian War. '. • . 685 Commencement of the Annual Archons at Athens 684 Junction of Babylon and Assy- ria by Esarhaddon . . . :, 681 Combat of the Horalii and Cii- riatii 667 XXXth Olympiad 660 Foundation of Byzantium 658 Foundation of Cyren6 630 Establishment of Draco's LawS at Athens 623 XLth Olympiad 620 Commencement of Necho's Canal between the Nile and Red Sea 610 Destruction of Nineveh 606 Separation of the Medes and Lydians in Battle by an Eclipse of the Sun 601 (Newton's Chron. 585.) Establishment of the Pythian Games 591 Restoration of the Isthmian Games 582 Lth Olympiad 580 Restoration of the Nemean Games 568 First Comedy performed at Athens 562 LXth Olympiad 540 Tragedies first acted at Athens 535 Conquest of Egypt by Cambyses 525 The Temple of Jerusalem fin- ished 513 Restoration of the Democracy Al Athens 510 Expulsion of the Tarquins, and Abolition of Regal Govern- ment at Rome 509 First Alliance between the Ro- mans and Carthaginians 508 LXXth Olympiad 500 Institution of the Saturnalia at Rome 497 CreatioTV of the first Dictator at Rome 40C B. C. First Tribunes of the People created at Rome 494 Banishment of Coriolanus 491 Institution of the Cluaestors at Rome 484 Defeat of the Spartans at Ther- mopylae and Salamis 480 Rebuilding of Athens by The- mistocles . , 476 Foundation of Capua ,469 The third Messenian War 465 LXXXth Olympiad.;.... 460 Number of Tribunes at Rome increased from Five to Ten • . 453 Creation of the Decemvirs at Rome 448 First Sacred War concerning the Temple of Delphi 448 Death of Virginia 448 Institution of the Censorship at Rome 437 Meton's Nineteen Years' Cycle of the Moon 432 Commencement of the Pelopon- nesian War 43i XCth Olympiad 420 Agrarian Law first moved in Rome 416 Athens governed by the Council of 400 412 Conclusion of the Peloponne- sian War 405 Athens governed by Thirty Ty- rants 404 The Expulsion of the Thirty Tyrants 401 Rome taken by the Gauls under Brennus 385 Cth Olympiad 380 Commencement of the second SacredWar 357 End of the Sacred War 348 Commencement of the War be- tween the Romans and Sam- nites 343 CXth Olympiad 340 Destruction of Thebes by Alex- ander 336 Division of Alexander's Em- pire 323 JEra. of the Seleucidae 312 Foundation of Antioch, Edessa, and Laodicea • 300 CXXth Olympiad 300 Athens taken by Demetrius Po- liorcetes 298 The first Division of Time into Hours by the Sun-dial of Pa- pirins Cursor 293 mo IMPORTANT EVENTS. Astronomical JEra. of Dionysius of Alexandria 285 Foundation of the Alexandrian Library 283 The first Punic War 264 CXXXth Olympiad 260 First Naval Victory of the Ro- mans over the Carthaginians 260 End of the First Punic War ... 242 Comedies first acted at Rome . . 240 Temple of Janus closed for the first Time after Numa 235 CXLth Olympiad 220 The second Punic War 218 End of the second Punic War. . 201 The first Macedonian War 200 CJ^th Olympiad 180 The second Macedonian War. . 171 The third Punic War 149 Destruction of Carthage by the Romans 146 CLXth Olympiad 140 The Jugurthine War Ill CLXXth Olympiad 100 Cyren6 bequeathed to the Ro- mans by Ptolemy Appion 97 The Social or MarsicWar begins 91 Beginning of the Mithridatic War , 89 Syria reduced to a Roman Province 65 The Catiline Conspiracy de- tected 63 CLXXXth Olympiad 60 Pompey, Crassus, and Csesar, the first Triumvirate 59 First Invasion of Ccesar in Brit- ain 55 His second Invasion 54 The JEra. of Antioch com- mences 49 The second Triumvirate 43 Mauritania reduced to a Roman Province 33 End of the Commonwealth of Rome 31 CXCth Olympiad 20 A. D. Birth of our Savior, Decem- ber 25, four Years before the Common JEra 4 The End of the Passover 8 The Jews banished from Rome by Tiberius 19 CCth Olympiad 21 CCIst Olympiad 25 End of the Olympiads 26 Christ crucified 33 Conversion of St. Paul 36 The Name of Christians first given to the Followers of Christ ., 40 Caractacus brought in Chains to Rome 51 The first Persecution of the Christians 63 Jerusalem taken and destroyed by Titus 70 Destruction of Herculaneura and Pompeii by an Eruption of Vesuvius 79 Agricola's Invasion of Britain 80 The second Persecution of the Christians 95 Reduction of Dacia to a Roman Province 103 The third Persecution of the Christians 107 The fourth Persecution of the Christians 119 Jerusalem rebuilt by Adrian. . . 130 The Persecutions against the Christians stopped by Anto- ninus 152 War with the Marcomanni .... 169 The Saracens defeat the Romans 189 Fifth Persecution of the Chris- tians 201 The Goths receive an annual Tribute not to invade Rome . 222 The sixth Persecution of the Christians 235 The seventh Persecution against the Christians under Decius . 250 The eighth Persecution of the Christians 257 Period of the Thirty Tyrants . . 258 The ninth Persecution of the Christians 272 Partition of the Roman Empire between two Emperors and two Cffisars 292 Tenth Persecution of the-Chris- tians 302 Christianity tolerated 313 The first general Council as- sembled at Nice 325 The seat of Empire removed to Constantinople 329 The Empire divided between the three Sons of Constantine. .. 337 Council of Rimini held 359 The second general Council held at Constantinople 381 The final Departure of the Ro- mans from Britain 426 The third general Council held at Ephesus 431 The Saxons first come to Britain 448 The fourth general Council of Chalcedon 451 Foundation of Venice 452 Rome taken by Genseric 455 Paris the Capital of the French Dominions 510 Introduction of the Computa- tion of Time by the Christian JEra 516 IMPORTANT EVENTS. 371 Rome taken by Belisarius 539 Suppression of the Roman Consulship 542 The fifth general Council 555 Birth of Mohammed 571 Jerusalem taken by the Per- sians 616 The Alexandrian Library burned 640 Cyprus taken by the Saracens. 648 The sixth general or CEcumeni- cal Council of Constanti- nople 680 Spain conquered by the Sara- cens 713 Foundation of Bagdad 762 Charlemagne puts an End to the Kingdom of the Lom- bards 774 The seventh general Council, or second of Nice 787 New Empire of the West 800 The Saxon Heptarchy united, called England 828 Origin of the Russian Mon- archy 839 The Scots and Picts united un- der the Title of Scotland . .. 843 Oxford University founded . . •• 886 Cambridge University founded 915 Rise of the Republic of Pisa . . 931 Tiie Danes get Possession of England 1013 Rise of the Guelfs and Ghib- illins 1061 William the Conqueror begins Doomsday Book ■ ■ ■ ■ 1079 The first Crusade 10D6 Institution of the Knights Templars 1 118 The Canon Law introduced into England 1140 The second Crusade 1147 Institution of Teutonic Knights 1164 Conquest of Ireland by Henry II 1172 The third Crusade 1189 The fourth Crusade 1202 Establishment of the Inquisi- tion 1204 Magna Charta granted 1215 The Orders of St. Dominic and Francis instituted 1220 The fifth Crusade 1248 Deputies of Boroughs first sum- moned to Parliament in Eng- land 1264 Conquest of Wales by Ed- ward 1 1283 End of the Crusades 1291 The first Celebration of the Ju- bilee at Home : 1293 The Estat.lislnnen t of the Swiss Republics . 1307 A. D, Removal of the Seat of the Popes to Avignon 1308 The Institution of the Order of the Garter 1349 Return of the Popes to Rome. 1377 Foundation of the University of St. Andrew's in Scot- land 1411 Discovery of the Island of Ma- deira 1420 The Court of Session instituted in Scotland 1425 Rise of the Medici family 1431 Pragmatic Sanction in France 1439 Invention of Printing 1440 Establishment of the Author- ity of Lorenzo de Medici . . . 1478 Discovery of the Cape of Good Hope 1487 Discovery of Hispaniola 1492 Discovery of America 1492 Discovery of Brazil 1500 Discovery of Madagascar 1.507 League of Cambray 1509 Luther commences the Reform- ation 1517 First Voyage round the World 1522 Treaty of Madrid 1526 Peace of Cambray 1529 Reformation in England 1534 The Council of Trent, which continues eighteen Years. . . 1545 Treaty of Chateau Cambresis. 1559 The Massacre of St. Bartholo- mew. . . ; 157Q The Union of Utrecht 1579 Discovery of Virginia 1584 The Spanish Armada destroyed 1588 Foundation of Dublin Univer- sity 1591 Rebellion of Tyrone in Ireland 1598 English East India Company established 1600 Union of the Crowns of Eng- land and Scotland, 1603 Hudson's Bay discovered 1610 The first Baronets in England 1611 Foundation of Batavia 1621 The first English Settlement in the West Indies 1625 The French Academy instituted 1635 Rebellion in Ireland 1641 Civil War begins in England . 1642 First War between the Eng- lish and Dutch 1652 The Royal Society instituted. 1662 The Second Dutch War 1664 Great Plague in London 1665 Fire of London 16G6 Institution of the Academy of Sciences in France 1666 Carolina planted by the Eng- lish 1676 Habeas Corpus Act passed. . . . 1678 372 IMPORTANT EVENTS. A. O. Foundation of Petersburgh • ■ • 1704 Consummation of the Union between England and Scot- land 1706 Peace of Utrecht 1714 duadruple Alliance 1718 The Order of the Bath. insti- tuted 1725 Pragmatic Sanction 1732 Peace of Vienna 1738 Defensive Alliance between Great Britain and Prussia . . 1742 Alliance between Great Brit- ain and Russia 1743 Peace of Aix la-Chapelle 1748 Foundation of the Academy of Sciences at Stockholm 1750 The British Museum estab- lished 1753 Destruction of Lisbon by an Earthquake 1755 Q,uebec taken by general Wolfe 1759 Montreal and Canada taken by the British 1760 Foundation of the Royal Aca- demy of Arts in London 1768 Commencement of American War 1774 Declaration of American In- dependence 1776—1783 French Revolution 1787 Lewis XVI. beheaded 1793 Rebellion in Ireland 1798 Bonaparte First Consul 1799 Union of the IHsh and English Parliaments ^ • 1800 Insurrection in Dublin 1803 Bonaparte Emperor 1804 Abolition of the Slave Trade . 1806 Divorce of Bonaparte from Josephine 1809 Appointment of the Prince of Wales to the Regency 1811 The Burning of Moscow 1812 Bonaparte returns from Russia 1812 Creation of the Office of Vice Chancellor of Great Britain 1813 Abdication of Bonaparte 1814 A Jubilee Festival, in Celebra- tion of Peace, and the Cen- tenary of the House of Bruns- wick 1814 Congress at Vienna 1814 Treaty of Peace between Eng- land and America 1814 Bonaparte from Elba takes possession of Paris 1815 Battle of Waterloo 1815 Commencement of the Revolu- tion in Spain 1820 Death of George III 1820 Trial of Queen Caroline 1820 Death of Napoleon 1821 Commencement of the Greek Revolution 1821 Battle of Navarino 1827 Repeal of the Test Act 1828 Bill passed for the Emancipa- tion of Roman Catholics • . . 1829 INDEX Abbas the Great, 301. Abbasside Khalifs, the, 159. Abercrombie, Sir Ralph, 347. Aboo Beker, 141. 145. Aboo Taleeb, 140. Abraham, 24. Achaeans, 34. 81. Addicti, 65. Adolf, 122. Adrian VI., Pope, 264. ^Ethiopians, 15. Africa, 148. Agathocles, 76. Agesilaus, 45. Agrarian law, 66. Aix-la-Chapelle, peace of, 325. Alaric, 121. Alcazar-quivir, battle of, 286. Alcibiades, 43. Alexander the Great, 49. Alexander VI., Pope, 257. Alexander of Russia, 351. Alexandria, 49. 148. Alexius of Constantinople, 207. Alfonso X., the Wise, king of Cas- tile, 249. Alfonso of Portugal, 205. Alfred of England, 169. Ali, 144. Aljubarrota, battle of, 251. Allemanni, the, 131. Alliance, the grand, 311. Alliance, the quadruple, 317. Almohades, the, 205. Almoravites, 173. Alp Arslan, 189. Alva, Duke of, 280. America, discovery of, 251. Revolu- tionary War, 332. Amphictyonic Council, 48. Amroo, 143. Anastatius, 136. Andrew III. of Hungary, 244. Anglo-Saxons, the, 133. Angora, battle of, 246. Aone, queen of England, 311. Annibal, 78. Antalcidas, peace of, 45. Antiochus the Great, 80. Antigonus Gonatus, 51. Antonius, Marcus, 98. Antoninus, Marcus Aurelius, 106. Antoninus the Pious, 106. Appius Claudius, 68. Apulia, Duke of, 179. Arabia, 24. 173. Khalifs of, 362. Archon, creation of, 38. Ardeshir, 139. Aristides, 41. Armenia, 55. Aragon, Kings of, 363. Arsacides, 57. Artaxerxes I., 31. Artaxerxes II., 32. Asdrubal,78. Assassins, society of, 175. 213. Assyria, 20. Astolfo, 154. Astyages, 29. Athens, 37. 41. 46. 88. Attila, 123. Augsburg, recess of, 270. Augustus, title of, 112. Augustus (vid. Octavianus), 101. Aurelian, successor to Claudius, 111. Authar, king of the Lombards, 151. Avitus, 125. Ayesha, wife of Mohammed, 144. Azincourt, battle of, 238. B. Babylon, 20. Bactria, 19. Baliol of Scotland, 240. Bannockburn, battle of, 241. Basil I., dynasty of, 172. Barcelona, Count of, 177. Bfittle of Marathon, 31. 40. Cunaxa, 32. Platsea, 41. Leuctra, 46. Mantinea, 47. Chaeronea, 48. 88. Granicus, 49. Issus and Arbela, ib. Ipsus, 51. Allia, 71. >(Egatian Islands, 77. Trebia, 78. Trasimene, ib. Cannae, ib. Pharsalia, 96. Philippi, 99. Actium, 100. Chalons, 124. Ziilpich, 131. Beder, 142. Cadesia, 147. Xeres, 150. Tours, 151. Fontenoy, 162, 324 Hastings, 170. 374 Battle of Leguano, 197. Evesham, 203. Navas de Tolosa, 205. Ourique, ib. Wollstadt, 212. Meloria, 218. Moigarten, 224. Bosworth, 234. Crecy, 236 Poitiers, ib. Azincourt, 238. Bannockburn, 241. Nicopolis, 245. Varna, 246. Belgrade, 247. Angora, 248. Navarre te, 249. Aljubarrota, 251. Marignano, 263. Pavia, 264. Cerisoles, 268, Flodden, 270. Mohacs, 274. St. auintin, 275. Jarnac, 277. Coutras, 278. Ivry, ib. Alcazar-quivir, 286. Buitenfeld,291. 294. Liitzen, 292. Nordlingen, 292. 294. Naseby, 300. Seneffe,306. Boyne, 310. Aughrim, ib. Blenheim, 312. Ramillies, ib. Almanza, 313. Malplaquet, ib. Narva, 315. Pultowa, 316. Dettingen, 323. CuUoden, 325. Minden, 227. Neer-Winden, 342. Lodi, 344. Kivoli, ib. Marengo, 346. Hohentinden, ib. Trafalgar, 347. Austerlitz, ib. Jena, 348. Friedland, ib. Vimeiro, 349. Aspern, ib. Wagram, ib. Talavera, 350. Albuera, ib. Salamanca, ib. Borodino, 351. Leipzig, ib. Vittoria, ib. New-Orleans, 356. Waterloo, 352. INDEX. Becket, Thomas a, 202. Beder, battle of, 142. Belgrade, battle of, 247. Belisarius, 129. 137. Benedict XL, 214. Bithynia, 53. Blenheim, battle of, 312. Bonaparte, Napoleon, 344. Bonaparte, Joseph and Louis, 348. Bonaparte, Jerome, 348. Boniface VIII., Pope, 2^3, Bretigni, peace of, 237. Brissot, 341. Britain, 94. 105. Bruce, Robert, 240. Brutus, 98. Burgundians, 130. Burgundy, Duke of, 225. Byzantine empire, 135. Caepio, 86. Calmar, union of, 243. Cambray, league of, 258. Cambray, peace of, 266. Cambyses, 30. Camillus, 70. Campo Formio, peace of, 345 Canute (Knut), 170. Caracalla, 108. Carinus, 111. Carthage, 58. 77. 81. Carus, 111. Cassander, 51. Cassius, Spurius, 66. Cassius and Brutus, 98. Castile, kings of, 363. Catiline, 92. Catherine I. of Russia, 316. Catherine II., 330. Cato, 92. Caius Caligula, 102. Caesar, 92. 94. 98. Caesar, title of, 112. Chaldeans, 21. Chalons, battle of, 124. Charlemagne, 153. Charles Martel, 151. Charles I. of England, 299. Charles II. of England, 303. Charles Edward, the Pretender, 325. Charles V. and VI. of France, 227. 237. Charles VII. of France, 228. Charles VIII. of France, 229. Charles IX. of France, 276. Charles of Anjou, 220. Charles III. of Hungary, 297. Charles II. of Naples, 220. Charles XII. of Sweden, 315. Chateau Cambresis, peace of, 275. China, 16. Dynasties of, 336. Chingislihan, 211. INDEX. 875 Christ, 102. Christian II. of Denmark, 312. Christianity, corruption of, 114. Cicero, M. Tullius, 92. Cimbri, 85. Cincinnatus, 69. Clarendon, constitutions of, 202. Claudius, Emperor, 103. Clement III., Pope, 208. Clement V., Pope, 214. Clement VII., Pope, 265. 272. Clement XIII. and XIV., Popes, 329. Cleopatra, 58. 97. 100. Clinton, Sir Henry, 333. Clive, Colonel, 336. Clusium, battle of, 78. Coligni, 276. Columbus, Christopher, 251. Commodus, 107. Conon, 45. Conrad of Swabia, 198. Constantine the Great, 113. Constantine II., 116. Constantinople, 152. 158. 171. 207. Constantius, 113. Coutras, battle of, 278. Crassus, 57, 92. Crecy, battle of, 236. Crespi, peace of, 268. Critolaus, 82. Croesus, 30. Cromwell, 302. Crusades, 191. 208. Cyrus, 29. Dandolo, Henry, doge of Venice, 219. Danes, or Northmen, 165. 170. Darius Hystaspes, 30. Darius Codomanus, 32. 49. David, 27. David, son of Robert Bruce, 242. Daza, 113. Decemvirs, 67. Decius, 75. Decius, successor of Philip, 110. Dejoces, 29. Demetrius, 51. Denmark, 164. 243. 273. Kings of, 364. Demosthenes, 43. Dermot, M'Murrough, 204. Dettingen, battle of, 323. Dictatorship, 64. Dido, 58. Diocletian, 112. Dionysius of Syracuse, 59. 76. Domitian, 105. Domnina, 120. Dorian migration, 35. Draco, 38. Duillius, 77. Dumouriez, 342. Earth, 11. East, the, Emperors of, 362. East-Goths, 128. Edward I. of England, 230. 249. Edward II. and III. of England, 226. 230. 235. Edward IV. of England, 233. Edward V. of England, 233. Edward VI. of England, 270. Egbert of England, 169. Effvpt, 21. 57. 147. Kings of, 260. Elagabalus, 108. Elizabeth of England, 275. 281. Emperors of Rome, 101. 103. 105. England, 153. 158. 169. 186. 201. 230. 235. 270. 284. 298. 303. '.^10. 316. 325. Kings of, 365. Epaminondas, 46. Ephori, 37. Ephesus, 136. Europe, 254. F. Fabian gens, 69. Ferdinand I. of Aragon, 250. Feudal system, 156. Flavian family, 104. Flodden, battle of, 270. Florence, 217. France, 150. 166. 185. 200. 224. 235. 256. 275. 295. Kings of, 365. Francis I., 263. 268. Francis II. of France, 275. Franconia, house of, 185. Franks, the, 132. 156. Frederic I. (Barbarossa), 198. 209. Frederic II. of Germany, 199. Frederic, elector of Saxony, 263. Frederic II. of Prussia, 321. French Revolution, 341. Fronde, the, 302. Fulvia, wife of Antonius, 99. G. Gage, General, 332. Galba, 103. Gallienus, 110. Gasnevides, 176. Gauls, 70. 78. Genoa, 218. Germany, 153. 166. 185. 197. 222. 256. 266. 268. 287. 290. Emperors of, 365. Genseric, 123, Godfrey of Bouillon, 192. Gondebald, 131. Gordian III., 109. Gorm the Old, 164. Goths, 120. Gotho-Germans, 127. 376 INDEX. Gracchus, 84. Granada, conquest of, 250. Greece, 33. Gregory I., Pope, 151. Gregory II., Pope, 153. Gregory VII., Pope, 182. 186. Guelfs and Ghibillins, 217. Guise, Duke of, 276. Gustavus Adolphus, 291. Gustavus Vasa, 273. Gustavus III., 339. Hadrian, 106. Hardicanute, 170. Harmodius and Aristogeiton, 39. Harold, 170. Harold, Fair-hair, 164. Haroon-er-Rasheed, 160. Henry I. of England, 187. Henry II. of England, 200. 204. Henry III. of England, 203. Henry IV. of England, 231. 237. Henry V. and VI. of England, 232. 237. Henry VII. of England, 255. Henry VIII. of England, 261. 263. 270. Henry II. of France, 269. 275. Henry III. of France, 278. Henry IV. of France, 279. Henry I. (the Fowler) of Germany, 167. Henry II. and III. of Germany, 185. Henry IV. of Germany, 182. 185. Henry V. of Germany, 185. Henry VI. of Germany, 199. Henry VII. of Germany, 222. Heraclius, 138. Hernicians, 66. Herod, 57. Heruli, the, 126. Hildebrand, Archdeacon of Rome, 182. Hippias and Hipparchus, 39. Hippodrome, blue and green fac- tions of, 135. Holland, 300. Holy war, 48. Honorius, 122. Howe. General, 332. Hungary, 244. Hungarians, the, 163. Hunneric, 123. Huns, the, 119. Huss, the Reformer, 217. Hyder Ali, 337. I. Illyrians, 77. India, 18. 335. India, discovery of a passage to, 253, Innocent III., Pope, 193. Ireland, 204. Ireland, Union of, 346. Ismail, 260. Israel, 24. Kings of, 259. Italians, 87. Italy, 153. 166. 178. 181. 184. 193. 196. 213. 217. 220. 257. 271. 288. 298. Ivry, battle of, 278. James VI. of Scotland, 29^. James II. of England, 307. Janus, temple of, 101. Jarnac, battle of, 277. Jason of Pherae, 47. Jerome of Prague, 217; Jerusalem, 138. Jesus Christ, 102. Jesuits, 329. Jews, 104. 143. Joan of Arc, 239. Joanna I. and II. of Naples, 221. John of England, 202. John XXII., Pope, 215. John III., Don, of Portugal, 271. Judah, Kings of, 259. Judea, 56. Kings of, 260. Jugurtha, 85. Julian, 117. Julius II., Pope, 258. Justin, 136. Justin II., 137. Justinian, 136. K. Kelts, 71. Kerreem Khan of Persia, 338. Khadijah, wife of Mohamin^d, 140. Khaled, 143. Khalifs, 144. Khalifat at Bagdad, 212. Khosroo, 140. Knights ^t Rome, 86. Koran, 142. Laconia, 36. La Fayette, 333. 341. Latins, 74. Leo IX., Pope, 179. 183. Leo X., Pope, 262. Leonidas, 41. Lepidus, 98. Licinius, 72. Ligurians, 78. Lothaire, 162. Lothaire II., ib. Lombards, 130. 151. 184. Louis, VII. of France, 200. Louis VIII. of France, 201. Louis IX. of France, 201; Louis X. of France, 825. INDEX. 377 Louis XI. of Prance, 228. 257. Louis XII. of France, 256. 258. 263. Louis XIII. of France, 295. Louis XIV. of France, 302. 315. Louis XVI. of France, 339. Louis XVIII. of France, 352. Lucullus, 91. Luther. Dr. Martin, 262. Liitprand, 154. Liitzen, battle of, 292. 351. Lycurgus, 36. Lysimachus, 53. M. Macbeth, 239. Maccabees, 56. Macedonian war, 79. Macedon, 52. 80. Kings of, 359. Macrinus, 108. Moelius, Spurius, 68. Magna Charta, 203. Majorianus, 125. Mahmood of Ghizni, 176. Mamelukes, 207. Man, 13. Manfred, 220. Manlius, 72. Marcian, 136. Maria Theresa, 321. Marius, 88. Marlborough, Earl of, 311. Mary of England, 271. 275. Mary of Scotland, 284. Matthias, 244. Maxentius, 113. Maurice, 113. Maurice, successor to the Prince of Orange, 282. Maximianus, Herculius, 112. Maximilian of Germany, 256. Maximilian II., 287. Medes, 28. Melancthon, 266. Metellus, 86. Miltiades, 41. Mithridates VIL 87. Mohammed, 140. 148. Mongols, 211. Moorad (Amurath), 245. Moore, Sir John, 349, Moriscoes, expulsion of, 227. Moses, 24. Motassem, Khalif, 175. N. Nadir Shah, 320. Naples, 220. Kings of, 363. Narva, battle of, 315. Navarrete, battle of, 249. Navas de Tolosa, battle of, 205. Nebuchadnezzar, 20. Necker, minister of Louis XVI., 341. Nelson, Admiral, 345. Nero, Domitius, 103. Nerva, 105. Netherlands, 280. New-Orleans, battle of, 356. Nexi, 65. Ney, Marshal, 350. Nicholas, Pope, 179. Nicholas III., Pope, 220. Nicopolis, battle of, 245. Nimeguen, peace of, 306. Normans, 178. Northmen, or Danes, 164. 170. Numerian, 111. Octavius, consul, 88. Octavianus, 98. Odoacer, 126. 128. Ofella, 90. Omar, Khalif, 144. Ommiyades, the, 149. 163. Opimius, 85. Orchan, 245. Orleans, Duke of, 227. O'Ruarc of Breffney, 204. Othman, Khalif, 144. Otho, emperor of Rome, 103. Otho I., IL, III., of Germany, 168. Ottomans, the, 244. Emperors of, 366. Ourique, battle of, 205. Papal power, 178. 193. 213. Parthia, 57. Paulus iEmilius, 80. Paul III., Pope, 267. Pa via, battle of, 264. Peace of Antalcidas, 45. Verdun, 162. Constance, 197 Bretigni, 237. Cambray, 266. Crespi, 268. Passau, 270. Chateau Cambresis, 275. Westphalia, 295. Breda, 304. Aix-la-Chapeile, 304. 325. Nimeguen, 307. Utrecht, 314. Vienna, 319. Carlowitz, ib. Paris, 328. 352. Campo Formio, 344. Luneville, 346. Amiens, 347. Tilsit, 348. Pedro, of Portugal, 250. Peisistratus, 39. Pelopidas, 46. Peloponnesian war, 42. G2 378 INDEX. Pembroke, Earl of, surnamed Strong- bow, 204. Peninsular war, 350. Perdiccas, 50. Pergamus, Kings of, 260. Pericles, 42. Persia, 40. 138. 147. 206. 260. 301. 320. Kings of, 259. Persians, 28. Peter the Cruel, 249. Peter the Great, 315. Peter the Hermit, 191. Philip of Macedon, 47. Philip II., of France. 200. 209. Philip III., the Bold, 224. Philip IV., the Fair, 225. Philip, successor to Gordon III., 109. Philip II. of Spain, 274. Philip III. and IV. of Spain, 297. Philistines, 2l Phoenicians, 23. Pharsalia, battle of, 96. Pisa, 218. Plancus, 98. Plantagenets, the, 201. 230. Poland, 243. 256. 287. 330. Kings oif, 364. Pompeius, Cneius, 89. 91. Pontus, 54. Popes, the, 181, 192. 213. Popish plot, 307. Porsenna, 63. Portugal, 205. 258. 271. 286. 298. Kings of 363. Pragmatic Sanction, 318. Probus, 111. Protestants, origin of 266. Prussia, Kings of, 366. Ptolemy, 57. Ptolemy II. and III., 58. Publilius Philo, 75. Punic war, I., 76. II., 78. III., 80. Pyrenees, peace of 303. Pyrrhus, 75. Raymond of Toulouse, 191. 201. Reformation, 262. Regulus, 77. Republics, Italian, 217. Revolution, English, 308. Richard I. of England, 202. 209. Richard II. of England, 231. 237. 242. Richard III. of England, 233. Richelieu, Cardinal, 296. Robert, son of William the Con- queror, 187. Robert III. of Scotland, 242. Robespierre, 342. Rodolf of Habsburg, 222. Rogations, the Licinian, 72. Rome, 59. 69. 76. 83. 101. 112. 116. 122. 126. Kings, Emperors, K-^h- ops, and Popes of, 360. Russia, 170. 256. 301. 319. 326. 1W« of 364. Ryehouse plot, 307. Sabellian race, 87. Saladin, 199. 206. 210. Samnite war, 74. Samuel, 26. Sassanian Kings, 259, Saul, 27. Savoy, 257. 289. Scandinavia, 242. 256. Scipio, 78. Scotland, 239. Kings of, 365. Seleucus, 55. Selim I. of Turkey, 259. Selim II. of Turkey, 289. Selim III. of Turkey, 340. 349. Seljookians, 188. Sertorius, 90. Servius TuUius, 61. Severus, Alexander, 108. Severus, Septimius, 108. Shahpoor, king of Persia, 118. Sheeahs and Soonees, 145. Sicily, 220. Kings of, 363. Sigmund, 131. Sigismund, king of Hungary, 13L 244. 245. Silesian war, 321. Simon de Montfort, 203. Solomon, 27. Solon, 38. Spain, 82. 149. 188. 204. 249. 258. 271. 297. Kings of 363. Sparta, 36. 45. Spartacus, 91. Spurius Maelius, 68. Stephen, king of England, I87v Stolo, C. Licinius, 72. Suffavee, 259. House of, 3S4. Suleiman, 265. 266. S73. Sulla, 87. Sultan, title of 177. Suvaroir, 340. Switzerland, 224. 257. Sweden, 242. 273. Kings of 364. Syracuse, 76. Syria, 55. 145. Kings of 26® Syrian wars, 79. Tacitus, 111. Tadmor, 28. Tarik, 150. Tarquin, 63. Tarquinius, 61. Tatars, 247. Templars, 192. Test act, 307. Thebes, 46. Themistocles, 41. INDEX. 379 Theodoric, 128. Theodosius, 121. Theodosius II., 135. Thermopylee, 41. Thetes, the, 39. Thrace, 53. Tiberius, successor to Augustus, 102. Tiberius, successor to Justin II., 137. Timoor, 247. Tippoo, son to Hyder All, 337. Titus, son to Vespasian, 104. Tooloon, 176. Toghrul Beg, 188. Totila, 129. Trajan, 105. Tribunate at Rome, 66. Triumvirate, 99. Turkey, 259. 289. 301. 330. Tuscans, 63. U. Umbrian race, 87. Urban II., 191. urban VI., 215. Utrecht, peace of, 314. Valens, 118. Valentinian III., 123. Valerian, 110. Varna, battle of, 246. Vasa, Gustavus, of Sweden, 273. Veil, 70. Venice, 218. Verdun, treaty of, 162. Verving, treaty of, 280. Vespasian, 104. Virginia and Virginius, 68. Viriatus, 83. Vitellius, 104. Vortigern, 134. W. Wales, union of, 230. Wallace, William, 240. Washington, General, 332. Waterloo, battle of, 352. Wellington, Lord, 350. West-Goths in Spain, 134. Westphalia, peace of, 295. Wickliffe, the Reformer, 216. 255. 263. William I., or Conqueror, 186. William II. of England, 187. William III. of England, 308. William of Sicily, 197. Winfred, bishop of Mentz, 153. Xanthippus, 41. Xerxes. 31. Yacoob-ben-Leis, 174. Yezdejird, 139. Zeno, 128. Zuinglius, the Reformer, THS END. FOR EXAMINATION OF STUDENTS IN THE OUTLINES OP HISTORY. CHAPTER L INTRODUCTION. Of the Earth and its Physical Changes — page 11. When did the mightiest revolutions of the earth take place 1 What philosopher's discoveries have recently thrown light On the history of the changes in the earth's form 1 What were the commencement of vegetable and animal life ? Definition. — Acotyledenous. Without lobes or seminal leaves. Into what were they converted 1 What appeared in the successive periods 1 Of what did their remains form the materials '? What formed the next step of the progression 1 What state had the earth now attained 1 What did Nature now produce ] How were they destroyed 7 What races of animals now appeared 1 What animal appeared last? Was there a flood subsequent to the creation of man 1 Of Mfl/i— p. 13. What are the three principal stems of the human race 1 What does the first contain ] — the second 1 — the third 1 Can all tribes be easily brought under these divisions 1 Original Seat of Man — p. 13. What is the general opinion, founded on scripture, relating to the flood? How do some interpret the words of scripture concerning it? What do they infer? On what mountains do they suppose the first stem of the human race to have taken refuge 1 — the second stem or Mongols 1 — the third or Negro race 1 Are these questions of historical importance 1 382 auESTiONS. Original State of Man — p. 14. What was the first form of government ? — the first nour- ishment of man? Where was probably his first seat? What did man gradually become ? Whence arose monarchies T In what state does the historian propose to consider man 1 What is private and public felicity the result of? To what race must the history of the world mainly confine itself] Wiiy T jEthiopians — p. 15. Who are the ^Ethiopians'? For whom has this race fur- nished slaves in all ages of the world 1 What has modern travel discovered in the interior of Africa 1 Why are the revolutions of this country unknown 1 The Chinese — p. 16. In what respects do the Mongols rank above the JEthio- pians 1 What has rendered the Chinese nation an object of curiosity ] What is the extent of the Chinese empire 7 What has always been its form of government 1 Describe the coti- dition of China. In what respects has it always remained the same 1 What is said of their writing and literature ? What book of Con-fu-tsee or Confucius is mentioned 1 What marked feature presents itself in the Chinese character 1 Is there any system of religion in Con-fu-tsee's book"? How far back does the uncertain history of China extend 1 — the certain ? Whence did the founders of the state come ? Where were the first seats of civilization 1 How many dynasties have the Chinese had? Which is the most remarkable? When did it reign ? For what was it distinguished ? What ended it ? Whence did China first receive its religion ? — when ? What afterwards became the religion of the state ? What has always remained unaltered in China ? India — p. 18. To what race do the inhabitants of India belong? What do we find here ? When does India first appear in the his- tory of the world ? What is said of the antiquity of this na- tion ? What has the religion of India effected ? What is said of the system of castes ? What has always been the condition of India ? Of what is India an instance ? Who first conquered it? — who next? Who ruled it after Alex- ander? Who conquered it 120 years afler Alexander's death? To whom did his possessions west of the Indus fall ? What did Eucratides do? Who eventually overran India? What has been its condition for the last 1000 years? auESTioNS. 383 CHAPTER II. THE ANCIENT STATES OF CENTRAL AND WESTERN ASIA. Bactria — p. 19. Where did a mighty empire exist in remote ages 1 Where is Bactria ] What race spread over Iran T Where is Iran 1 What was the chief seat of the Indo-Persian race 1 Who ruled here ? What system of religion prevailed in Bactria 1 Who corrupted it 1 — who restored it 1 To whorp did it pass ? Who extinguished it in blood ] Where does it yet linger 1 What did it worship! What were its character and tendency T Babylon and Assyria — p. 20. In what history are the empires of Babylon and Assyria recognized ! Which was the more ancient 1 What was its capital ] What was the capital of Assyria 1 Where did the Babylonians dwell T What was their character 1 To what were they exposed ? Who built Babylon 1 Who enlarged it ! Who farther improved it ? Whq,t was the extent of his dominions ? What nations conquered Babylon in the reign of his son 1 Where was the Assyrian empire "? Is its his- tory well known "? Who were the Chaldeans'? Who rose to the highest rank among them ! How were they supported ] — how occupied T What is observed of their pretended wis- dom? Questions to he answered from Maps. Where was Babylon situated ? — Nineveh ] Where is the Tigris'? — the Euphrates'? Where Babylonia? — Assyria? — how bounded ? Egypt— ^. 21. Of what was Egypt the seat ? Whence did a branch of the Caucasian race come '? By what strait '? Where did it found an empire first '? — where next 1 — where lastly ] When was this ? What was the state of Egypt in Abraham's time ? What power did the priests exercise in this empire? What secured their independence ? Was the king independent of the priests? Of what does the history of Joseph inform us? What monarchs ruled over Egypt? What other powers sub- dued it ? What subsisted through every shock ? Describe the effects of the system of castes. How were the lower orders in Egypt employed ? What remains of their labors still exist? What is observed of the knowledge of Egypt? — of its monuments ? 384 auESTioNS. Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is the strait of Babelmandeb T What lies east of it 1 — what west 1 Where is Nubia ? — Upper Egypt 1 — Lower Egypt 1 What is the chief river of Egypt] Where is Memphis]— Thebes'? Phcenicia — p. 23. What race settled on the Persian Gulf] Where did it settle a colony] What were these colonists called] What was their chief city ] Where did they build Tyre ] For what were they celebrated ] What increased their trade ] What places did their ships visit] What was their chief colony ] What rendered them formidable ] What was the character of their merchants] — their religion and govern- ment ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is the Persian Gulf] Give the boundaries of Syria — Phoenicia. Where was Tyre ] — Sidon ] Which way from Tyre is Italv ]— Spain ]— Carthage ]— the iEgean sea ] Philistines — p. 23. For what are the Philistines celebrated ] Where did they dwell] How many cities and kings had they] How did they subsist] What did they worship ] Arabia — p. 24. What has always been the condition of the Arabs ] How are they governed] What animals chiefly support them] By what names are they called in scripture ] What did they worship ] Israelites — p. 24. Who was the founder of the nation of the Israelites ] In what country did he settle by God's command ] How was he rewarded ] Who brought the family to Egypt ] How long did they remain there ] Where did they dwell ] Why did the new dynasty of Egypt oppress them ] — how ] Relate the story of Moses. What caused him to flee to Arabia? How did he live there] Why did he return to Egypt] How did he compel the Egyptian monarch to let the Israelites de- part] How did Pharaoh perish] What change had taken place in the Israelites during their residence in Egypt ] Who became their king ] AVhat was the object of God's dealings with this people ] Where was the law given ] What was auESTioNs. 385 intrusted to their sacerdotal order ? How were they main- tained] What services did they render to the community'? How were they divided ] Which of these divisions possessed lands'? Why was trade discouraged among- the Israelites'? What feasts had they ] What is said of their constitution 1 How long- were the Israelites detained in the deserts of Ara- bia 1 — why ] Where did Moses then lead them '? Who suc- ceeded him ] What river did Joshua lead the Israelites over? What country did they conquer ] What did the people then dol How were they punished ? Who occasionally rose to lead them against their enemies'? What is said of the proph- ets'? Who exercised the sovereign power contrary to the intention of the lawgiver ? Who again divided the temporal from the spiritual power 1 What did the people demand of Samuel ] What were the Israelites now called '? For what were they now distinguished ? How was their faith cor- rupted ? What three sects sprang up among them '? Questions to be answered from Maps, Where is Arabia '? — -how bounded ] How is Palestine bounded '? Which way from Egypt is Arabia 1 — Palestine "? From what mountains does the Euphrates spring ? What countries lie between these mountains and Egypt? Where is Jerusalem"? Which way from Tyre"? Which way from Palestine is the Red Sea "? — Egypt 1 — India 1 — Africa"? Where is Palmyra "? Which way from Babylon '? — from the Euphra- tes "? Which way from Palestine is Babylon 1 — Persia "? Medes and Persians — p. 28. What has been the usual form of government in Western Asia '? What has been the general tenor of its history "? What power ruled over Asia '? Where is Medial Who was its first monarch ? Who took Nineveh "? Who drove out the Scythians from Asia 1 What states existed in Lesser Asia, or Asia Minor "? What dissolved them '? What thir- teen kingdoms rose from their ruins '? What began in the time of Gyges, king of Lydia '? With whom did Ardys war"? Who drove out the Cimmerians'? Who ruled Asia Minor "? Between whom did war arise ] Who mediated '? What was the result "? Where did the Persians dwell ? Who united them and conquered the Medes 1 What empire did he found'? What king of Lydia did he conquer ? How was he treated ? What country submitted to Cyrus in consequence of the de- feat of Croesus ? When Cyrus had conquered Babylonia, what people did he free ? What city did Cyrus found for his capital? — why? What was Cyrus's last expedition? — his 2H 386 auESTioNS. character? Who succeeded him'? What country did he conquer 1 How did he die 1 What was the condition of Persia under Darius Hystaspes 1 What city rebelled I Who reduced it 7 Who attempted to conquer Barce and Cyrene 1 — with what success? How did Darius succeed against the Scythians ? What islands and continent did he next attack ? Where was he defeated ? What prevented a second attempt against Greece ? What was Darius's character ? Who was Xerxes ? What country did he attack ? What strait did his army pass over ? Where was his fleet destroyed ? What was the consequence ? With whom did Xerxes leave his army? Whither did he fly ? What took place next year? How did Xerxes end his days? Whom did his assassins accuse of murdering him ? What was the consequence ? Who succeeded Xerxes? How did he punish Artabanus? Who quelled the rebellion in Egypt? — effectually? What was the surname and character of Artaxerxes ? Describe the state of Persia after his death ? In what reign did the Per- sian empire submit to Greece ? Who rebelled against Arta- xerxes 11. ? Where did the brothers meet m battle ? What was the result ? What did the admirable retreat of the Ten Thousand betray to Greece ? What Spartan king threatened the Persian monarchy ? How was the blow averted ? What was the greatest extent of the Persian empire? What was the condition of its subject states under Cyrus? What did Darius attempt ? What was the consequence ? Questions to be answered from Maps. How was Media bounded ? — Persia? Where is Asia Mi- nor? In what part of it is Cilicia? — Phrygia? — Lydia? Where is the Black Sea? Where is Babylonia? Where was Pasagarda ? — Persepolis ? — Susa ? Which way from Susa is Egypt ? On what part of the Assyrian coast are Barce and Cyrene ? — which way from the island of Crete ? — from Greece? Where is the Hellespont? — Scythia? — Thrace? Which way from Asia Minor is Greece? What divides them ? Where is Marathon ? — Salamis ? — Boeotia ? — Ionia ? — Cunaxa? — the Euxine Sea? — Sparta? What countries lie between the Indus and the Mediterranean ? Where is Thrace ? — Caucasus ? QUESTIONS. 387 CHAPTER III. GREECE. Early State of Greece — p. 33. What country is supposed once to have existed where the Mge&n sea is 1 Where was there a sea spread 1 What change took place ] To whom is the erection of the most ancient and massy remains of architecture in Greece as- cribed 1 Of what race were they 1 Whence did they enter Greece? Where are their chief remains 1 Who succeeded them 1 What countries did they overrun 1 Whence came they ] Did they originate the religion of Greece 1 Who came next and overcame the Pelasgians? What legends are referred to their contests 1 Which is the heroic age of Greece 1 What is the chief historic event of this time ? What were the character and chief actions of Minos 1 De- scribe the character and institutions of the Achseans 1 What was the religion of Greece ] What nations added tD its dei- ties and rites 1 Questions to be answered from MapSi Where is Greece 1 — the ^gean Sea ? — the Bosphorus ?— - Thessaly]— Thrace]— Peloponnesus]— Italy]— Troy? Which way from Greece is Egypt ? — Phoenicia? — Phrygia? — Crete? Dorian Migration — p. 35. Who was the head of the Achaean race ? When were chey disunited ? Who invaded Greece and overran Pelopon- nesus ? What three pi-ovinces became their property ? What islands did they settle ? Who retreated to Attica? Whither did a portion of them migrate and settle a country afterwards called Ionia ? Where had the ^Eolians before settled ? Who favored the settlement of the lonians ? What places did the Dorians, from Crete, take ? What were thus formed by these lonians, Dorians, and ^olians ? Questions to be answered from Maps. In what part of Greece is Doris ? In what part of Pelo- ponnesus is Arcadia? — Achaia or Achsea? — Laconia? — Mes- senia? — Argolis? Where is iEgina? In what part of Asia Minor is the Hermus ? — Cyzicus ? — Caria ? — Ionia ? — Cnidus? — Halicarnassus ? Where is Rhodes ? 888 QUESTIONS, Sparta — p. 36. Which was the first state of Greece at this period ] Who were at the head of it 1 Which was the first order in the state under the kings 1 — the second? — the lowest 7 Who was Lycurgus? Whither did he go to form his famous code of laws 'J What was the object of all Dorian legislation ) How did Lycurgus divide the lands'! — who tilled if? — who held the government! How were the Spartans and Periceci engaged T What error is noticed ] Who were the Gerusia or senate f What power had the people ? — the Helots ? Who were the Ephori ] What powers had they 1 Describe some of the institutions of Lycurgus. What was their tendency"? Questions to be answered from Maps. In what part of Peloponnesus is Laconial What is its chief city "? Which way from Sparta is Crete 1 — Athens ? — Argos 1 — Corinth ] — Messene 1 Of what state was Athens the capital city ] Which way from Athens is Megara ? Athens — p. 37. What cities rose into importance before Athens 1 Is the story of Cecrops a fable ? What prince first united the petty states of Attica T What proves his power small ] When did his family lose the throne 1 Who obtained the direction of affairs 1 Whom did his son Codrus expel? — whither"? When was an aristocracy established in Athens'? — in what form"? What is an Olympiad ? When did the first begin"? When did Draco promulgate his severe laws ? How were they regarded "? Who attempted twelve years after to be- come tyrant of Athens '? Who besieged him in the citadel "? What was the result ) What misfortunes followed ? What prophet purified the city, and prepared the way for Solon's system"? What was Solon's first object"? Of what did he deprive the nobility "? W^hat council did he establish'? What did he make the people swear "? Did his laws put an end to the internal broils'? Who were the Thetes? Where was Solon gone "? Who obtained the sovereign power "? Who expelled him "? Who restored and expelled him again ? What did Peisistratus eleven years afterwards "? Who succeeded him 1 Who murdered Hipparchus 1 Who drove Hippias into Asia '? What alterations did Cleisthenes make in the constitution "? What people attempted to restore the old aris- tocracy "? What was established "? auESTioNS. , 389 CHAPTER IV. GREECE, TO HER SUBVERSION BY THE MACEDONIANS, The Persian War — p. 40. What states now came into conflict? What cities revolted from Persia ? Who aided them f Who sent to Greece to demand homage? What islands gave it? What Persian generals were sent to subdue Greece ? Where were they defeated? Whom did the Athenians send against Naxos? How was his failure punished? Who raised Athens to a leading state? — how? What was the only hope of Atliens? What island was at war with Athens? What reconciled them, and united all the Grecian states ? What force did Xerxes lead into Greece ?— when ? What fleet had he? Where was he first opposed ?^— by whom ? What was the result ? Where had the Persian fleet suffered ? What city did the Persian army take and burn ? At what strait were they totally defeated? Whither did Xerxes fly? Whom did he leave in command ? With what force ? Where was he totally defeated next year ? Where was a Persian fleet defeated on, the same day ? How did Athens profit by these events ? Why was the command of the Grecian states trans- ferred to Athens? What arrangement was made with Athens? What befel Sparta? Whom did Athens assist against Sparta ? How did the rebellion end ? What did Athens ac- complish while at the height of her power ? Who were hel* great men at this period ? How were they treated ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is iEgina? Where is Laurium? Which way from Greece is Ionia ? What sea lies between them ? Where is Naxos ? Where is the Hellespont ? What does it sepa- rate? Where is Thessaly? — Thermopylae? — Artemisium? — Platffia ?— Mycale ?— Piraeus ?— Cyprus 1 The Peloponnesian War — p. 42. Who was now the leading man at Athens ? How did he seek power ? What was his character ? What islands did he reduce ? By what other means did he extend the powet' of Athens? What naval powers rivalled Athens? What caused a quarrel between them ? Which sought aid of Athens ? Who declared war with Athens ? Who invaded Attica? What other misfortunes befel Athens? What passed at Plataea? Who was Brasidas? — Nicias? — Demos- 2H2 390 auESTioNs. thenesl — Alcibiades? Where were Grecian colonies settled? Who was Gelon 1 Who induced the Athenians to interfere in the wars of Sicily 1 Who was sent thither 1 Why was he recalled 1 Whither did he flee 1 Who was sent to Sicily from Sparta 1 Who was sent by Athens against him 1 What was the result? What was now the condition of Athens'? Who fortified Decelia? By whose advice ? How long did the Athenians hold out 1 What happened at JEgos 1 What then ensued ? What did the Thebans and Corinthians pro- pose ] What was the answer of the victorious Lacedaemo- nians 1 How was the power of Athens cramped 1 Who governed her 1 How long had the Peloponnesian war con- tinued 1 What ended with it ? What kind of supremacy had Athens attained 1 Describe its effects. Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Euboea 1— Samos 1 — Corcyral— Corinth?— Sicily! — Syracuse? — Decelia? — the river ^gos? — Clazomenae? — C)rprus ?— Lemnos ? — Imbrus ? — Scyrus ? Lacedcemonian Dominion — p. 45. What state had now gained the empire of Greece ? How was it lost ? Who drove out her Thirty Tyrants from Athens ? How was the navy of Athens restored ? What did Sparta seek ? What foreign power exercised influence in Greece ? What had Xenophon's retreat of the 10,000 revealed ? How was Agesilaus employed ? What policy did Persia adopt ? What were the terms of the treaty of Antalcidas ? How was it viewed ? Thehan Dominion — p. 46. How had Sparta gained the city of Thebes ? What acts did Sparta perform while at the height of her power ? What was done by the democratic party at Thebes ? Who guided the Theban affairs ? — who joined them ? What towns were gained ? Who was recalled from Asia ? Who sent to the Persian king? What did he direct ? What states obeyed ? Who refused ? Where was the question decided by arms ? Who were defeated ? Who invaded Peloponnesus ? What people did he free ? What state joined Sparta ? To what court did all parties send ambassadors ? What was the re- sult? Who was Lycomedes? What did he attempt ? Who went to oppose his designs ? Which side prevailed ? In what battle ? What general fell ? auESTioNs. 391 Questions to he answered from Maps. In what part of Birotia is Thebes] Which way from Athens'! — from Sparta ] Where is Leuctra? Through what states must a land fojrce pass from Leuctra to Messenel Where is Arcadia 1 Which way from Laconia 1 — from Mes- senia? Where is Mantinea? Which way from Sparta'? — from Thebes ]— Macedonia 1— Phocis ]— Delphi ■?— Olynthus? — Chseronea ? Philip of Macedon — p. 47. What was now the situation of affairs in Greece 1 Who was Jason 1 What did he design ! What was the state of affairs in Thessaly 1 Who united with Jason 1 To what office was Jason chosen ] In what circumstances was he un- fortunate ] How did he perish ] What events followed ? What was the effect of the Holy War in Greece 1 Why did the Amphictyonic Council decree a fine upon the PhociansT What was done by the Phocians? What enabled them to carry on the ten years' Holy War] Whom did the Thessa- lians call in to their assistance ] What was the result? What Athenian orator opposed Philip's designs ] In what field did Philip gain the empire of Greece 1 Where did he call an assembly of the Greeks ] To what office did they appoint him ] How was he prevented from attempting the conquest of Asial CHAPTER V. ALEXANDER AND HIS SUCCESSORS. Alexander — p. 49. Who succeeded Philip of Macedon 1 — at what age J How did he terrify the Athenians and Thebans T What states north of Macedon did he conquer I What city rebelled, and was destroyed by him 1 What country was now at his devotion 1 What part of the world did he invade ] With what force 1 Where did he first defeat the Persians 1 — where next ? What city of Phoenicia did he then take 1 — what country next! What temple did he visit 1 Where did he then defeat Darius and his million of Asiatic soldiers ] With what force 1 What four great cities now fell to him 1 Who murdered Darius 1 How was he punished 1 — by whom 1 Where did Alexander then found cities] To what country did he then march] — ^how far? What obliged him to return ] By what route] Where 392 €IUESTIQNS. tind how did he die ? What was his great object ? How did he try to attain it 1 What frustrated it ] Questions to be answered from Maps. in what part of Asia Minor is the river Granicus? Which way from it is IssusT Through what countries did Alexan- der march from the Granicus to Issus 1 — from Issus to Tyre ? ^— from Tyre to Egypt V — from Egypt to Assyria 1 In what part of Assyria are Gaugamela and Arbela 1 On what river is Babylon 1 Where is Susa"? — Persepolis? — Ecbatana? — Bactria ? — Sogdiana 1 — Candahar ?— Caubul I — the Indus ? — the Persian Gulf? Division of Alexander'' s Dominions — p. 50. To what resolution did Alexander's generals come 1 How were his dominions distributed ? What design did Perdiccas form ? Where did he fall ? Who joined Macedon ? Who succeeded him ? What befel Olympias ? What did Anti- gonus effect ^ — Demetrius 7 What title did the governors take ? Where did Antig'onus fal! 1 How were Alexander's dominions now divided] Macedon — p. 52. What generals successively gained Macedon ? How were the Kelts or Celts driven from Greece? Who raised Mace- don from ruin ] Who succeeded him ] What is related of Antigonus Doson ? — of Philip ? — of Perseus ? To what was Macedon reduced ? What was its extent ? Greece — p. 52. What was the state of affairs in Greece? How had Sparta behaved ? To what was Sparta finally reduced ? What was the Achaean league ? Who joined it 1 Who formed a similar union 1 What gave the Romans the ascendency ? To what was Greece reduced ? Under what name ? Who was the last of their heroes 1 Thrace—'^. 53. Who gained Thrace ? Where did he fall ? Who gave up Thrace to the Romans 1 Bithynia — p. 53. Where is Bithynia 7 To whom was it tributary "? Who expelled the Macedonian governor? Who gave it up to the Romans ? QUESTIONS. 393 Pergamus — p. 54. Who established the king-dom of Pergamus ? Who was the first king 1 In whose reign was parchment invented T What did his dominions embrace T Who left the kingdom to the Romans'? Pontus — p. 54. Why is Pontus so called 1 Who surrendered it to Alex- ander ? Who was its greatest king-] What did he conquer I How long- did he resist the Roman power? ^How did he per- ish ? Who reduced it to a Roman province 1 Armenia — p. 55. To whom was Armenia successively subject? Who made it independent ? What did Tig-ranes effect ? What did he lose? What befel Tig-ranes II. ? In what was it finally ab- sorbed ? Syria — p. 55. Who was governor of Babylon after Alexander's death 1 What did he conquer? What was his character? How did Antiochus gain the name of Soter? What countries were lost by Antiochus II. ? What were the actions of Antiochus the Great? What were the terms of his treaty with Romel To what was the Syrian empire finally contracted ? To whom did it fall? Judea — p. 56. What were the Israelites called after their return from captivity? Whom did they successively obey? Who at- tempted to destroy their religion? Who resisted him? — with what success? How far did John Hyrcan us extend his do- minions? Who took the title of king? How did Pompey proceed? Whom did the Romans afterwards set over Judea 1 What happened at his son Herod's death ? What after Agrip- pa's death ? Parthia — p. 57. Where is Parthia ? To whom was it subject ? Who made it independent ? How far did his successors extend their do- minions? Whom did the Parthians successfully resist? What dynasty succeeded the Arscides ? Egypt— p. 57. Who governed Egypt after Alexander's death? When did he take the title of king ? How did he benefit the coun- 394 QUESTIONS. try 1 — What did his empire include ? What was the charac- ter of Ptolemy II. ?— of Ptolemy III.? — of his successors'? Who sought Caesar's protection ? What was her subsequent life and fate 1 To what was Egypt then reduced ] ' Carthage — p. 58. . Who founded Carthage T What was the character of its people 1 With what countries did they trade 1 Describe their constitution. What were the cause and event of their first war in Sicily 1 — the second and third 1 — the fourth ?— ^the fifth I— the sixth] Questions to he answered from Maps. What are the chief provmces of Asia Minor? Which way from Asia Minor is Macedon ? — Thrace? — Syria l— Media 1 ■ — Phcenicia'? Where is Ipsus? Which way from Alexandria isCyrene? — Cyprus'? — Ipsus ] How is Macedon bounded? Which way from it is Epirus? — Delphi? Where is Pro- pontis ? — iEtolia? — Acha?a or Achaia ? Where is Bithynia ? — Galatia ?^Prusias?— Mysia? — Mount Taurus ? — Lycaonia ? — Pontus ?— Thracian Chersonese ? — Tauric Chersonese ? — • Armenia? — Cappadocia? Which way from Armenia is Bac- tria ? — Syria ?— Persia ? — Palestine ?— Coelosyrea ? — Parthia ? Where is Raphia ? — Magnesia ? — Judea ? — Idumea ? Where is Parthia ? — Asia ? What are the countries situated between India and the Euphrates, and between the Arabian and Cas- pian seas ? Where is Libya ? Where is Carthage ? Which way from it is Rome ? — Syracuse ? — Greece ? — Gaul ?— Brit- ain ? — Spain ? — Phoenicia ? — Epirus ? In what part of Sicily is Syracuse? — Gela? — Leontini or Leontium? — Messina? CHAPTER VI. ROME, TILL THE PUNIC WARS. Rome, under Kings — p. 59. Where did the Pelasgians settle ? — the Siculans ? — the Aborigines? — the Latins? — the Sabines ? What nation rose from the union of all these ? What was their capital ? What is the fabulous account of the origin of Rome ? What is ob- served of the religion of Rome ? What was the first consti- tution of Rome ? What is the first undoubted historic fact of this period ? What were the deeds of Ancus? — of Tar- quinius? Who was his successor? What name did he take^ auESTioNs. 395 HLow did he immortalize his name ? Who succeeded him 1 What was his character ? What caused his expulsion, and ;he abolition of the royal authority ? How were the Romans )rig'inally divided 1 Who were the Populus J — the Clients'! —the Plebs ? What occasioned the diminution of the Patri- cians? How did Tarquinius I. increase them? What did lis successor ] Who were the Equites / How were the rest )f the plebeians divided 1 Which order could command the lecision of a question by their vote 1 Which order hindered ;he progress of the Roman power by their injustice ? What brm of government was adopted after the kings were ex- celled I To what extent had the Roman power risen under he kings? Questions to be answered from Maps. How is Italy bounded ? Where is Rome ? — the Tiber 1— !)stia 1 — Alba Longa 1 — Etruria ? What provinces lie be- ween Ostia and Terracina? Which way from Rome is 5icily ? — Sardinia ? — Africa ? Where is Veii ! — Clusium ? — ■ '^umssl — Lake Regillus? The Tuscans — War with Porsenna — p. 63. Where were the Etrurians settled ! Whence came they? kVhat was their constitution ? Who first aided tlie Tarquinii ? kVhat was the result? Who next? What was the result? kVho afterwards defeated the Etrurians ? Who next espoused he cause of Tarquinius ? What was the result? Dictator — Secession — Tribunes. Who checked the constitution of Servius? Who restored t in some measure? What right had the plebeians by the Valerian law? For what was the Dictatorship instituted? What was its power ? Who kept possession of the public iomains? What was the consequence to the plebeians? Who vere the creditors? What is meant by Nexi ? — Addicti? Where were debtors imprisoned ? What incident excited a ;umult? What did the senate order? Were they obeyed ? What did Servilius proclaim ? What was the eifect? After ;he victory, were the plebeians still oppressed ? What hap- pened next year ? After the dictator's army was disbanded, ivhat happened ? What part of the city was occupied by the egions ? — the plebeians ? — the patricians ? What nation was illied with the patricians ? What concessions did the patri- cians finally make to the plebeians ? What office was insti- tuted during this secession ? Give the history of the Tribunate. 396 QUESTIONS. Spurius Cassius and the Agrarian Law — p. 66. What third nation was allied with the Romans and Latins'? On what terms ] Who made this league ] What occasioned his death ? Describe the Roman Agrarian laws. The Decemvirs, and the Twelve Tables — p. 67. What was now the state of Rome 3 Who were appointed to make a code of laws'? Whither were they sent to collect information] How did they govern? What changes did they make ? Who were comprised in the Comitia ? What jurisdiction had they 1 Who succeeded the Decemvirs 1 What did they add to the laws? How did they govern"? What incident caused their downfall ? What was restored ? Spurius Melius — p. 68. Who were now made consuls? What laws did they carry "? What happened when their year expired? What privileges did the plebeians gain ? Who was Spurius Melius ? What occasioned his murder ? Wars anterior to the Gallic Invasion — p. 69. With what state was Rome at war in 272 ? Where is the Cremera? Who undertook the defence of a fort on its banks? What ensued ? Where did the Veientians now fix their camp"? What was the result? What nations were now at war? How did a Sabine war end ? What was the result of the next war with Veil? What was the character of Veii] How long did the siege of Veii in the next war last "? Who took the city ? For what was he exiled ? The Gauls — Capture of Rome — p. 70. Who were the Kelts or Celts? Describe the advance of the Gauls into Italy. How did the Romans violate the law of nations at Clusium ? How did the Gauls resent if? Where did they defeat the Romans ? What city did they take ? Who held out against them in the capital "? What diminished the numbers of the Gauls ? How were they induced to depart ? Rebuilding of the City—Manlius — p. 71. What was now proposed *? Who opposed it ■? What was done "? Who were now at war with Rome "? What was the result ■? What was the internal state of Rome ? Who was the friend of the people 1 What was his fate 1 Questions to be ansioered from Maps. Where is Gaul ? — Britain ? — Iberia? Which way is Gaul from Italy ? Where are the Alps ?— the Po '?— the Adriatic'? auESTioN&. 39T -the Apennines ! — Clusium ? — Allia ? — Volsci I — Umbria ^ -iEqui? The Licinian Rogations — p. T2. Who were tribunes in 378! What did they bring for- ward ? How were these rogations resisted by the senate T -how long ] Who was created dictator .' How did he recon- ile the orders] Were the rogations gained by the people] Vhat was the first of them ]— the second ] — the third ] — the )urth ] What new office was made ] How was the con- alar and praetorian power divided] Who was the first ple- eian consul ] Samnite War — p. 74. How was the period from 389 to 411 spent internally]— xternally ] Who were the Sanpites ] What territory and ity had they taken ] In whose behalf did the Romans and ue Goths re*-'.in'? Who succeeded Clovis'? What count rv did they reduce? Who were the most distinguished of th^'r successors'? What is said of the Mayors of the Palace] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is the Caspian Seal — the Danube'? — the. Save? Which way from Pannonia is Italy 1 Where is Pa via, the 2K 410 dUESTIONS. capital of the Lombards 1 Which way from Gaul is Bur- gundy 1 Where were the Allemanni ] Where is the Moselle 1 — the Maine 1 — Zulpich 1 — Soissons 1 — the Vienne ?— Septi- mania I — Orleans 1 — Paris 1 — Thuringia 1 — Aquitain 1 The Anglo-Saxons — p. 133. Who assailed the Britons when the Romans had left them 1 Who was their king 1 Whom did he engage to assist him 1 What ensued 7 Where were the Saxons settled ] Did they gain most of the southern part of Britain 1 What parts were left to the Britons] In what part of the continent did some of the Britons settle 1 What was it called 1 What is ob- served of the subsequent history and character of the Saxons 1 Questions to be answered from Maps. In what part of Britain is Caledonia 1 — England 1 — Corn- wall 1 — Wales'? Where is the island of Thanetl Where is Bretagne or Britany 1 Which way is Britain from Saxony 1 The West Goths in Spain — p. 134. How long were the Romans in conquering Spain 1 How long were the Goths 1 What is observed of their history 1 Who possessed the coasts of Spain 1 The Byzantine Empire — p. 135. Why was the Roman Empire in the East called Byzantine 1 What was its extent? Who were its enemies] What was the character of Arcadius ] — of Theodosius 11. ? Who threat- ened him ] Who protected him ] Who succeeded him ] Who was Marcian 1 What were his acts 1 Who succeeded him ] Who governed instead of Leo's grandson 1 What ensued 1 Who was Anastatius? Who gained the throne after his death 1 Who succeeded Justinian ? What distinguished his reign] Who was his ablest general] What conquests did he make ] What building did Justinian cause to be erected 1 Who was Justinian's successor] What offended Nfirsesi Hov/ was he revenged ] In whose favor did Justin il. abdi- cate ] How did he govern ] Who succeeded him ] What occasioned Maurice's death ] Who rebelled against Phocas ] Who was sent from Africa against him ] What ensued ] Who attacked Heraclius] What places were taken by Chosroes] On what condition was peace made ] How did Heraclius re-^ trieve the honor of the empire ] What conquests did he make ] Where were the Avars driven ] aUESTIONS. 411 Persia — p. 138. Who were the enemies of the Persians ? Who drove them out, and restored the Persian empire ] What changes did Ardeshir make 1 With whom did he war ] Who succeeded him, and captured Valerian ? Who g-ave Osrhcene and Nisi- bis the empire 1 What is related of Yezdejird ] — Bahram ? — Feroze 1 — Cobad ] — Chosroe ] — Hormuz 1 — Khosroo] — Siroesl Who was the last of the Sassanides J CHAPTER 11. THE TIMES OF MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. Mohammed — p. 140. Where was Mohammed born ? — when 1 Who seized his inheritance 1 What were his character and appearance 7 Who iriarried him 1 Who enriched him ] When did he begin to preach ? What was his leading doctrine .' How many con- verts did he make in three years ] How long did he preach in Mecca ? What relatives did he lose ] Who was his enemy 1 Where did he and Aboo Beker conceal themselves for three days \ Whither did they fly ] — when ? What people date from this era ] What is it called ? How was Mohammed received at Mecca ] What ensued ] What change took place in the character of Mohammed and his religion ? Where was his first battle 1 Describe it. How was the vic- tory gained ] Where was the second battle fought 1 With what result? What happened next ^ear 1 What tribes did Mohammed next conquer? What city did he next gain? Describe the battle of Honain. What country was now com- pletely gained by the Moslems? What country was next in- vaded ? How far did the prophet advance ? Why did he retire ? When did Mohammed die ? The First Khalifs—p. 144. Who succeeded Mohammed ? — when ? How far did Khaled conquer in Aboo Beker's reign ? Who succeeded him ? How did he die ? Who succeeded Omar ? What led to Ali's ele- vation ? Whom did he first conquer ? What enemies now opposed him? Where did they fight ? What was the result? How did Ali fall ? — when ? Who succeeded him ? What city became the capital of the khalifs ? Into what two sects are the Mahometans divided ? To which do the Persians be- long? What nations belong to the other sect? 4i2 auESTioNS. ' Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Arabia 1 — Mecca ? — Medina ? Which way from Arabia is Egypt? — Persia ? — Judea ] — Syria? Conquest of Syria — p. 145. What three countries had been conquered during- the pe- riod just passed over? Whom did Aboo Beker send to con- quer Syria? — when? What fortress was first taken ? Where did the troops of the khalif meet the Christians? What were their respective numbers ? What was the result of the battle ? What city was invested ? On what terms did the Christians of Damascus capitulate? Relate the story of the Syrian renegade. What city was taken by the Moslems next year ? When was the last great battle in Syria fought ? What was the result? What city was now invested ? To whom wag it surrendered ? What building did he found? — where? — when ? What cities were next taken ? What one was threat- ened? Questions to be ansioered from Maps. Where is the Jordan? — Bozra? — Aiznadin ? — Damascus 1 — Baalbek? — Mount Hermon? — the Sea of Tiberias? — Jeru- salem ? — Aleppo ? — ^Antioch ? Conquest of Persia — p. 147. itow many Moslems marched against Yezdejird III. of Persia ? — when ? Who commanded the Persians ? What was the result of the battle ? What country submitted ? What city was founded ? What was next conquered ? Where was the final effort of the Persians made ? What was the result ? What country submitted ? What was the fate of Yezdejird ? Conquest of Egypt — p. 147. When was the conquest of Egypt commenced ? What cities did Amroo take ? With how many Arabs ? What city was built on the spot where the Arabs encamped ? What treaty was made ? What city was next taken ? In how long time ? With what loss? Invasion of Africa — p. 148. Who advanced with 40,000 men from Egypt, towards the west ? — when ? What city was invested ? Who came to its relief? Who fought in the battle ? What occasioned its loss to the Christians? What town was taken? Where is it? aUESTIONS. 413 What countries were subjugated by the followers of Moham- med, in thirty-seven years after his first victory 1 Questions to be answered from Maps, Which way from Syria is Persia 1 Where is Bagdad 1 — Bassora ■? — Assyria 1 — Media 1 — Khorassan ? — the Oxus T Where is Gaza? In what part of Egypt is Memphis'? — Pe- lusium ? — Cairo 7 — Alexandria'? Where is Tunis "? — Sofatala? —Cyprus 1— Rhodes 1 The Ommiyades — p. 149. Who was Ali's son 1 How was he disposed of? Who was Ommiyah 1 How long did his dynasty last? Conquest of Africa — p. 149. Who entered Africa, and defeated an imperial army? What was the cause of this expedition 1 What is related of Akbeh 1 What city did he found 1 Who made the final conquest of Africa ? Who succeeded him ? Conquest of Spain — p. 149. What was the condition of the Gothic monarchy in Spain 1 Who ascended the throne 1 Who was Count Julian 1 With ' whom did he hold a traitorous correspondence 1 What was the consequence"? What happened the following spring"? Where did the Saracens and Christians fight the decisive battle ■? Which conquered "? What was Roderick's fate 3 To whom did all Spain submit 1 Who came to share his fame 1 What cities did Musa take? Whither did the Goths retreat"? Where did a remnant of them hold out 1 Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Toledo? — Andalusia? — Ceuta? — Algeziras? — Gibraltar?— Xeres?— the Guadaleta?— the Guadalquivir?— the Bay of Biscay ? — Asturias ? — Septimania ? — the Pyrenees? Invasion of France by the Arabs — p. 150. What had been the result of the two sieges of Constanti- nople by the Arabs? Who menaced France? What did the Moslems claim of Eudes ? What mountains did an Arabian army pass ? Where was it defeated ? How did the second succeed ? Who resisted this victorious army ? With what success? Who fell? Did the Saracens ever attempt the conquest of France after this ? What was Charles the son of Pepin called? 2K2 414 ClUESTIONS. Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Aquitainel — Aries? — Toulouse? — the Garonne? ■— the Rhone ? — Tours ? — Sens ? — Lyons ? — Besan(;on ? — Neustria ? — Poitiers ? France — p. 151. What was the internal state of France at this period ? Who possessed the power ? The Lombards — p. 151. What is said of Authar? — Agilulf? What did his queen effect ? What is said of Rother ?— Grimwald ?— Perthari ?— Liitprand? Constantinople — p. 152. Who succeeded Her aclius ? Who was his associate ? What is said of Constans ? When was Africa lost to the Byzantine empire ? What is said of Justinian II. ? — of Philippicus Bar- dan es ? — of Leo ? Germany — p. 153. Who enlightened and converted this Germans ? What city was his see ? W^hat did he found ? England— \i. 154. Who first preached the gospel in England ? Where wer6 their first efforts made in this country? What remarkable fact is noticed with respect to the Anglo-Saxon princes ? CHAPTER m. THE TIMES OF CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROON-ER-RASHEE6f Italy — p. 153. What emperor opposed the worship of images ? What did a council of Constantinople pronounce ? How was the edict received in Italy ? On what was the temporal power of the popes founded ? Who established it? Who menaced Rome? Who succeeded Liitprand and afterwards Retired ? Who suc- ceeded Hildebrand ? What did he demand ? Who assisted the pope against Astolfo? Who succeeded Astolfo? Who assisted the pope against him ? What territory did he thus acquire ? What dignity did pope Loo confer on Charlemagne? What countries acknowledged him '■ How was Italy gov- erned ? auESTioNs. 415 Empire of Charlemagne — p. 155. ¥o what kingdom was Allemania joined! Who was king of the Franks 1 Who was chief minister] How did he ac- quire the crown 1 What dynasty was thus ended '? What were Pepin's acts 1 Who succeeded him 1 How long did Carloman live 1 What kingdom did Charlemagne overturn 1 With whom did he wage a thirty years' war 1 Who aided them 1 What was the final result T What did Charlemagne effect in Spain 1 — in Germany 1 — in Pannonia 1 What was the whole extent of his empire 1 Who were his allies and friends ] What title did he receive from the popel — when] What was his dynasty called 1 To whom did he leave his empire } Feudal System — p. 156. How was the land divided in France ] How were the dis^ tricts governed 1 How were the lands distributed at the con- quest ] On what condition were they held 1 What were the terms of service] How were the Romans situated] Which stood higher, the Franks or Romans] Who was the taost extensive landholder in the realm ] To whom were portions of these lands frequently granted ] On what con- dition ] For how long a term ] When did the benefices be- come hereditary ] What is suh-infeudation ? Who en- croached on the royal dignity ] What did they make heredi- tary] What did they seek to appropriate to themselves] Whonl did they oppress ] What had been the condition of the free proprietors ] What duty did they owe the state ] What now became their condition ] Did they finally become Feudal vassals ] What were the obligations of a feudal vas- ■^al in war ] — in battle ] — on alienating or receiving his fief] • — on his lord's being captured, &c. ] What was the principal "obligation of the lord ] What was the condition of the church under the feudal system ] How did the abbeys gain the favor of the lords ] What were the lords bound to render in re- turn ] To what countries was the feudal system confined ] England — p. 158. What happened in England during this period ] Constantinople — p. 158. Who succeeded Leo ] What were the acts of Irene ] What did Nicephorus oppose ] Who succeeded him ] What was the character of Michael of Amorium ] Who were the ex- ternal enemies of the empire ] 416 auESTioNS The Abhasside Khalifs—p. 159. What family was esteemed best entitled to the throne of the khalifs ] Who were the Fatemites 1 What was their character] Who were the Abbassides? Where were they 1 Who unfurled the white banner ] Who the black? — where 1 What befel Ibrahim 1 Who was he 1 Who opposed his brother Saffa ? — where 1 What was the result 1 Where did Mervan II. fall ] Who were now slaughtered 1 Who es- caped to Africa 1 To what country was he invited 1 What success attended him 1 Where did the Ommiyades reign 1 How long 1 Who succeeded SafFa ] What city did he found 1 — where 1 How long was it the capital of the khalifs 7 Where did his arms succeed 1 Where did they fail 1 With whom did Mohadi, his successor, wage war '] What country did his son invade 1 With what force 1 Who succeeded to the throne of the khalifs in 781 1 What were the military actions of this prince ] For what is he renowned 1 What disgraces his memory? For what was his successor Al- Mamoon celebrated 1 What had been the state of literature under the first khalifs 1 What khalifs first encouraged it 1 What was done by Al-Mamoon 1 What works were trans- lated by his command 1 What other princes vied with the khalifs of Bagdad in encouraging literature and science? What proceeded from their schools ] — when ? What con- quests did Al-Mamoon make ? Whom did he drive from Al- exandria ] Where did these pirates settle 1 Hov^^ long did they harass the eastern empire ] What incident led to the invasion of Sicily? Who came to reinforce the Arabs in Sicily ] What part of the island was subdued 1 What was their capital 1 How lonj; before Syracuse submitted to the Arabs 1 What mischief was done by them 1 What city of Italy was attacked by the Arabs 1 Vv'hat allies did the city gain ? What was the result ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Which way from Persia is Khorassan ? Which way from Mecca is Damascus ] — Cufa 1 Where is Cordova ? — Bagdad ? — Crete 1 — Syracuse ? — Palermo ? — Gaieta 1 — Naples ? — Salerno 7 QUESTIONS. 417 CHAPTER IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES OF THE EAST AND WEST. Empire of Charlemagne- — p. 162. Who succeeded Charlemag-ne 1 Who rebelled ag-ainst Lewis 1 What was the consequence 1 What occasioned Lewis's deposition ] In the partition of the empire, what did Lothaire obtain 1 — Louis ! — Charles the Bald 1 — Pepin ] How were Lothaire's dominions divided on his retirement ? What territories did the king- of Germany gain ] — the king of France 1 Who succeeded Charles the Bald ? What is said of Bosori'? — of Charles the Fat? Who was the last emperor of the Franks 1 What is said of Arnulf 1— of Eudes ]— of Charles the Simple ? — of Burgundy ? — of Italy 1 Who were the external enemies of the empire 1 The Hungarians — p. 163. Who were the Hungarians 1 Whence came they ? What country did they take 1 What were they called by them-' selves] — by other nations 1 What sovereign did they choose 1 Who rebelled against Arnulf, king of Germany 7 Who aided him against them 1 How did these allies behave after Arnulfs death 1 What conquests did they make in Germany 1 — in France T — in Italy 1 From Italy^ in what direction did their conquests extend 1 What saved Constantinople 1 How long did their ravages last ] Who repelled them 1 Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Auxerre ? — Burgundy 1 — Alsatia 1 — Lorraine 7^ Provence ]— Lyons 1 — Geneva 1 In what part of Italy is Spoletol— Friuli?— Reggiol— the Brenta ?— Pavia ] Where are the Ural mountains] Where is Finland? — Hungary] — ^ Transylvania ] — Moravia ] — Swabia ] — Franconia ] — Augs- burg ] — Bremen ] — Bulgaria ] The Northmen— p. 164. Where was the primitive seat of the Goths] From what country did they expel the Finns] Where did they atler- wards establish themselves ] What was their cliaracter and condition when in Scandinavia ] What monarchies were established ] Where did some of their petty chiefs (reguli) establish themselves] What coasts did they plunder] When did they appear in England and France ] Who repelled them from Paris] What province did Charles the Simple give 418 aUESTIONS. them 1 What part of England did Alfred give them 1 What were they there called 1 What nation employed them in the East 1 What name did they take there 1 Who established a dynasty there 1 How long did it last 1 Whose service did the Varangians next enter 1 Questions to be answered from Maps, Where is Scandinavia ? — Denmark ] — Norway? — the Feroe Isles 1 — the Orkneys 1 — Shetland ] — Normandy 1 — Northum- brial France — p. 166. How was France divided ] What is said of Louis TV. and Lothaire ? — of Hugh Capet ? When was he crowned ? What dynasty expired then ] How did Hugh Capet secure his suc- cessors 1 Germany — House of Saxony — p. 166. How were the Germans divided ] Who was chosen to rule themi Who succeeded him] How did he prepare to de- fend his kingdom ] Whom did he repel ? Who succeeded him ] On whom did he bestow Saxony 1 Whom did he assist against Berenger ? Whom did he marry 1 Who next called him to Italy 1 Who crowned him "? Where was he after- wards crowned 1 What ensued 1 Whom did he depose 1 What was the result of his third visit to RomeT What country did the Hungarians invade ] What was the result 1 Who succeeded Otho 1. 1 What did he acquire from Nicepho- rus Phocas ] What was Otho's character 1 What was the character of Otho III. 7- What city did he take from the rebels 1 Who succeeded him ] What ended with Henry II. 1 Italy— p. 168. How was Italy divided 1 What is said of Berenger of Friuli ] Who defeated and superseded him 1 Who deposed Rudolf? Who succeeded Hugh 7 Who deposed Berenger, and gained the kingdom of Italy 1 What is said of the popes of this period 1 Where were the Normans established 1 — the Saracens ? England — p. 169. Who ravaged England at this period 1 What is observed of Alfred '? Where did he allow the Danes to settle 1 What improvements did he make 1 What is said of his successors 1 How were the Danes kept off, after Edgar's time 1 What was done in the reign of Ethelred II. 1 What was the con- QUESTIONS. 419 lequence 1 What is said of Canute 1 — of Edward the Con- fessor 1 What practice had been introduced ) What was ts effect 1 What was done by Godwin ] Who chose Harold 1 iVho opposed him 1 Whom did he subdue 1 Who conquered lim, and became king of England ] Russia — p. 170. When did Russia become known to Europe? How did hey at first appear 7 What city did their fleets assail 1 What jountries did their armies invade J W^ho drove them out of he empire) What is said of Olga?— of Vladimir T What mprovements did they make 1 What is said of Yaroslof 1 — )f Anna ] Constantinople — p. 171. What is said of Theophilus ?— of Theodora 1— of BasiliusI —Led] — Constantine? — Nicephorus Phocas? — John ZimiscesI —Basin — Romanus? — of his empress? — Theodora? What mded with her ? After how long a continuance ? What is said of Michael VI. ? — Isaac Comnenus ? — Constantino Du- jas ? — Romanus Diogenes ? — Michael VII. ? — Nichephorus Botoniates ? What dynasty succeeded ? Decline of the Arabian Empire — Africa — p. 172. Who revolted in the reign of Haroon-er-Rasheed ? Who 3uilt Fez ? Who founded Tunis ? Where did Mahadee Obeid A.llah found a state ? Whom did he conquer ? Who founded Cairo? What conquests did he make besides that of Egypt? How long did his dynasty last? What did he give up to Voossef Betkin ? How long did Zeivis's dynasty last ? Who were the Almoravites ? With whom did they wage war ? What city did Beker found ? Decline of the Arabian Empire — Asia — p. 173. Who was Taher ? Where did he found an independent state ? Who overthrew the Taherite dynasty ? What is said of Yakoob-ben-Leis ? What country did he gain ? Who de- feated his son ? What countries did the Samanians possess ? Who held Mesopotamia ? How long ? Who led the Dilemee ? Whom did Ali Buyah defeat ? What countries did he pos- sess ? What is said of Ahmed ?— of Ali ?— of Azed ? Causes of the Decline of the Power of the Khalifs — p. 175. What was the cause of the dissolution of the empire of the Arabs? How did it operate ? Who opposed the Abbassides? What means did the Fatemite khalifs employ against the 420 QUESTIONS. Abbassides ] Who were the Ismailites] — the Assassins'? — What other cause weakened the Abbassides ? What plan did Motassem adopt 1 Where did he obtain recruits for his body- guard 1 What was their number ] Whom did they murder 1 What did they force Mosteyoo to dol How did they treat their sovereigns ] What is said of Mohtadi Billah 1 — of Mok- tader ! — of Tooloon 1 — of Ahmed 1 — of Cotr-en-neda ] — of Haroon] What ended with himl Who finally rendered Egypt independent of the khalifs 1 The Gasnevides — p. 176. What is said of Sebuktagee ?— of Mahmood ? What title did he receive ] From whom ? What country did he con- quer and plunder 1 Spain — p. 177. What diminished the power of the Arabian dynasty in Spain ] Who founded a Christian kingdom in Spain f Where was his capital] What now commenced] Where did Fer- nando Gonzales found a country 7 What new kingdom was it formed into 1 — when ] Who founded the kingdom of Na-? varre, and gained Catalonia? Who united the Christian states of Spain 1 Into what two kingdoms did he divide them 1 Who became independent of Charlemagne? Who obtained Aragon 1 Whom did these sovereigns oppose 1 Who came to the assistance of the Mohammedan emirs? What part of Spain did he acquire ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Fez ? Which way from Egypt ? — from Arabia 1 Where is Tunis? — Mahadiah ? Which way from Alexandria is Cairo ? Where is Tangiers ? — Morocco ? — Gibraltar ? — '-. Algeziras ? — Transoxiana ? — Bath ? — Khorassan ? — Seistan 1 — Mosul ? — Aleppo ? — Irah ? In what part of Spain is Leon ? — Burgos ? — Castile ? — Aragon ? — Barcelona ? Where is Na-s varre ? CHAPTER V. INCREASE OF THE PAPAL POWER. Italy — The Normans — p. 178. For what were the Normans distinguished? Who invited them to Italy? For what purpose? Were they successful against the Greeks ? Where did they settle ? Who was their auESTioNs. 421 commahder 1 How long- had the Saracens held Sicily ? What was its condition ] What occasioned the Normans' invading Sicily] What was their success] How were they treated 1 How did they reveng-e themselves ] What towns of Italy were left to their enemies ] How did they divide their con- quests ] Who was the first count of Apulia ] What made the Normans hated 1 What oJfTer of the emperor did they re- ject ] Who leagued against them 1 What force could they muster? What offer was made them] Did they accept it] Where did they defeat and capture the pope ] What ensued ] How many sons had Tancred de Hauteville ] How many went to Italy] What is said of Robert] — of his three elder brothers? To what rank was Robert chosen] What con- quests did he make] What did he entitle himself] Who were his enemies ] What did he accomplish in twenty years] Who conquered Sicily ] How did he govern it ] At what did Robert aim ] Whose cause did he espouse ] Where was an army assembled ] Where did Robert land ] With what force ] What place was besieged ] What disasters ensued ] Who came to the relief of Durazzo] With what allies ] Who gave battle] What was the result] 'How was Durazzo taken ] To what country did Robert advance ] What re- called him to Italy ] Whom did he leave in command ] What place did Bohemond besiege] Who drove him back to Italy] Meanwhile what had Henry king of Germany done] What force did Robert, on his return from the East, muster against him ] What was the result ] What did Robert accomplish in three years] For what did Robert prepare] Who op- posed him ] Where did he land ] Where did he defeat the allied navy ] Where did Robert die ] What ensued ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Apulia] — Naples] — A versa] — Bari] — Otrantol — Brundusium ]— Tarentum ]—Melfi]— Calabria]— Civitella] — Reggio ] — Cosenza ] — Messina] — Salerno] — Venice] — Du- razzo ] Which way from Italy is Epirus ] Which way from Epirus is Thessaly ] Where is Corfu ] — Cephalonia ] Italy— The Popes— p. 181. What is said of the popes ] Who were their allies ] What were their great objects ] What was established in the pon- tificate of Nicholas II. ] What is said of Hildebrand ] What title did he take on becoming pope ] What was the charac- ter of Henry IV. ] On what grounds did Gregory VII. op- pose him] How did he exasperate Henry] What measures did Henry take ] What measures did Gregory take 1 To 422 auESTioNS. what necessity was Henry reduced 1 What was the effect of this pusillanimous stepl How did Henry retrieve if] How did he revenge himself] Who now opposed him ? How did Henry V. proceed 1 How was the matter settled ] What was the next measure of the popes ? What did Leo IX. dol Who took part with him ) How did the practice of celibacy advance the power of the popes] What arms were employed by the popes? What was the effect of excommunication ] What was its extent] What v/as the effect of interdict? Did this affect whole kingdoms when employed against the sovereign ? — how ] Italy — The Lombard Cities — p. 184. How were the cities in the north of Italy governed ! What was the state of the country] How did these causes affect the cities] What was the policy of the cities ? What were their blemishes I Germany — House of Franconia — p. 185. When did the house of Saxony become extinct ] Who succeeded ] What country was gained ] What is said of Henry III. ] — of Henry IV. ] Who excommunicated Henry IV. and was deposed by him] What rival of Henry was slain in battle ] How long did he wage war ] What is said of Henry V. ] What ended with him ] France — p. 185. Who succeeded Hugh Capet ] What is said of Henry I. ] — of Philip L ] — of Louis VI. ] What began in his reign ] —how] England — p. 186. Who became king of England after the battle of Hastings (1066) ] Where was he crowned ] How did he reward his followers] Whither did he return ] What ensued ] What was done on his return] Whither did the English nobles flee] What were in the hands of the Normans] Who aided the people to rebel ] What was the result ] What part of England was laid waste ] How many perished ] How did William the Conqueror divide the kingdom ] What occa- sioned the mingled dialect of the English ] How did the tyranny of the Norman monarchs increase the liberty of the common people of England] What arose hence] How many sons did William the Conqueror leave ] Who became king of England ] — who Duke of Normandy ] What is said of Robert] How did William II. (Rufus) of England die? Who aUESTlONS. 423 succeeded him 1 Whom did Henry I. marry 1 Who con- tested his claim to the English throne 7 What was the re- sult 1 What did Henry contest with the popes ? To whom did he leave his dominions ] Who was Stephen ? How did he proceed on the death of his benefactor Henry I. ? Who urged the claims of Matilda against him f How long were they contested ] How was the matter compromised 'i Questions to be answered from. Maps. Where is England ] In what part of it is Hampshire ? What part of it lies between the Tees and the Humberl Where is Westminster 1 Which way from England is Nor- mandy 1 Spain— Tp. 188. What had passed in Spain 1 What had Alfonso VI. df Castile gained ]— Alfonso I. of Aragon ? Constantinople — p. 188. Against whom did Alexius Comnenus defend the eastern empire 1 What is said of John 7— of Manuel ? The Seljookians — p. 188. Where were the Turks originally settled 1 Which way did they advance 7 Who encouraged them 1 Where did they make inroads "] Whom did they defeat at Zendecan 1 Who was elected king of the Turks 1 What conquests did he make ? What appointment did he receive from the khalif T Who opposed them in Media 1 Where did their ambassadors appear 3 How many Christians did the Turkish cavalry mas- sacre 1 What did Toghrul restore to the khalif? Whose daughter did he marry ] Who succeeded him 1 What con- quests did Alp Arslan make 1 Who opposed him ? How far did Romanus drive the Turks 1 What then befel him 7 How was he treated 1 How did Alp Arslan die ] Who succeeded him 1 What was his character 1 How far did his dominions extendi What did he encourage 1 Who was his vizier 1 Who destroyed both Nizain and Malek] What ensued? Who was the last great moriai-ch of the Seljookians 1 How jfar did his dominions extend 1 What is said of Kootelmish 1 — Mansoor 1 — Suleiman 1 What country did Suleiman con- quer 1 Where was his capital 1 What cities did the Turks gain 1 What is said of Jerusalem 1 Who had encouraged the Christian pilgrims who resorted to Jerusalem? — why? Did the Fatemites of Egypt observe the same policy? Who was Sat Atsiz ? What city of Syria did he take ? To what 424 auESTioNS. country did he then march 1 Who drove him out 1 Whb now conquered Syria and Palestine 3 What was the conse- quence 1 First Crusade^— ^. 191. Of what did the pilgrims complain 1 What was done by Alexius and Gregory VII. 1 What did Peter the Hermit pro- pose 1 What was done at the council of Placentia 1 — at Cler- mont] What was done to encourage the crusade? What leaders united ] How many straggled on before the army ? Who led them 1 Through what countries 1 How did they fare ] Who followed ] Into what city 1 Who passed them over into Asia? How many besieged Nice ] With what suc- cess 1 What did they next take 1 Who was made prince of Antioch ? What was done by Baldwin] Who was AfdelT What did Afdel offer the Crusaders? Was his offer accepted ? What ensued ? To what number had the Crusaders been re- duced ? What is said of Godfrey of Bouillon ? What or- ders were established ? Why were the Templars so called ? What did they vow? What third order was added to those two, i. e. the knights of St. John or Hospitallers and the Templars ? What was now the extent and condition of the Christian empire ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is the Oxus? — the Jaxartes? — Media? — Armenia? ^ — Georgia ? — Phrygia ? — Cashgar ? — Antioch ? — Lesser Asia? — Bithynia ?— Nice ?— Nubia ? Where is Placentia ?— Cler- mont? Which way from France is Hungary? From Hun- gary to Bulgaria ? From Bulgaria to Constantinople ? From Nice to Antioch ? From Antioch to Edessa ? From Antioch to Jerusalem ? CHAPTER VI. THE PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. Italy— The Popes— Tp. 193. To what principle did the popes adhere ? How did they treat the emperors ? What did Adrian claim ? Who opposed the popes ? Who carried the pretensions of the popes the highest? What did he acquire? What did he establish? Were the dominions of the popes really extensive ? What had the countess Matilda granted them ? Did the emperors respect these grants? How did Innocent seek to establish QUESTIONS. 425 his claim to these states'? To whom did he grant Ancona? Whom did he force to swear allegiance to him 1 What did the holy see become ] What did Innocent put forth? — how? What kings submitted to him ] What was the pope become 1 What were his weapons'? Relate the case of Philip Augus- tus of France. Had the national churches resisted the papal power '? What measures did the popes take to force their submission'? Who were stationed in every kingdom '? On whom were taxes levied "? What right did the popes assume 1 What was the first basis of the papal power '?— ^the second "? —the third '?— the fourth "? Italy — The Lombard Cities — p. 196-. What cities acknowledged the superiority of the emperor lo the pope'? What emperor had reduced them to obedience'? What did he forbid at the diet of Roncaglia ] What magis- trate was appointed 1 Who resisted the emperor 1 What was the result ■? How did the emperor now proceed *? What was formed '? What drove him out of Italy ? Where was he afterwards defeated ] What was secured by the peace of Constance ] Itali/ — Naples and Sicily — p. 197. What family governed Sicily and Naples '? Whom did the nobles raise to the throne 1 Who succeeded him "? Who captured and ill-treat6d William III. ? Who became guardian to Frederic II. ? Germany — Sicabian Line — p. 197. What ended with Henry V. ^ Who succeeded him "? Whoni did he oppose ? What were the dominions of Henry the Proud ] Who succeeded Lothaire ? How did Conrad de- prive Henry of his possessions ? What factions date from this period ] Describe their origin. Who were the parti- sans of the emperor 1 — who of the pope "? Who succeeded Conrad III. ] What was Frederic Barbarossa's character '? What cities maintained their independence against him '? What pope did he favor ? Who opposed hini '? What hap- pened after the battle of Legnano "? Who was Henry the Lion ? What did he obtain from Conrad ? — from Frederic '? How did he offend Frederic ] How was he punished "? How was he afterwards treated "? What happened fifty years after *? From whom are the present dukes of Brunswick descended'? What is their family name '? What occasioned a crusade "? Who took the cross "? What befel him '? W^o succeeded kim ? How was his reign occupied ? Who siicceeded Henry 2 L 2 4*26 aUESTIONS. VII.'? At what age? Who got himself elected? Who opposed him ? What ensued? Who returned after Philip's assassination 1 What did he resign to the holy see 1 Who now supported Frederic II. 1 When did Otho die ] Where did he pass the greater part of his reign 1 About what did he quarrel with the popes ? Whither did he go in perform- ance of his vow? What did he there accomplish ? How was the remainder of his reign passed ? Was he successful ? Who were elected in opposition to him by the German bish- ops ? Where was he afterwards defeated ? Where did he die ? — when ? Who disputed the succession after his death ? How long an interregnum happened ? What leagues were formed during this period ? France— p. 200. Who undertook a crusade in 1147 ? Were they successful ? Whom did Louis divorce ? Who married her ? What were the acts of Philip II. ? To what crown did Louis VIII. pre- tend ? — when ? With what success ? With whom did he wage war by the pope's command ? Who succeeded him ? At what age ? Who was regent ? What were the noble acts of St. Louis ? What code did he form ? What were his faults ? Where did he die ? England — The Plantagenets — p. 201. What did Henry II. inherit by his mother ? — by his wife ? What was his character ? How did he give the feudal sys- tem a blow ? — how the papal power ? Who opposed him ? What was his fate ? What did he effect in Ireland ? How did he pass the better part of his reign ? What character is given of him ? Who succeeded him ? How was his reign occupied ? What happened on his return ? How was he released ? Where did he fall ? What were his character and name ? Who succeeded Richard I. ? Whose claims were opposed to John's ? Who supported them ? How did John put an end to them ? What territories did he lose in consequence of this act? With whom did he now quarrel? How was the matter settled ? How did his subjects profit by this? What was John compelled to sign at Runnymede? Did he attempt to annul it ? What was done by the barons ? What ended their rebellion ? What was John's character ? Who succeeded him ? At what age ? Who was regent ? What was the character of Henry III. ?— his acts ? What was done by the barons? Who raised the nobles against Henry ? What was the consequence ? How did the twenty- four barons behave ? Who opposed them ? Where was a auEstioNS. 427 battle fought? What ensued 1 Who finally defeated and slew Leicester 1 How lopg was the reign of Henry III. 1 What had its origin in this reign I — how ? Ireland — p. 204. Who peopled Ireland 1 What was its condition 1 Who were its enemies ? Who gave it to Henry II. 1 What fur- nished him a pretext for invading it ? — when 1 How did he succeed '? Spain — p. 204. Who invaded Spain in 1212 1 With what force 1 Who joined him 1 Where did the Christian states oppose him ? What was the result 3 What did St. Ferdinand unite 1 What did he conquer ] To what province of Spain were the Moors confined] What conquests were made by Jayme I. of Aragon? Portugal— p. 205. Who was the first king of Portugal 1 From whom did he receive ill What city did he conquer? What were the acts of his son and successor Alfonso 1 Who succeeded him 1 Questions to be answered from Maps. Which way from England is Ireland 1 In what part of Ireland is Leinster 1 — Munster 1 — Ulster ? — Connaught 1 — Leitrim 1 — Sligo 1 In what part of Spain is Andalusia 1 — Cas- tile ?— Leon ?—Baeza?— Cordova ?— Seville?— Cadiz ?— Gra- nada? — Aragon? — Valencia? — Murcia? — Toledo? Which way from Spain is Portugal ? Where is the Tagus ? — Algarve ? — Oporto ? — Alemtejo ? The Almohades — p. 205. Who was the founder of the Almohades ? With whom did he wage war ? What was the seat of his dominion ? Who besieged Morocco ? What was the result ? What did the Almohades conquer in Spain ? Persia— p. 206. Where did the princes called Atta-beg rule ? By whom were they and the Assassins overthrown ? Saladin—p. 206. What brought the Turks into Egypt? What did they con- quer ? Whom did they make governor ? What dynasty did Saladin found ? What countries did he conquer ? What city was he besiegmg when Guy de Lusignan came against 428 aUESTIONS. him 1 What was the result 1 How did Saladih behave on taking Jerusalem) What was the effect of this news in Europe 1 What princes went on a crusade against Saladin 1 What was the result 1 When did Saladin die ] What was his character 1 The Mamelukes—p, 217. Who usurped the throne of Saladin ] When did St. Louis hndertake his unfortunate crusade ? On what terms was peace made ) Who were the Mamelukes 1 What offended them 1 What was done by them 1 How long did they rule in Egypt ? Constantinople — p. 107. Who murdei-ed Alexius 1 What changes followed 7 Whom did Alexius IV. bring against Constantinople ? What was the result! Who murdered Alexius IV. ? Who revenged him 7 Whom did they place on the throne 7 What three states were formed by the Greeks '! What was the fate of Baldwin 1 — of Henry I Who succeeded him 7 What is said of John Lascaris ? — of his grandson ] Who retook Coristari- tinople 1 The Crusades— Y,. 208. Who harassed Jerusalem while possessed by the Christians'? What enabled them to resis't their enemies? Who preached a new crusade ? — why '? W^hat princes took the cross ] With what force 7 Who went fii-st ] What were their fortunes 1 Relate Louis's adventures. When did Saladin take Jerusa- lem ] What was the effect of this ] Who took the cross ? What was the emperor's force? Whither did he march? Who opposed him ? What was the result? Where did he wintet? What success had he after this? What was his fate? What Was the force of the other crusading princes? Whence did Richard embark ? — whence Philip ? What hap- pened at Messina? — at Cyprus? Who took Acre ? What occasioned Philip's return ? Who defeated Saladin? What was his loss ? What cities did he raze ? What stopped "the crusade ? On what term^ was peace made ? What befel Richard I. on his return? Who cOmpos6d the fourth crusade? Who led it? What did they effect at Zara?— at Constanti- nople ? How were their conquests divided ? Who composed the tiRh crusade ? Who led it ? Where did he land ? What ensued ? What city was besieged ? Who was defeated ? Who returned home ^ Who took the command ? What en- liued ? On what terms was peace made ? What places in QUESTIONS. 429 Palestine were gained by Frederic 11. ? — how ? — when 1 Who took Palestine in 12447 Who went on a crusade? What was the result? When did St. Louis undertake his next crusade 1 What was the result T What beneficial effects resulted from the crusade ] The Mongols — Chingis Khan — p. 211. Who was Temujin 1 How did he acquire the name of Chingis Khan ? What country did he first conquer? — what next ? What sultan opposed him ? With what force ? What ensued ? What tsar opposed him ? What was the result 1 When did Chingis Khan die ? What conquests were made by his descendants ? Who paid tribute 700 years to the Mon- gols ? Who led them to the confines of Europe ? What city did they burn in Poland ? — in Hungary ? Who now opposed them ? What was the result ? What caused the Mongols to retire ? Who completed the conquest of China ? End of the Khalifat at Bagdat — p. 212. Who undertook the conquest of Bagdat ? — when ? With what success ? How many fell ? What sect was destroyed ? What cities did the Mongols next take ? What country did they enter ? Who defeated them there ? Who drove them out of Syria ? Who supported the fallen descendants of the khalifs ?— where ? Questions to be ansioered from Maps. In what part of Palestine is Jerusalem ? — Acre or Ptole- mais ? — Joppa ? — Tabor ? — Ascalon ? — Bethlehem ? In what part of Syria is Damascus ? In what part of Asia Minor is Iconium ? — Antioch ? — Mount Taurus ? — Laodicea ? Which way is Messina from Marseilles ? — Genoa ? — Cyprus ? Which way is Acre from Cyprus ? — Ascalon from Acre ? — Joppa from Ascalon ? — Jerusalem from Joppa ? Which way from Ven- ice is Dalmatia ? Which way from Athens is the Morea, or Peloponnesus? — Thessaly? — Achaia? Which way from Pales- tine is Damietta in Egypt ? Which way from Tartary is China ?— Corea ?— the Caspian Sea ?— Bagdat ?— Poland ?— Hungary ? 430 QUESTIONS. CHAPTER VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER, AND FORMATION OF GREAT MONARCHIES. Italy— The Popes— ^. 213. What alienated people from the court of Rome ? Who became pope 1 What was donfe by him ? Relate his quarrel with Philip the Fair. What happened in 130l ] What was the result of this quarrel 1 What Was declat-ed in Boniface'^ council at Rome ? Whom did he fexcqmmimicate 1 How did Philip revenge himself ? \Vhbn did Bbnifafce die 1 Who re- scinded the bulls aofainst Philip? What did this act show"? Who removed the papal coiirt to Avignon ? With whom did the Avignon pontiffs quarrel ? — about vi'hat ? What did the diet of Frankfond(3clare in 13381 Who opposed John XXII.I What were his oppressive acts 3 What right did Boniface XII. assume 1 Who removed the papal court back to Rome ? — wlieri 1 Who succeeded Gregory XI. ? What caused Urban's deposition ? Who was chosen in opposition to him ? Who adhered to Urban ] — who to Clement ] How many sue- tessors had Urban ] — Clement? Where did a council meet in 1409 1 What was done by it 1 How many popes were there now"? What was done by the council of Constance? What was declared by it ? Who composed it? How was it divided ? — ;why ? Who dissolved it ? What was decreed con- cerning future cduiibilst What was done by thie council at Pavia? Wheire Wag the fesi convoked ? What was done by Eugeniiis ?— what by the council at Basle? — by Nicholas V. 1 How did the popes regard councils after these transactions ? What did future popes learn ? What prevailed in Europe? What was done in England ? — in Bohemia ? What cast ad- ditional odium on the church ? Questions to he answered from Maps. Where is Avignon? — Bourdeaux? — Frankfort? — Constance? —Pavia ? — Siena ?— Basle ? — Ferrara ? — Florence? — Prague? Italy — The Republics — p. 217. In what century did the republics of Italy flourish ? Name some of the first cluster? — the second? — the third? — the fourth? Which favored the Guelf faction ? Which the Ghibi- lin ? Which were the maritime republics ? What was the condition of these republics? When did they fall under ty- rants? Who were some of these tyrants? What was the aUESTIONS. 431 condition of Florence 1 In whose hands was the government ? What happened in 1266?— in 1336?— in 1342? With whom did Florence engage ii> wars ] How were they carried on T For what was Pisa distinguished ] What were her posses- sions] From what did she derive great advantage? What transpired in 1119? — in 1284? To what state did Pisa finally become subject? What is said of Genoa? What part of Constantinople was given to the Genoese? With whom did they carry on war ? Give an account of the war of Chiog- gia. What dates from that period ? What was the internal condition of Genoa? What was the origin of Venice? What happened in the 10th century ? What did Venice early apply to ? What part of Constantinople did she gain ? — when ? What islands ? With what countries did Venice trade ? Of what was Venice the medium ? What conquests did she make ? What is said of the government of Venice ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Milan ? — Cremona ? — Parma ?~Pavia ? — Man- tua ? — Verona ? — Padua ? — Pisa? — Floreiice?— Genoa? — Ven- ice ? — Lucca ? — Brescia ? — Bergamo ?— the Adda ? Italy— Naples and Sicily— p. 220. Who occupied the kingdom of Naples in 1254? In whose name ? Who opposed him ? What was his fate ? What was Conradin's ? Who now claimed the crown ? What were the possessions of Charles of Anjou ? Who was his secret enemy ? Who entered into John's project ? What occurred in 1253 ? What ensued ? On what condition was peace con- cluded ? What happened in 1305 ? Who succeeded Robert ? What crime is imputed to Joanna ? What were her subse- quent fortunes and fate ? Who now invaded Naples ? What ensued ? Who succeeded Charles III. ? What did Ladislaus effect ? Who succeeded him ? What ensued ? How did the kings of Aragon acquire a claim to Sicily ? — when ? Who disputed it ? Who founded the Aragonite line at Naples ? To whom did he transmit his crown ? By what means ? Germany — p. 222. Who was elected emperor after the interregnum 1 — when 1 What was Rodolf's character ? What countries did he gain 1 Of what was tMs +he origin ? Who succeeded Rodolf ? Who apposed and slew him ? XVhat was Albert's fate ? Who suc- ceeded him ? — when ? What happened in 1314 ? — in 1322 ? With what was Louis's reign occupied ? Who succeeded lim ? What countries did he annex to Bohemia ? What is 482 auESTioNS. said of Wenceslaus ) Who succeeded him 1 What is said of Rupert 1 — Jobst 1 — Sigismund ] What did Sigisraund re- ceive from his first wife 1 — from his brother the pope 1 What did he add to these ] With whom did he war ] What house now gained the imperial dignity ] — how ] When did Albert die ? Who succeeded him in Hungary and Bohemia] Who was chosen emperor 1 What is said of Frederic] What do his posterity still possess 1 Sivitzerland — p. 224. Of what kingdom was Switzerland a part! To what em- pire was it united 1 — when ? What was its condition ] How did the emperor Albert offend the Swiss] Who formed a league to free the country ] What happened in 1308 ? What ensued] What happened in 1315] What other cantons now joined the confederacy ] What other events are noticed ] When was the independence of Switzerland acknowledged ] What gave their soldiers tho first rank ] France — p. 224. Who succeeded St. Louis] In what war did he engage] What provinces did he annex to the crown of France ] When did Philip IV. succeed him] What did he gain from the English] Who defeated him at Courtray] What provinces did he gain] What city] For what did he convene the states general] What disgraced Philip's reign ] Who were his children ] Who succeeded him ] Who became regent on the death of Louis X. ] When did he cause himself to be crowned, to the exclusion of the female heir] Who op- posed liim] Who supported him ] Who succeeded Philip] Who became regent on Charles's decease ] By what cir- cumstance was the principle of the exclusion of females from the throne of France established ] What foreign prince claimed the throne of France ] By what right ] Was his claim valid ] How long did the wars last which were com- menced by him ] What is the origin of the title Dauphin] What happened in 1350 ] Who succeeded Philip ] Where was he captured by the English ] What was the condition of France ] Who was regent ] Where did John die ] Who succeeded ] What is said of Charles] Who succeeded him] What was the condition of the country ] What faction dis- turbed it during the king's lunacy] Who was assassinated] Was the assassin punished ] Who was Armagnac ] Who opposed him ] What was his fate ] Who was next murdered ] What had been done by Henry V. of England] Who agreed to the treaty of Troyes with him ] What were its terms ] auESTioNs. 433 Who succeeded Henry V. ] — with what title ? In what prov- inces was Charles VII. king of France acknowledged 1 What English regent opposed him "? What woman redeemed his desperate affairs ? Who were expelled from France I — when 1 What was the first standing army maintained in Europe 1 What is said of Louis XL 1 Who leagued against him T How did he divert Edward IV. from invading France! What is an appanage ] (See Note.) Was Burgundy held as an ap- panage of the crown of France] Who^was the duke of Bur- gundy in the reign of Louis XL 1 With whom did he war successfully] Who defeated him, and broke his power] Where and when did he fall ] Who was his heir ] What was Louis's true policy] What did he do] Whom did Mary marry ] What children did she leave ] How did France ac- quire Provence ] Who succeeded Louis XL ] Who was re- gent ] Whom did the duchess Anne marry ] How was Maximilian offended ] How appeased ] What was now the state of France ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Artois ] — Franche Comte I — Provence ] — Niver- nois ] — Burgundy ] — Lorraine ] — Friburg ] — Nancy ] — Swit- zerland ] — Britany ] — Navarre ] — Rheims ? — Poitou ] — Tou- louse ] — -Auvergne ] — Angouleme ] — Lyons ] — La Marche ] England — The Plantagenets — p. 230. What was the first object of Edward I. ] What country did he acquire ] What afforded him an opportunity of inter- fering in the affairs of Scotland ] How did he avail himself of it] Where did he lose ground by this] What did his own people gain ] What was the character of Edward II. ] Where was he defeated by the Scots] Whom did he marry] What was his fate ] Who succeeded] Who was regent] How did she govern ] Who ended her tyranny ] What oc- cupied Edward's reign ] What three great principles were established in the reign of Edward III. ] What order of knighthood did he institute ] What is said of his reign ] Who was his successor ] What insurrection did he quell] What was his character ] Whom did he injure ] How did the iuke revenge himself] What was the fate of Richard IL ] Whom did Richard IL appoint to succeed him ] Where was Roger killed ] What was the age of his heir ] Was the ;laim of Henry IV. to the crown valid by succession ] What nade him the lawful sovereign ] Who gained power by the lefect in his lineal title] What rebellion did he quell? iVhat is said of his government and character ] Who suc- 2M 484 auESTioNS. ceeded him 1 What was his character 1 Where did he gain glory 1 When did he die 1 Who succeeded him ] At what age ] Who governed in the name of Henry VI. ? What possessions were lost by Bedford 1 Whom did Henry VI. marry I What was her character! Who was murdered? By whom) Who claimed the crown? What was his char- acter? Who favored him] How long did the contest be- tween the houses of York and Lancaster last 1 (the wars of the Roses.) What battles did the Yorkists gain ? Who was taken at Northampton? What was then done by queen Mar^v garet? Where was the duke of York defeated and slain! What measures did Margaret then take ? Who inherited the claims of the duke of York? What battles were gained by the Yorkists? Who became king ? What was the character of Edward IV. ? Where were the Lancastrians next defeated ? What did Margaret then do ? Where was she defeated ? What ensued ?" What was now done by the earl of War- wick? Where was he defeated by Edward, and slain ? What happened the same day? Where was Margaret next de- feated ? What ensued ? What was Henry's fate ? Who murdered Edward V. ? What is said of Buckingham ? Who opposed Richard III. ? Where was Richard III. defeated by Richmond, and slain? Who succeeded ? With what title? What ended with Richard III. ? How long had the Plan- tagenets ruled England I What was the new dynasty called ? Was the title of Henry VII. good? Whom did he marry? Did this strengthen his title? Who opposed his claim? With what success? What is said of his character and designs? What changes were effected in his reign ?' Wars hetwp.en France and England — p. 235. Who were the allies of Edward III. ? What is said of his first campaign in France ? When was this ? What hap- pened next year ? What French count formed an alliance with Edward III. ? How was the next campaign terminated? What happened next year? What compelled Edward to give battle at Crecy ? Wliat was the result ? What city did Ed- ward now take ? What ensued ? Who formed a conspiracy against John king of France ? Who betrayed it ? What en- sued ? Who invaded France ? With what force ? Who opposed him? With what force? Where did they meet? What was the result? What was now the condition of France ? What were the terms of the peace of Bretigni 1 Who succeeded John ? What did he terminate ? Whom did he summon to appear in his court? What was the an- sv/er? What followed ? What exploit was performed by the aLfESTIU.V3. 435 duke of Gloucester in 1880 ? What prevented the invasion of England ] How long a truce was made] What was done by Henry IV. ] What demands were made by Henry V. ? What offer did the French make] What force did Henry raise '] What town did he take ] Who opposed him ] With wliat force ] What offer did Henry make J What river did he pass ? To what was his army reduced] Where did he give battle ] What was the result ] What was the French loss ] — the English ] What ensued ] Where did Henry next land] With what force] What town did he besiege] What negotiations ensued ] What treaty was made ] What was the state of affairs when Henry V. died ] Who con- ducted the war ] What battle did he gain ] What city was besieged by him] Who now apppeared] What ensued] What ended thus ] Scotland— p. 239. How was Scotland governed ] What connexion had she with England ] Who took William king of Scotland pris- oner] On what condition was he released] Who renounced this right of homage ] What ,two claimants aspired to the Scottish crown, on the death of Alexander III. ] To whom were their claims referred ] Which did he prefer ] On what condition] How did the Scotch regard this transaction] What was done by the Scotch ]— by Baliol ]— by Edward ] What was now the situation of Scotland ] What led to Wal- lace's insurrection ] Whom did he defeat ] What office did he sustain] With what force did Edward enter Scotland] Where did he defeat the Scotch ] W^hat was Wallace's fate] Who now came forward to assert the independence of Scot- land] What did he effect] Where was he crowned] Who defeated him] Where did he take shelter] When and where did Edward I. die ] Who succeeded him ] What was now done by Bruce ] What provoked Edward 11. to enter Scotland] Where was he defeated] — when] What was the effect of this battle ] Who succeeded Robert Bruce ] Who now laid claim to the Scottish crown ] Who supported him ] What success attended him ] Where was he crowned ] Whither was he afterwards driven ] Who lent him assist- ance ] Where did they defeat the Scots ] Was Scotland conquered ] Who had returned from France and driven Ba- liol out of Scotland ] — when ] What country did he invade ] Who defeated and captured him ] What was his ransom 7 What happened in the reign of Richard IL] — of Henry IV.] V\''hat was the character of Robert III. ] Who governed the kingdom ] What injury did he do the king ] What befel 436 QUESTIONS. Robert's son James? Who educated him ? What was done in the reign of Henry V. ? — of Henry VL T What was the character of James 1, of Scotland ? Who murdered him ] What happened in the reign of Henry VII. 1 Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Scotland ? How is it bounded 1 In what part of it is Edinburgh? — Aberdeen? — Scone? — Stirling-? — Perth? — Fifeshire ? — Falkirk ? In what part of England is Cum- berland ? — Carlisle? — Newcastle? — Berwick? Where are the Western Isles or Hebrides ? — ^Norway ? — Sweden? — Den- mark? Scandinavia — p. 242. On what terms did the Goths and Swedes unite ? What was the consequence ? WHien did the race of Odin in Swe- den become extinct ! What other lines ended in the same century? Who united the three Scandinavian kingdoms? Who succeeded her ! What befel him? Who then suc- ceeded to the three kingdoms ? Who was chosen king of Denmark on the decease of Christopher? What other coun- tries did he gain ? Who maintained the independence of Sweden I Poland— Tp. 243. From v/hom are the Poles descended ? What was their early state ? When did they unite under a duke ? Who was their first king ? How long did his dynasty last ? With whom did it end ? Who succeeded him? Whom did Louis's daughter Hedwig marry ? What is said of Jagellon's reign 7 — oif his son's? Where did he fall ? Who succeeded him? What was his character? Of what kingdoms was his son the sovereign ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Poland ? How is it bounded ? Where is War- saw ? — Cracow ? — Varna ? — Lithuania? — Hungary ? — Pres- burg ?^ — Buda ? — Bohemia ? — Prague ? Hungary — p. 244. What house ended with Andrew III. ? — when ? Who suc- ceeded Andrew ? WHiat is said of his reign ? — of Louis's ? Who succeeded Louis? What battle did he lose ? Who suc- ceeded him ? Who succeeded Albert? What regents gov- erned during Ladislaus's minority 1 What was done by Hun- QUESTIONS. 437 niades 1 Who succeeded Ladislaus 1 What is said of Mat- thias 1 Who succeeded him ? The Ottomans— Tp. 244. What is said of Suleiman ? Where did he perish 7 Whither did his followers go 1 Which way did Dindar and Ortog-hrui rove 1 What did they encounter on their way through Asia Minor 1 How did they behave] How were they rewarded! Where is the country which was assigned to them ? Of what was it the cradle ? What conquests were made by Osman 1 What was his capital] What name is derived from his] What conquests did Orchan make ] What institutions were formed under his reign ] Who were the Janizaries ] What city did Moorad take] What other acquisitions did he make ] Where did he fall ] Who succeeded him ] What was Baye- zeed's character ] Who opposed him ] Where did they meet ] Which prevailed ] Who escaped ] What prevented Bayezeed from investing Constantinople ] By whom was he defeated and taken ] — where ] — when ] What was the effect of his misfortunes] Who restored the Turkish power] What conquest was made by Moorad ] How did the Greek emperor John Vn. endeavor to save his falling empire ] Of what breach of faith were the Hungarians guilty ] Who marched to the Black Sea ] Relate the circumstances of the battle of Varna. What happened twice in Moorad's time ] Who suc- ceeded him ] What is said of Constantinople ] Who in- vested it] What was the result ] Who fell at the breach ] What befel the city and its inhabitants ] What other con- quests did Mohammed 11. make 1 Who resisted tlie Turks successfully in Albania ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Through what part of Armenia does the Euphrates run ] Which way from Armenia is Asia Minor ] In what part of Asia Minor is Iconium ] — Phrygia ] — Mysia ] — Bithynia ] In what part of Bithynia is Prusa ad Olympum or Bursa ] Where is Adrianople ] On which side of the Danube is Ni- copoHs ad latrum (Nicop ?) Where is Servia ] — Bulgaria ] — Bosnia] — Angora] — Magnesia in Asia] — Varna] — Trebi- zond ] — Belgrade ] — Wallachia ] — Caramania ] — Rhodes ] — Samarcand ] Which way from Persia is Bagdad ] — Mesopo- tamia ] — Armenia ] — Georgia ] — India ] — the Caspian Sea 1 — Sivas ] — Aleppo ] — Angora ] — Lesser Asia] The Tatars— Timoor— p. 247. What observations are made in the note ] Who was Ti- noor] Whom did he marry] What happened on her death] 2M2 488 QUESTIONS. — on the emir's death 1 What did he conquer 1 From Persia whither did he march 1 What countries were next conquered by the Tatars 1 What country in 13981 Where did Timoor winter? What was done in the spring? What was done in 1401 1 With whom did Timoor next wage war 1 Where did he defeat him 1 What were the numbers on both sides 1 What place did Timoor reach 1 Where did Bayezee'd die 1 — Timoor 1 To whom did Timoor leave the empire 1 To whom did it descend eventually ? Who drove out the house of Timoor? Where is his lineal descendant? What tribes possessed Aderbijan arid Persia? Spain — p. i249. What Christian kingdoms existed in Spain ? — what Ma- hometan one ? What is said of Alfonso X. ? — of Sancho ?— of Peter the Cruel? Who expelled Peter? Who assisted Henry? Who assisted Peter? On what condition? What was done by the Black Prince ? What happened on his depar= ture? Wliat is said of Henry's three immediate successors? — of John II ? Who deposed Henry IV. ? What ensued ? Who was Isabel ? Whom did she marry ? Who was Joanna ? Whom did she marry? Which gained the crown of Castile ? What is said of Aragon ? What were its foreign possessions ! How many princes contended for the crown of Aragon, on king Martin's decease ? Who gained it ? Who succeeded hini ? Who succeeded Alfonso V. ? Whom did Ferdinand succeed ? What two kingdoms were now united ? — how ? Whom did Ferdinand attack? When was it conquered? What is said of Navarre ? Portugal—^. 250. What is said of Alfonso X. ?— of Diniz ?— Pedro ? What "happened after Pedro's death ? Who entered Portugal with an army ? Who defeated him, and gained the crown ? What is said of his reign ? What conquest was made ? What dis- coveries were made ? Discovery of America — p. 251. What had prepared men for bold and distant voyages ? What was the great problem ? How did the Portuguese seek India? Who was Columbus? What had he conjectured? What favored this supposition? What conclusion did Colum- bus arrive at ? To whom did he first offer his services ? — to whom next? Whom did he send to England? What befel him ? From whom did Christopher Columbus at length ob- tain a squadron '' — of liow many vessels ? When did he sail i QUESTIONiS. 43f§ From what port ' What happened on the voyage 1 What was the first discovery ? — the next? What was the effect of these discoveries ] What was the country called 1 What did Columbus discover next year] What in his third voy- age ] How was he remunerated? When and where did he die J What was effected during the same period by Vascd de Gama T In whose service ? Questions to be answered from Maps, Where are the Azores? — Madeira? — Congo? — the Gold Coast?— Ceuta?— Fez?— the Cape of Good Hope?— Palos? —St. Salvador ?— the Bahamas?— Cuba?— St. Domingo?— Porto Rico ?— Guadaloupe ? — Jamaica ? — Trinidad? — Calicut? PART III, MODERN HISTORY. CHAPTER I. VIEW OF THE STATE OF EUROPE, Introduction — p, 254. What was the state of affairs at the commencement of the middle ages ? — 6f learning ? — of religion ? What is said of the clergy? — the pope? — his dominion? — his pretensions? W^hat empire rose and fell after the fall of Rome? (Answer. Charlemagne's.) What was the internal state of Europe? Who ravaged it ? What was the state of commei"ce ? Did this continue? What is said of the monarchs? — the church? — -the people ? — the nobles ? — learning I — travels ? — inven- tions ? — schools ?— classical learning ? — religion ? — discove- ries ? What was the political condition of Europe ? England — p. 255. What was the state of England ? To whom were the daughters of Henry VII. married ? Who succeeded him ? France — p. 256. What was the state of France ? What led Charles VIII. into Italy ^ With what force ? What drove him out? With what loss ? What is said of Louis XII. ? 440 QUESTIONS. Germany — p. 256. Who was emperor 1 What new possessions had he ac- quired ■? What was done by the diet of Worms ? Russia, Poland, Scandinavia — p. 256. What occupied the Russian princes 1 What did they gain from the Poles 1 What had happened in Scandinavia 1 Switzerland and Savoy — p. 257. Whom had the Swiss compelled to respect their rights 1 What practice had commenced in Switzerland 1 What at- tempt of the emperor had been successfully resisted by them 1 What is said of Savoy 1 Italy— p. 257. Who was the last of the Visconti 1 Who succeeded him ? — ^how 1 What is said of Galeazzo ? — of Lodovico Moro ? Whom did he invite to Italy, and afterwards oppose ] What was done by Louis XII. 1 What part of Italy was ruled by the house of Este ? — by the Gonzaga family? — the Pico? Who was pope Alexander VI. ] What was his character? — his chief design ? What was done by Julius II. ? What had Venice acquired ? With whom did she trade ? What was her condition ? What caused her decline ? Who ruled at Florence ? What is said of Cosmo de Medici ? — of Lorenzo ? Who attacked Frederic king of Naples? What ensued? Who drove out the French ? League of Cambray — p. 258. Who formed the league of Cambray ? Who opposed it ? What ensued ? Who became duke of Milan ? Spain and Portugal — p. 258. Who planned the Inquisition? — when? Who opposed it? Where was it introduced? Who were its first victims? How many were burnt ? How was it introduced into Aragon ? Into what other provinces was it introduced ? How were the Moors of Granada outraged ? What was the effect of the inquisition in Spain ? What is said of Portugal ? Turkey—^. 259. Who succeeded Mohammed II.? Who succeeded Baye- z6ed ? — when ? What was Selim's character ? — his first act ? What were his first conquests ? Who opposed him in Syria ? — when ? What was the result ? What was Ghawree's fate 1 aUESTIONS. 441 Who succeeded him 1 Where was he defeated by SeUm 1 What followed 1 What was the fate of Toomawn Beg ]^f Egypt 1 When did Selim die I Persia— p. 266. What is said of Persia ? — of the Suffavee ] — of Jooneid ? — of Haider] What is the origin of the name Kuzzil Bash? Where did Haider fall ] What is said of his sons 1 Whom did Ismail defeat 1 Where was his capital 1 What conquests did he make ] What was the extent of his dominions 1 Why did he attack Selim 1. 1 Where did the opposing armies meet"? What were their numbers 1 What was the result 1 When did Ismail die 1 Who succeeded him '! CHAPTER 11. TIMES OF CHARLES V. Accession of Charles V. — p. 261. Who were the parents of Charles V. ? What dominions did he inherit from his grandmother? — from Ferdinand? — from Maximilian ? Who was his rival? Which was elected emperor of Germany? Why was he elected? Who was king of England ? Was Francis a match for Charles? — why? The Reformation — p. 262. What was the state of the public mind on the subject of religion ? Who was pope ? What was his character ? How did he raise funds to build the church of St. Peter at Rome ? Who sold indulgences in Germany ? Who wrote and preached against them? What was the effect? What did he study? Who supported him ? Where did he defend his opinions ? — against whom ? Who summoned him to Worms ? What happened then ? Who preached against indulgences in Swit- zerland ? In what other countries did the Opinions of the reformers spread ? Wars of Charles V. and Francis I. — p. 263. Who was king of France? What was his first conquest? What duke of Milan was deposed ? Who was left in corfp mand at Milan ? Who was repulsed from Italy ? With whom did Maximilian make peace ? Whose friendship did Charles and Francis both seek ? Which obtained it ? What trans- pired in relation to Navarre ? — the Low Countries ? Who formed a league ? What Mas done by the Milanese and the 442 auESTioNS. pope ? Who were defeated ? What did they lose "? When (lid Leo X. die ] From what cause ] Who invaded the Mi- lanese] What ensued 1 Wiio leagued against Francis] Who conspired against him? — why] Whom did Francis send into Italy] Who defeated Bonnivet] — where] Who fell in this battle] Whither did Francis march] For what purpose] What town did he besiege] Who came to relieve it] What ■was the result] When was Francis taken prisoner] What was his letter to liis mother ] What is said of Henry VIII. ] — of Wolsey ] Wliither was Francis removed ] Why did Charles incline to release him ] On what terms was lie re- leased ] — when] Vv^hat was done by the states of Burgundy] — by the pope] Who formed an alliance against Charles V.] What was its object] Where did they take the field ] What was done by Bourbon ] How was the pope treated ] What was done by Cliarles ] Wliom did Francis send into Italy] What ensued] Vv^ho ravaged Hungary ] What was passing in Germany] V\ ho made a peace between Charles and the allies] — where] On what terms] What was done by Charles in Italy ] Affiiirs of Germany — p. 263. What did Charles now resolve ] Where was a diet con- voked ? — when ] W'hat was done by it ] Vv^ho protested against the decree ] What were they called ] What was done at Augsburg ? Who formed the league of Smalcalde] Who menaced Hungary] What was agreed on between Charles and the Protestants] What transpired in Hungary and Austria] — in Tunis] — in Miinster] Renewed War loith France — p. 267. What claims did Francis revive ] Why did not the Pro- testant princes of Smalcalde join him ] Whom did Francis rob of his dominions] How did he regain a right to Milan] Who took possession of it ] What did Charles resolve ] At what points did he invade France ] How was it defended ] What was the result ] What was done in the Low Coun- tries ] What was done by Charles in Germany ] — in Africa ] Between whom was the war renewed in 1542] Who were the allies of Charles ] — of Francis ] Where did the war rage ] Who were defeated at Cerisoles ] With what loss ? What were the terms of the peace of Crespi ] Affairs of Germany — p. 268. What was now Charles's object ] With whom did he make peace] Where was there a council] Why did not the QUESTIONS. 443 Protestants attend J What was done by them 1 What Pro- testant prince turned traitor to the cause ? — why T What was the consequence ] What was done by the pope 1 What events embarrassed Charles ] What encourag-ed him ] What befel the elector of Saxony ] — the landgraf of Hesse ] What did Charles present to the diet at Augsburg- ] What was its effect I What opened the eyes of the German princes'? Who was king of the Romans, and therefore next hi succession to the office of emperor? Whom did Charles wish to have suc- ceed ] Did he carry his point ] What was done by Maurice! Was his design suspected by Charles? With whom did Maurice form a treaty? How did he then proceed? What reasons did he assign for opposing the emperor ? What was done by Henry II. of France ? What was done by the French troops? — by Maurice? — by the emperor? — by the council of Trent ? What was effected by the treaty of Passau ? When was it signed ? What befel Charles at Metz ? — in Tuscany ? What happened in the Low Countries ? What was effected by the diet at Augsburg? What was done by Charles in 1556 ? To whom did he leave his dominions ? Whom did Philip marry? Who succeeded Charles as emperor of Ger- many ? Questions to be answered from Maps. How are the Netherlands or Low Countries bounded? Where is Wittenburg ? — Navarre ? — Milan ? — Pa via ? — Worms ? — Spire ? — Augsburg ? — Frankfort ? — Smalcalde ? — Vienna ? — Miinster ? — Picardy ? — Champagne ? — Dauphine ? — Marseilles ? — Avignon ? — Aries ? — Provence ? — Nice ? — Ghent ? — Cerisoles ? — Crespi ? — Trent? — Hesse ? — Branden- burg ?— Mulhausen ?— Trent ?— Bologna ?— Passau ?— Metz 1 — Estremadura, the province to which Charles V. retired after his abdication ? England — p. 270. Who governed England during the reign of Charles V. ? What was done by Henry ? Who favored the Protestants ? What is said of Mary ? What place in France was lost by the English ? Spain and Portugal — p. 271. What was done by the commons of Spain ? Who headed them ? Who refused to aid them ? What was the conse- quence ? What conquests were made in America ? — by whom ? What was done by John III. of Portugal ? What conquests were made by the Portuguese in Asia ? 444 auESTioNS. Italy — p. 271. What popes ruled during the reign of Charles V. ? What caused the expulsion of the Medici from Florence 1 Who restored them ? Which of the Medici became pope 1 What is said of Lorenzo! — of his daughter! Who took the gov- ernment, and afterwards became pope ] Who then governed Florence ] When was he obliged to fly ? Whom did he marry? What city resisted his restoration 1 What ensued! What occasioned Alexander's death ! Who succeeded him 1 Of what power was he the slave ! What title did he receive from the pope ? What is said of Genoa ! Which of her citi- zens formed a league with Charles V. ] What ensued ! When did Doria die ] What is said of Venice 1 What possessions were taken from Venice by the pope ? What was now the condition of Italy ] Denmark and Sweden — p. 273. What act of cruelty was perpetrated by Christian II. of Denmark and Sweden ! Who was his confederate ] Who opposed and vanquished Christian 11. and reigned in his stead in Sweden ! How did Gustavus Vasa govern ! What re- ligion did he establish in Sweden ] — when ] Who deposed Christian II. from the throne of Denmark ! Who was Chris- tian III. 7 What is said of him ! Turkey—^. 273. Who succeeded Selim ] What was his character 1 What did he gain in the war with Hungary in 1522 1 What island did he take next year 1 — from whom 1 What happened in the second Hungarian campaign ! — in the third 1 — in the fourth 1 — in the war with Persia ! Who took Tunis for Suleiman ] Who retook it ! Whom did Suleiman next op- pose "! — where 1 — how ] What followed ! What happened at Malta ? What is said of Suleiman ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Calais ! — Mexico ! — Peru ! What countries lie between the Persian Gulf and Japan ! Where is Florence ! — ^Venice 1 — Genoa ! — Sienna ! — Bologna ! — Ravenna ] — An- cona 1 — Parma ? — Placentia ! — Sweden ? — Upsala ] — Den- mark ) — Holstein ? — Hungarv ? — Belgrade ] — Peterwaradin 1 — Ofen !— Tunis 1— Rhodes ?— Malta ? auESTioNS. 44.5 CHAPTER ni. TIMES OF PHILIP II. State of Europe at Philip's Accession — p. 274. What possessions did Charles V. leave to his son Philip 1 Whom had Philip married 1 Who was his uncle 7 — his allies I What was the state of France 1 — of Turkey ? Who were Philip's generals'? What was Philip's character! — his grand design '? Who first opposed him ? What was the result 7 Who succeeded Mary of England! Who sought her favor 1 Where was a treaty signed ] — when ! What states were in- cluded in it ) What sovereigns had recently died ! France — p. 275. Who succeeded Henry 11. 1 Who had become Protestants 1 Who supported the old religion ! What laws were revived ? Who conspired to seize the king ! What ensued ! Who died ] Who succeeded him ! Who was regent ! What was her maxim ! How did she proceed ! Who quarrelled ! What ensued ! What cities were in the hands of the Huguenots ! What was done by Philip II. ! — by Conde ! Who joined the Guises ! Where was the first battle fought ! Where was the duke of Orleans killed ? — by whom ! What ensued ? What is said of Catherine 1 Who met at Bayonne ] What was there formed ! For what purpose ! Who now took arms! Where were they defeated ! What was next done by them ! What renewed the war ! What happened at Jarnac ! Who besieged Poitiers ! Who drove him from it ! Agamst what jcity did Coligni advance ! What was the consequence ! What was now ripe ! How did Charles behave ! What mar- ^age was proposed ! Who assembled at Paris to celebrate ^t! How were they received ! What happened on the eve ^f St. Bartholomew, 1572! What was the extent of the massacre ! How many fell in Paris ! — in all France ! What was the effect of this on the Protestants of Europe ! What was the effect in Spain and at Rome! What apology did Charles make ! What was done by the Protestants ! What towns did they bravely defend ! What happened in 1573 ! Who died in 1574 ! Who succeeded him ! How did he pro- ceed ! What was formed by the Catholics ! How did the king attempt to weaken it ! Who patronized the League ! — who the Protestants ! What is said of the king ! Who was the next heir after the duke of Anjou's death ! To what measure was the king forced! Who conquered at Coutras! What roused the king ! What was done by him ! 3 N 446 auESTioNS. — by the Catholic doctors of the Sorbonne 1 To what office was the duke of Mayenne chosen 1 With whom did the king ally.himself] What was done by them] Who assassinated the king ? Who succeeded him ] Who abandoned him 1 Who was proclaimed king by the League ] Whither did Henry retire 1 Who pursued him 1 What happened at Ivry 1 — at Paris ] What was done by the pope 1 — by Elizabeth of England ! — by Henry 1 — the prince of Parma 1 — Lesdiguieres? — Turenne] What happened in 15937 Who embraced the Catholic religion ] What ensued ] What happened in Bur- gundy ] — at Marseilles ] — at Calais 1 — at Amiens 1 Who re- lieved Henry from his financial difficulties ] What ensued I What took place in Britany] What was now the state of France? What edict was issued? What did it secure to the Protestants? With whom did Henry make peace? Who aided him in restoring order ? How did Henry perish ? What was his character ? Who were his wives ? The Netherlands— Tp. 280. What was the state of the Netherlands? What is said of Charles V.?— of Philip? Who led the people? Whom did Philip send to reduce them ? What followed ? Who opposed Alva ? Did he succeed ? What was done by the queen of England ? Who took Brille ? What followed ? What prov- inces were liberated by the prince of Orange ? What towns were taken by him ? What was done by Alva? What boast did he make on retiring ? Who succeeded him ? How was Leyden defended ? To what were the Dutch driven ? What was done at Antwerp ? What was done by Don John of Austria ? What renewed the war ? Who aided the Dutch 1 What was done by D'Arschot and others ? Who consequently took the government? Who became his lieutenant? Who attacked the Netherlanders ? What ensued? What union was now effected ? — by whom ? What was done by the prince of Parma? Who became sovereign? What was done by the duke of Anjou ? How was his career ended ? Between whom was the conflict now I • Who killed the prince of Or- ange ? Who succeeded him ? Who took Antwerp? What was the consequence ? Who aided the Dutch? — how? Why was Leicester recalled ? Who succeeded him ? When did the prince of Parma die ? Who succeeded him ? What places were taken by prince Maurice ? When did Philip IL die ? What had been done by him ? What was done by Al- bert? — by the provinces? What edict was issued? What was gained by the Dutch in the East Indies? What was done atNieuport? Who took Rhineburg ? — Ostend? What was QUESTIONS. 441' done by Spinola 1 What was his opinion 1 What ensued 1 When was a truce made ? How long- had the contest lasted 1 What was its result ] Questions to be answered from Maps. How are the Netherlands bounded ? Which part of them is Holland ?— Belgium 1 Where is Brille ?— Mechlin ?— Oude- nard 1 — Dendermond 1 — Haarlem 1 — Alemaar 1 — Zealand ] — Leyden ? — Breda 1 — Antwerp ? — Amsterdam 1 — Luxemburg 1 — Ghent? — Utrecht? — Friesland? — Groningen? — Overyssell — Guelderland? — Cambray? — Brussels? — Gertreydenburg"? — Groningen ?— Nieuport ? — Ostend ? — Rhineburg ? — Hague ? England — p. 284. Who ruled England ? What was her character? What religion was established ? Who opposed Elizabeth ? What is said of Mary queen of Scots? When did she die? — how? Who attempted the invasion of England ? With what force ? What was the result ? What ended with Elizabeth ? Give an account of the Tudors. What were the leading events of Elizabeth's reign ? Portugal—^. 286. Who succeeded John III. ? Who had the care of him ? To what did they excite him ? What occasioned the invasion of Africa ? What was the result ? Who became king of Portugal ? Who was the legal heir ? Who set up a claim ? What followed 1 Germany — p. 287. Who succeeded Charles V. as emperor of Germany ? What was his object ? What council thwarted him ? Who suc- ceeded Ferdinand? With whom did he wage war? What followed ? Who succeeded Maximilian ? Poland— Y>. 287. What alteration was made in the constitution of Poland ? What religion made progress there ? What prevailed ? What sects found an asylum in Poland ? Who succeeded Sigis- mund? Who succeeded Henry? Whom did he marry? Who succeeded him ? Italy— p. 288. What popes succeeded each other in this period ? What was done by Sixtus V. ? What is said of Cosimo ?-K)f his family ?— of Francis ? Relate the story of his death. Who 448 . auESTioNs. succeeded him ? What was now the state of Florence 1 What is said of Emanuel Philibert, duke of Savoy 1 — of Charles Emanuel 1 Turkey—^. 289. What is said of Selim II. '? When was Cyprus taken 1 Who opposed Selim ? What passed in the gulf of Lepanto 1 What happened next year ! — in the succeeding reigns'? CHAPTER IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. Germany — p. 290. What measures were taken by the emperor Mathias 1 What followed ? What war was thus begun 1 Who suc- ceeded Mathias? — when 1 Who became king of Bohemia 1, Who supported him ? Who supported Ferdinand ? What events followed ? For what purpose was a league formed 1 Who was its head ? What ensued ] By what edict did Fer- dinand attack the Protestants ] With whom did they form an alliance ] What was his character? Who Sided him ? — how ? Where was his first victory gained ) What country did he gain? Who took Prague! Where did Tilly falll Who recovered Prague ? What followed ] Where did Gus- tavus attack Wallenstein 1 What ensued ? Who became regent of Sweden after the death of Gustavus? Who prose- cuted the war ? What occasioned Wallenstein's death 7 How was his loss supplied ] Where were the Swedes defeated 1 — ;• when? On what terms did the German princes make peace! Who sustained the war? What ensued? Where were the Imperialists defeated ? Who succeeded the emperor Ferdi- nand ? What places were taken by the duke of Weimar 1 What was done by Banier? What was done by him in the next campaign ? What Protestant prince now died ? Who took his army into pay ? What events followed ? By whom was Piccolomini defeated ? — where ? Where was a diet as- sembled ? What was now done by Banier ? Who separated 7 Whither did Banier march ? Where did he die? Who suc- ceeded him ? Who defeated Piccolomini ? What happened next spring ? What city was besieged by the Protestants ? Who were defeated in attempting to relieve it? What was the eifect of this defeat ? What city surrendered ? What were now opened ? What checked them ? Who succeeded Richelieu ? What ensued ? What is said of Torsteteon ? — QUESTIONS. 449 France 1 — Turenne 1 — Gotz and Galas ? — of the imperial family ? What transpired at Mariendal ? — Nordlingen ] Who made a truce 7 Who succeeded Torstenson? What is said of the French and Swedes! What compelled the empe- ror to make peace 1 When was the peace of Westphalia signed 1 — where 1 What was obtained by France ? — Swe- den 1 — the duke of Bavaria 1 — Switzerland ] Who were placed on equal footing! How was the imperial chamber consti- tuted J Questions to be answered from Maps. What countries are included in modern Germany '! Where is Bohemia 1 — Hungary 1 — Styria ] — Silesia 1 — Moravia 1 — Saxony ! — Transylvania ? — Bavaria ] — Franconia 1 — Pomera- iiia ] — Westphalia ! — Alsatia 1 — Brisgau ? — Lunenburg !— Holstein 1 Where is Prague ? — Passau 1 — Ratisbon ! — Leip- zig] — Buitenfeld? — Munich? — Niirenburg? — Lutzenl— Nord- lingenl— Wisloch]— Rainfeld]— Brisacl— Chemnitzl— Glatz! —Erfurt ?— Halberstadt ?— Cologne !— Brinn!— Zummerhau- sen ?— Osnaburg ?— Miinster 1— Metz ?— Verdun 1— Stetm 1 Bremen 1 — Rugen Island 1 France — p. 295. Who w^as king of France in 1610 1 Who w^as regent i Who governed her 3 Who revolted 1 How were they ap- peased 1 What is said of Luines ] Who took the govern- ment f What followed \ What is said of Richelieu ? What "was now done by Louis? — by the Huguenots? — by Luines! — by la Force ? Who succeeded Luines ? What ensued ? What edict was confirmed ? Who became prime minister! Whom did he resolve to humble ? What marriage did he '■conclude ! What was the consequence ? Who rebelled ! What is said of the duke of Buckingham ! — of Richelieu ? — 'of the duke of Rohan ? — of the Protestants ? Whom did Richelieu resolve to aid ? Whom did he join ? What was 'done by him in France ? When did he die ? When did LoUis •XIIL die ! Who was his wife ? Spain — p. 297. What tyrannical edict was issued by Philip III. ? — when ! What followed ? What is said of Philip IV. ! What were the events of his reign ! Portugal—^. 298. What events restored the heir of the house of Braganza to the throne of Portugal ! With what title ! What was the consequence to Portugal ! 2N2 450 QUESTIONS. Italy-^^. 298. What happened in Venice in ISIS? — what in the Valte- line in 1620 ]— what in Mantua in 1630 ] England^The Civil W«r— p. 298. Who succeeded Elizabeth? What was his character 1 What was the state of England ? What was the Gunpowder Plot } What was the character of Charles I. ? To whom was he partial ] What is said of the Puritans 1 — of Laud 1 — of the king 1 What was done by the Scots 1 What is said of the Long Parliament ?— of Strafford ]— of Charles 1 What did both parties determine on] Who supported the king] — the Parliament i Where was the first battle fought] Where were other battles fought] Where was the king finally overthrown ] Who betrayed him ] How was he treated ] What was established ] Holland—^. 300. What two parties existed in the United Provmces ) Who supported the Calvinists ] — the Gomerists ] How was Ba)ri neveldt treated ] What was the consequence ] What was done abroad by the Dutch ] Russia — p. 300. What is said of Fedor]— of Bosis]— of the false Dmitri^ of Michaili Romanov ] — of Alexei ? Turkey and Persia. What was the character of the sultans of this period^ What is said of Moorad ? — of Persia ] — of Abbas] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is the Valteline] In what part of England is Edggs hill ] — Newbury ] — Nantwich ] — ^Naseby ] In what part df Java is Batavia] CHAPTER V. tlMES OF LOUIS XlV. France^ to the Peace of the Pyrenees — p. 302. Who was king of France ? — regent ] — minister '^ What is said of De Retz ] — of the queen ] — of Mazarin ]— of the parliament of Paris?— of Conti? — Conde] WTio espoused their cause ? WTiither was De Retz obliged to flee ? Who restored QUESTIONS. 451 him 1 What was done by Conde ? Who opposed him 1 What was the result? What took place in 1653 ?— in 1655 ? Who were now equally opposed 1 What turned the scale 1 What was the consequence 1 Where was a peace made 1 What were its terms 1 When did Mazarin die 1 Who now took the reins of government 1 England, to the Restoration-^p. 303. What was done by Cromwell in 16491— in 1650?— in 1653 ? Who acknowledged and sought the alliance of Crom- well ? What was the character of nis government ? Who succeeded him ? Did he retain his dignity ? What general restored Charles II. ? Wars, till the Peace of Nimeguen — p. 303. What office had the Dutch abolished ? Who declared war with them ? What is said of De Witt ? — of Opdam ?— of Louis XIV.?— of the sea fights ?— of the Dutch fleet? What were the terms of the treaty of Breda? What struggle now commenced ? To what did Louis lay claim ? What towns did he take ? What alliance was formed against him ? What were the terms of the treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle ? What was Louis bent on ? What treaty was made with Charles 11. ? What ensued ? Who declared war with the Dutch in 1672? What force was brought against the Dutch ? Who led the Dutch army ? — the navy ? Where was there a sea fight ? Who were Louis's generals ? — his allies ? What places did (they take ? What is said of Holland ? What offers were -made ? How were De Witt and his brother treated ? For 'what were ships prepared ? What happened to the combined ■■fleets ? Who favored the Dutch ? What is said of the three -sea actions ? Who took Maestricht ? — Naerden ? — Bonn ? — ^tlologne ? What two powers joined the Dutch ? What was *done by Charles 11. ? Who took Franche-Compte ? — Grave ? What is said of Turenne ? What happened in 1675 ?— in 1676?— in 1677?— in 1678? What were the terms of the treaty ? What is said of Louis's power ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Arras? — Valenciennes? — Dunkirk? — Ypres?— ^ Gravelines ? — Chatham on the Thames ? — Breda? — Surinam? Palatinate 452 QUESTIONS. England, to the Revolution — p. 307. What was the object of Charles II. ] What was the stat^ of England 1 What is said of the Popish Plot ?— the Test Act? — the court? Who were executed 1 When did Charles n. die? What is said of him ? — of James II.? — of Mon- mouth ? What was the king's design ? What is said of the six bishops? What was done by the whigs and tories? — the troops? — James? When were William III. and Mary II. de- clared king and queen of England ? What is said of this revolution ? Wars, to the Peace of Ryswick — p. 308. What is said of Louis XIV. ?— of the Turks? Who drove them out of Hungary ? What places did Louis reduce ? Who made a truce with him? What is said of Louis at this time? What edict did he revoke? What was the consequence? Who formed a league against France ? Who was at the head of it ? Where did Louis operate ? How did his army behave in the Palatinate? What did he lose? What passed in 1691? —1692 ?— 1693 ?— 1695 ? What were the terms of the treaty of Ryswick ? What was done by prince Eugene ? England — p. 310. Who supported the claims of James II. to the crown of England ? Where was viscount Dundee killed ? Who fa- yor6(i James in Ireland ? Where did king William III. de- feat his party ? What successes followed ? What is said of William III. ? — of his government ? Spanish Succession — p. 310. What is said of Charles II. of Spain ? Who were the claim- ants to his throne? Who were for Louis? — who for Leopold? What happened in 1698 ? In whose favor did the king make ^ will ? Who died ? Who was the next heir nominated ? What was done by the pope ? Who was declared heir in the king'^ last will? What followed? Under what title was Louis crowned ? What states acknowledged him ? Who disputed his title ? — how ? With what success ? Who supported him ? What treaty was signed ? — ^by whom ? For what pur- pose ? What happened in 1702 ? What is said of Marlbo- rough ?— of the fleets? Who joined the allies in 1703? What advantages were gained by the French ? Who checked them in Flanders? What was done by the emperor? What was his situation in 1704 ? Who marched to relieve him ? Who joined him ? — where ? Who opposed them ? What wag auESTioNS. 453 the force of each army 1 Where did they fight ? What was the result ? What was the consequence of this battle ? What fortress was taken by the English] What happened in 1705 T Who died 1 What did Louis now resolve 1 What destroyed his projects ? Who defeated Villeroy ]— where 1 What was the consequence J What transpired in Italy] — in Spain? Who offered peace ] What prevented it ? What happened in 1707?— in 1708? Who were defeated at Oudenarde ?— by whom? Who took Lisle? — Ghent and Bruges? — Sar- dinia and Minorca? What terms did Louis offer in 1709? What occasioned their rejection ? What was done by Louis? What was the French force ? — where formed ? What city did Eugene and Marlborough take ? What one did they in- vest? Whom did they attack and defeat? What city sur- rendered ? What now prevented peace ? What was done by Eugene and Marlborough? — by the archduke Charles? — Vendome ? — Staremburg ? What was the state of things in 1711 ? When and where were the treaties signed ? — by whom? What were its terms respecting Philip? — the dukes of Berri and Orleans ? — the succession ? — Austria ? — the boun- dary of France and Germany ? — England ? — Louis ? Who was the real gainer ? — why ? What events happened next year ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Hochstadt ?—Coblentz?—Mondelsheim?— Baden? — Donarvert? — Blenheim ? — Gibraltar ? — Valencia ? — Catalo- nia ?— Ramilies ?— Brabant ?— Turin ?— Barcelona?— Madrid? — Modena? — Almanza? — Toulon ? — Ghent? — Bruges ? — the Scheldt? — Oudenarde ? — Lisle ? — Sardinia ? — Minorca ? — Douay ? — Arras ? — Mens ? — Tournay ? — Malplaquet ? — Ger- truydenburg? — Almenara ? — Saragossa ? — Brihuega ? — Villa Viciosa?— Utrecht? North of Europe— Peter the Great— Charles XII.—p. 315. What was done by the Danes in 1661 ? Who succeeded Charles XI. ? Who succeeded Theodore in Russia ? What ensued? When did Peter take the government? What was done by him (1696) ? How did he spend a year in Holland and England ? Whom did he join ? — against whom ? Who joined Charles XII.? What was done at Copenhagen? — at Narva? What next year ? V/here did he defeat Augustus? Who succeeded Augustus? By whose influence? What was done by Peter? — by Charles? — by Schalemburg? What were Charles's next achievements? What did he attempt? What is said of Mazeppa? Who advised Charles to retreat? 454 auESTioNS. Did he regard them'! What city did he besiege? What was his force'] — ^what was Peter's'? When was the battle fought ? What was its result ? Who recovered Poland 1 What saved Sweden] How long was Charles XII. in Tur- key"? What occupied him on his return"? Where was he killed'? Who succeeded him'? What is said of Peter the Great 7 Who succeeded him '? England — p. 316. What country was united with England in 1706? On whom was the crown settled 1 Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Azof? — Narva ? — the Duna ? — Copenhagen ? — Livonia ? — Courland ? — Lithuania ? — Clissau ? — Warsaw ? — Cracow? — Pultausk ? — Thorn ? — Frauenstadt ? — Moscow ? — the Ukraine ?— Pultowa ?— Bender ?— Frederickshall ?— Pe- tersburg ? CHAPTER VI. PERIOD OF COMPARATIVE REPOSE. England — p. 317. What happened on the death of queen Anne ? Who were impeached ? What happened in 1715 ?— in 1727? The Quadruple Alliance — p. 317. Who was the second queen of Philip V. ? Who governed her? What was done by Alberoni? Who formed the Quad- ruple Alliance? What was one of its articles? — another? What had Spain taken? Who declared war against her? What ensued ? Who was dismissed ? What terms were ac- ceded to by Philip? Who made a private treaty? What powers were offended? How was the first treaty Counter- acted ? What ensued ? What was agreed in the treaty of Seville? Who confirmed it? What was the Pragmatic Sanc- tion ? Who guarantied it? Who was first chosen to succeed Augustus king of Poland ? What ensued ? When was peace made ? — on what terms ? — where ? Russia — p. 319. Who succeeded Catherine of Russia ? When did he die 1 What expired in him ? Who offered Anne the crown ? How did she behave ? Who succeeded Anne ? auESTiONS. 455 Turkish Wars— p. 319. Who took Candia from the Venetians 1— when 1 What did the Venetians gain in 1699? What happened while Charles XIL was in Turkey? What was done by Ahmed ? Who opposed him 1 Who defeated the Turks 1 — where 1 What city did he take? What were the terms of the peace of Passarowitz ? Who declared war with Turkey ? What places did the Russians take ? What were the terms of the peace ? Persia — Nadir Shah — p. 320. What was the character of the latter Suffavies 1 How long- had they reigned ? Who defeated Shah Hoossein ? Who suc- ceeded him ? Who succeeded Mahmood ? By whom was Ashraff defeated and slain ? How was Nadir rewarded ? Whom did he attack ? What befel Tamasp ? Who took his place ? What di- rected his attention to India ? Where did he gain a victory ? What did he gain ? What kings did he afterwards subdue ? Where did he finally defeat the Turks ? What were the actions of his latter days? What was his fate? What en- sued, on his death ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Candia?— the Morea? — Dalmatia? — the Pruth? — Belgrade ? — Peterwaradin ? — Temiswar ? — the Crimea ? — Oczakoff ?— Chotin ?— Servia ?— Delhi ?— Bokhara or Bucha- " ria ? — Armenia ? — Khorassan ? ;CHAPTER VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. The Silesian Wars—Tp. 321. Who was Maria Theresa? Whom did she marry? Who claimed her dominions ? How did she gain the Hungarians ? What power first attacked the queen ? What is said of Fred- eric William ?— of Frederic II. ? What did he claim ? What city did he take ? What did he offer ? Did she accede to it ? What followed ? In virtue of what sanction did Maria The- resa hold her dominions ? Who had guarantied this sanction ? What did the nobility desire? With whom did Louis unite against Maria ? Who were his generals? What was done by the king of England ? What was done by the allies ? — the queen ? — the Hungarian nobles ? How many Hungarians 456 aUESTIONS. marched to the relief of Vienna 1 Whither did the electoi* retire 1 What city did he take 1 What followed 1 What happened in England 1 Whom did the English assist 1 — howj What was done by the Austrians 1 — by Frederic 11. 'i Whom did he defeat? — where 1 With whom did he make a treaty 1 On what terms'? How was this conduct regarded by the French court 1 What was offered by the French generals 1 What was required by the queen 1 Did they comply ] Who attempted to relieve them 7 Whither did Belleisle accom- plish a masterly retreat 1 Who foiled the Spaniards in Italy 1 Who offered peace? Who rejected the offer? What ensued? What was the situation of the British and Hanoverians in Ger- many ? Who attempted to intercept their retreat ? — where 1 What was the result ? What is said of Maria Theresa ? — of Charles Vn.?-rof the king of Prussia?— of the Pretender? — of Italy? Who formed a treaty? What happened in Flanders? — in Bohemia? What is said of the emperor? What followed his death ? What were the terms of the treaty? Who resolved to continue the war? What is said of Elizabeth Farnese ? Who formed an alliance ? What fol- lowed ? Who invested Tournay ? Who came to its relief? What ensued ? Who gained the victory at Fontenoy ? What was the loss on each side ? What towns did the French gain ? Who was elected emperor ? — with what title ? Whu.c advan- tages did Frederic gain ? With whom did he make peace ? What city and provinces were gained by Marshal Saxe? What happened in Italy ? — at Genoa ? — in Provence ? — in the United Provinces ? What is said of the Dutch ? — of the al- lies ?— of Belleisle ?— of Genoa ?— of the English ?— of Louis? Where was a congress opened ? Who besieged Maestricht ? What interrupted him ? What provinces were granted tQ Philip by the peace of Aix-la-Chapelle ? — to Frederic ? What is said of Frederic ? — of France and England ? Questions to he answered from Maps. Where is Silesia ? — Breslau ? — Neiss ? — Hanover ? — Pa&! sau ? — Lintz ? — Vienna ? — Bohemia ? — Prague ? — Frankfort on the Maine ?— Bavaria ?— Munich ?— Glatz ?— Dettmgen ? — Tournay ? — Fontenoy ? — Ghent ? — Ostend ? — Dresden ? — Hainault ? — Brabant ? — Namur ? — Provence ? — Savoy ? — Ma- estricht ?— Parma ?— Placentia ?— Guastalla ? England — p. 325. Who was Charles Edward ? Where did he land ? — when ? For what purpose ? What places did he take ? Where did they defeat the royal troops ? What place in England did QUESTIONS. 457 the rebels take! What occasioned their retreat! What events followed 1 Where were the rebels finally defeated ] What is said of the Pretender ! Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Dunkeld I — Perth ? — Dundee 1 — Edinburgh 1 — Carlisle !— Derby ?— Stirling !— Falkirk ]— Culloden 1 Russia — p. 326. Who was empress of Russia 1 Who was appointed to suc- ceed her ? Whom did he marry ? The Seven Years'' War — p. 326. What powers were at war ! Who was to protect Hanover ] When did France and the German empire form an alliance 1 Who joined them '? Who declared war with Frederic ] What powers were neutral ? What two powers stood alone opposed to all the other belligerents? What was done in 1756 by the French 1 — by Frederic 11. ? How did the French gain the electorate of Hanover ? Who entered Bohemia ? Whom did they defeat? Where did they besiege the Austrians] What drove the Prussians out of Bohemia ? Who advanced into Saxony ? Who advanced and defeated them ! What is said of this victory ? — of their respective losses ] What happened at Breslau ? — at Lissa ] Was Breslau recovered 1 What is said of the Russians ? — Swedes ? — Hanoverians ? — English T What is said of prince Ferdinand 1 — of Frederic ? — of mar- shal Daun ] What happened at sea ? — in America? — in Af- rica T — India "? Who were victorious early in 1759? What advantages did the French gain 1 Where did Ferdinand de- feat them? What is said of the Russians? — of the battle of Cunelsdorf ? What followed ? What happened in West- phalia? — Hesse? — at Lignitz? How did Frederic escape? What happened in Brandenburg? — at Berlin? — atTorgau? — in the West Indies? — New- York? — Canada? — India? — off Cape Lagos and Belleisle ? What happened in 1761 ? Who declared war in 1762? What was done in Portugal? — in Westphalia ? What now relieved Frederic ? — how ? What ensued ? What places were taken by the British ? When was the peace of Paris signed ? Between whom was another treatv signed? What did England obtain? What did she restore^ What was done by Prussia and Austria? Whaf is said of the Seven Years' War? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Minorca ?-Bohemia ?-Lowesit2: ?-Ebenhert ? --S^e Wescr ?--Reichenberg ' -Colin !-Stralsund ?-Lissa? 458 auESTiONS. — Crevelt 1 — Olmutz 1 — Zorndorf? — Hochkirchen ? In what part of the Gulf of St. Lawrence is Cape Breton] — St. John's 1 Where is Minden ?— Mlinster ?— Cunersdorf 7— Warburg 1 — Hesse 1 — Lignitz 1 — Berlin 1 — Brandenburg 1 — Torgau'? In what part of the West Indies is Guadaloupe] — Havana? — Martinique? — Grenada? In what part of New- York are Crown Point and Ticonderoga? Where is Quebec? — Cape Lagos ?— Belleisle ? — Franconia ? Where is Manilla ? — Senegal? Suppression of the Jesuits — p. 329. Who founded the ecclesiastical order called Jesuits ? — when? What was its early character? Who made it a po- litical engine ? What did the Jesuits become ? Of what were they the chief stay? What was against this order? What were its faults ? Who drove the Jesuits from Portu- gal ? From what other countries were they driven ? Who seized their property? Where did they take refuge? What was done by Clement XIIL ?— by Clement XIV. ? First Partition of Poland — p. 330. What is said of Catherine II. ? — of Augustus III. ? — the diet ? Who succeeded Augustus ?— by whose interference ? What followed his election ? Who fomented the disorders ? What two wars existed ? What plan did Frederic II. form, for tranquillizing Poland ? Who were the three plundering sovereigns ? How was the partition effected ? Turkish War— p. 331. What war ensued ? Where did it commence ? — when ? What events happened in the spring ? Where did a Russian fleet appear ? Whence had the Russians been driven ? Where was the vizier defeated ? What place was besieged and taken by the Russians ? Where did the Greeks rise ? Who de- feated them? — where? What is said of the Turkish fleet? What Turkish provinces were in rebellion ? Where did the plague rage ? What province of Turkey did the Russians seize ? What passed in Egypt ? What is said of the Rus- sians ? — of Hassan Pasha ? Who succeeded Mustafa III. ? What made peace necessary for the Turks ? What was the disposition of the tsarina ? Where was peace concluded ? — on what terms ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Describe the Dniester — the Danube — the Pruth. Where is Chotin ?— Moldavia ?— Wallachia ?— Bender ?— the Morea? aUESTioNs. 459 —Bosnia ?--Modon 1— Epidaurus ]— Chios or Scio?— Chesme? —Syria ?--Eg-ypt?—Yassy1— Moscow 1— the Crimea ?— Con- stantinople ? — Silistria? — Varna] — Kainargi] — the Black Seal American Revolutionary War — p. 331. Who colonized North America? Who obtained parts of it by conquest] What was the condition of the British colo- nies 7— of England 1 How did England seek relief? When was the stamp act passed 1 — when repealed ? What new duty was imposed ] What was done by the Americans ? How were they punished ? Where was a congress assembled ] What ensued? What did the king and parliament determine on? Where did hostilities commence? — when? What was the result of this first battle J Where were the British be- sieged ? — when? Where was the next battle? — when ? Re- late the affair. What happened in Canada ? Where had the first congress assembled ? — when ? When and where the second ? Who was its president ? Who was made com- mander-in-chief of the American forces ? When and where did he join the army? How long did he besiege the British in Boston ? When did he take possession of that town ? What happened at Charleston ? When was the independence of the United States declared ? What city was occupied by the British ? — what state ? Who recovered New-Jersey ? — in what actions? Where was Washington defeated in 1777? Who fought on the American side in this battle? Who took Philadelphia? Who reduced Ticonderoga? To whom did Burgoyne afterwards surrender? — where? — on what terms? What powers formed an alliance with the United States in 1778 ? What is said of Sir Henry Clinton ? — of Sullivan and d'Estaine ?— of the commissioners ? What events passed in Georgia? Who took Charleston? What state conse- quently submitted to the British? Who defeated general Gates ? — where ? What is said of Arnold ?— Andre ? — Rod- ney ? What powers formed an armed neutrality ? For what purpose ? What occasioned war between England and Hol- land ? What island did the English take from the Dutch ? How did this operate to the disadvantage of the English^ What is said of Gibraltar ?— Minorca ?— of the sea actions'' —of Tobago?— of the French admiral? What events in Carolina are noticed? What is said of general Greene? What was terminated by the battle at Eutaw Sprmgs ? From what state had earl Cornwallis retreated ? Where had he taken a station ? Who entered the Chesapeake ? With what force'' Who besieged Cornwallis ? What was the result? How manv British wore taken? What happened in 1782? 460 QUESTIONS. When did Great Britain acknowledge the independence of the United States 1 What ensued ] What remarks are made on this war T Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Boston 1 — Concord 1 — Lexington ? — Cambridge 1 — Charlestown 1 — Q,uebec ? — Philadelphia ] — Charleston ? — Trenton ? — Princeton ? — the Brandywine ? — Germantown 1 — Ticonderoga] — Saratoga 1 — Rhode Island ? — Camden? — Guil- ford ] — Yorktown 1 Where is Ushant ? — Cape St. Vincent 1 —Gibraltar ?— Minorca ]— Eustatia ?— Tobago 1 India — p. 335. What did the Portuguese possess when they fell under the yoke of Spain ] Who traded at Lisbon ? — how 1 What drove their merchants to India? Where did they settle? What did they take from the Portuguese ? When did the English appear in India? Where did they settle? Who were at war in India ? How did the Dutch violate the treaty? What is said of James I. ? — of Cromwell ? Who formed a French East India company? Where did the French settle? — when? Who took Madras from the English ? — when ? When was it restored? What is said of M. Dupleix? What did he aim at ? Who sought aid of the English ? What ensued ? What was done by the English officer Clive ? Who joined the English ? What ensued ? What is said of Bengal ? — of the Mogul government ? What caused the three factories to be fortified? What place did the Dutch fortify?— the French ?— the English ? What is said of the English ? Who marched against Calcutta ! — why ? What ensued ? Who sailed for Calcutta? What did they effect? What did the subahdar agree to do? What was next done by the English? What is said of Clive ? What did he gain ? What did he persuade the subahdar to do? What place did he advance to take ? Who opposed him ? With what force ? What was Clive's force? What was the result of the battle? Who became subahdar? Who was put to death ? What did Jaffier agree to do? Where was the war carried on ? What is said of Count Lally? Where did he fail? What places did the English reduce ? What was done by colonel Coote ? Who took Su rat? What was done in Bengal? Who succeeded Jaffier? — how? — when? What led to Jaffier's restoration? What followed? Who opposed Hyder Ali? — where? What happened during the American war? What was done by Hyder Ali ? — by Sir Eyre Coote? — by Tippoo? What is said of the English empire in India, and its acquisition ? aUESTIONS. 4AI Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Hindoostan f How is it bounded 1 In what t of it is Bengal ]— the Carnatic 7— Orissa ?— Bahar ]— Myst'.;-- —Delhi ?— Oude ?— Bombay]— Mahratta?—Goa ?— Coron.i ^ del ?—Pondicherry?— Madras?— Deccan^—Masulipatam ' Surat]— Cape Comorin] Where is Tanjore ]—Cudalore Fort St. David?— Arcot ?— Calcutta?— Hooglee?—Chan(.'- !• nagore ?— Plassy ?— Conjeveram ? Where is the island of Ceylon ?— the Moluccas ?— the Sunda isles ?— the Japan isk - » — Java ? — Banda ? — Amboyna ?— Poleron ? CHAPTER Vni. TIMES OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. State of Europe — p. 338. What is said of literature ? — of the self-styled philosophers? — of their philosophy? — its effects? Into what was it in- fused ? What was the consequence ? Where was its chief seat? What is said of the French court?— of Louis XVI.? of the middle orders? — of the Eng-lish? — of the achievement of American independence? — Poland? — Gustavus III.? — the United Provinces? — the east of Europe? — the Turkish sul- tan? — Suvaroff? — Joseph? What was done by the kinsf of Sweden ? — by his officers ? — by the Russians ? What Rus- sian officer took Potemkin? Who siicceeded Abd-ul-hamed? Who took Belg-rade ? When did the emperor Joseph die ? What was done by Leopold ? Who took Ismail ? What en- sued ? Who defeated the Russians in the Baltic? What fol- lowed ? What was done in Turkey ] When was peace con- cluded ? What was done in Poland? When did Frederic 11. die ?— -Catherine of Russia? The French Revolntion — p. 34L Why did the French court assemble the Notables? Who were they? When did the states-general meet? What was done by them ? — by the king ? — the populace ? What were abolished? Who was recalled ? What ensued ? What pre- vailed ? What club was formed in 1790 ? Who quitted France ? Who were prevented from quitting it? What fol- lowed ? What is said of Brissot ? — La Fayette ? — the duke of Brunswick ? — the Jacobins ? What was abolished ? Who headed the Girondists?— the Jacobins? What obliged the Prussians and Austrians to retire from France? Who re« •2 O 2 46^ QUESTIONS. duced the Netherlands 1 What other country was conquered T What was now done by the Jacobins T What followed this iact ? What was done by Dumouriez ] What forced him to fly to Austria'? What was done in Holland 1 — at the Pyrenees'? — in St. Doming-o 1 — in France 1 — in the south of France 1 — in La Vendee ■?— Toulon '?— Netherlands ?— Germany '? What demagogues were put to death in France '? Who killed Marat? What was done by lord Howe 1 — the Corsicans'? — the French? —the Dutch ? Questions to be ansioered from Maps. Where is Varennes '? — Savoy ? — Dunkirk ? — St. Domingo ? — Lyons '? — La Vendee ? — Toulon 1 — Fleurus ] — Juliers ? — Cologne 1 — Corsica ? Europe, to the Peace of Ca7npo Formio — p. 343. What was passing in Poland ? Who made peace with France ] What is said of the Jacobins? — the king of Spain? — Germany? — theVendeans? — Bridport and Cornwallis ? — Paris ? Who defeated the French in Germany ? What French general made an admirable retreat to the Rhine ? What was done in Italy ? — by whom ? What is said of the king of Sardinia? — of the battle of Lodi? Who purchased safety ? — how ? What passed at Mantua ? What republics were formed in Italy? What is said of England? What city was taken by the French ? What is said of the pope ? — of Bonaparte? What provinces did he overrun? Where was a treaty signed ? What is said of Venice ? — of Genoa ? What were the terms of the peace of Campo Formio? Affairs, to the Assumption of the Chief Power by Bona- parte — p. 341. What happened at Rome? — in Switzerland] — Malta ? Who went on an expedition to Egypt? Where did he land? What cities were taken by him ? What was done by Nelson ? What is said of Ireland ? Who now engaged in the war ? What was passing in Italy ? What is said of the French ? — of the archduke Charles ? — of Suvaroff ? — Korsakoff? — Massena ? — the Austrians? — Bonaparte? — general Regnier? Who op- posed him? Who joined the army? What places were taken ? Who defended Acre ? — with what success ? What had been done by Desaix in Egypt ? Who recovered Aboukir from the Turks? Whither did Bonaparte return? What was done by Kleber ? What happened in Italy ? — in Holland ? What change was made in the French government on the return of Bonaparte to Paris? auESTioNs. 463^ Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Warsaw T— Sardinia ? — Lombardy ? — Tuscany 1 — Parma 1 — Modena 7 — Mantua J— Corsica ]— Rivoli ? Ca- rinthia ? — Styria 1 — Istria ] — Carniola ? — Leoben ] — Campo Formio ] — Malta 1 — Alexandria ? — Cairo ? — Aboukir 1— Pa- lermo ] — Capua ] — the Grison country ? — Ostrach 1 — Cassano"? —Milan ?— Zurich ?— Syria 1— Al-Arish ?— Gaza ?— Acre ]— Upper Egypt 1 Affairs, till the Peace of Amiens — p. 346. What is said of Bonaparte ? — England ? — Ireland ? Where did Bonaparte join the army? What mountains did he cross? What country was subdued ? What place had surrendered to the Austrians? Who were opposed to Bonaparte at Ma- rengo? Wliose arrival decided the battle in favor of the French] What was the result? What happened in Ger- many? What is said of the tsar Paul? — of the English? — the Danes? — Nelson? — the king of Sweden? Who mur- dered Paul ? Who succeeded him? Who favored England? What happened in Egypt ? Who evacuated Egypt ? What were the terms of the peace of Amiens ? Affairs of Europe, to the Treaty of Tilsit — p. 347. What is said of Bonaparte ? — of Touissant I'Ouverture? What renewed the war ? What is said of Hanover ? — Hol- land ? — St. Domingo ? Who became emperor of France ? What additions did he make to the PVench empire? Who combined against him ? Whore was Nelson successful ? — against whom ? What happened on the Rhine ? — at Ulm? — Vienna ? — Austerlitz ? — Presburg? Who was made king of Naples ? — of Holland ? What confederacy was formed ? — by whom ? What is said of the king of Prussia ? Who was his chief general ? What passed at Saalfield ? — Jena and Auerstadt ?— Erfurt ?— Pretzlau ?— Berlin ? What was done by the king of Holland ? — by Jerome Bonaparte ? — by the Prussian general Blucher ? — the Russians ? What was done by Napoleon at Berlin? What was done in Turkey?— in Egypt ? Who took Dantzig ? What is said of the treaty of Tilsit ? Who became kuig of Westphalia ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Geneva ? — Mont St. Bernard ?— the Po ?— Mon- tebello ? — Tortona ?— Bavaria ? — Munich ? — Copenhagen ? — Amiens?— Trafalgar ?— Ulm ?— Austerlitz ?— Wurtemburg ? —Westphalia ?— Saalfield ?— Jena ?— Auerstadt ?— Erftirt?— 464 QUEaTioNS. Prentzlau 1— the Weser 1 — Pultusk ?— Ratkau 1~Berlin 1-^ Prussian Eylau 1 — Dantzig 1 — Friedland 1 — Konigsburg ? — Tilsit ] Affairs, to the Treaty of Vienna— ^p. 348. What city was bombarded and plundered by the English 1 What ensued 1 What prince went to Brazil 1 Who occupied his kingdom ? What was done by Charles IV. 1 What was afterwards done at Bayonne ] Did the Spaniards acknow- ledge Joseph Bonaparte 1 Whom did they proclaim ? What passed at Cadiz T^ — at Saragossa ?— in Portugal 1 — at Vimiero ? —at Cintra ?— in the Tagus ? — in Sweden ] What was done in Spain by the French ? — by Napoleon ] What general was killed at Corunna 1 Who made War on the French 1 What was done by Napoleon 1 What is said of the Walcheren ex- pedition 1 What powers now made peace 1 ■Progress of the Peninsular War — p. 350. What part of Spain did the French possess ? What had passed at Saragossa 1 — in Portugal ] What was done by Wellesley? What place was taken by the French ? What events in 1810 are noticed ] What is said of Seville 1 — ll^adiz'] Who now retreated 1 Who besieged Badajoz ? Who was defeated in attempting to relieve it '? Who resumed the siege 1 Who forced Wellington to retire 1 Where were the French defeated ] Where had they the advan- tage 1 Where did a revolution commence in 1811 1 What places were taken by Wellington ] What other places were recovered] Where did Wellington fail] The Invasion of Russia, and Fall of Napoleon — p. 351. 'What is said of Alexander of Russia? — of Napoleon I What province was occupied? To what place did Napoleon advance ? What is said of Oudinot and Macdonald 1 — Witt- genstein 1 What place was abandoned to the French ? Where was a general battle fought? With what result? In what condition did Napoleon find Moscow? What did he offer? What is said of the retreat ? — of the loss of men ? What is said of Alexander? — of Bernadotte ? — of the king of Prussia? What passed at Lutzen ? — at Bautzen ? Who now joined the alliance against Napoleon ? Who commanded the allied army? What is said of Blucher ? — Vandamme? — Ney? — Napoleon ? — Leipzig ? — ^the king of Bavaria ? — Holland ? — Wellington ? Where did he defeat the French ? What city was besieged and taken ? What country was now invaded ? What city was taken by the allies ? What was Napoleon QUESTIONS. 465 obliged to do 1 Whither was he sent 1 Who became king of France 3 What was the state of Europe 1 Who landed in France 1 — when 1 How was he received 1 Where did Louis seek a refuge] Who opposed Napoleon? Who de- feated him at Waterloo] How long was his second reign"? To whom did he surrender! When and where did he diel How did the allies now proceed] What is said of Denmark] — Prussia ] — Austria ] — Genoa ] — Netherlands and United Provinces ] — Poland ] — Germany ]— England ] — India ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Brazil ] Which way from Portugal ] Where is Bayonne ] — Bourdeaux ] — Saragossa ] — Vimiero ? — Cintra] — Raynosa ] — Tudela ] — Corunna ] — Eckmuhl ] — Wagram ] — Walcheren Island ] — Middleburg] — Flushing] — Antwerp] — Oporto ]— Vittoria ]— Talavera ]— Galicia ]— Ciudad Rod- rigo ]— St. Sebastian ] — Almeida ] — Santarem ? — Badajoz ? — Parapeluna ] — Albuera ] — Tarragona] — Seville? — Valladolid] —Burgos ]— Smolensk ]— St. Petersburg ]— Polotsk ]— Mo- hiloif] — Borodino] — Moscow ? — Lutzen ] — Bautzen ] — Katz- bach ]— Silesia ]— Dresden ]— Culm ]— Leipzig ]— Elba ?— Waterloo ] — St. Helena ] — Rugen ] — Pomerania ] — Lauen- burg] United States of America — p. 353. What had been the situation of the United States during the late wars ] What is said of the French Directory ] — of John Adams ] — of the naval victories obtained in the short war with France ] What did the Americans acquire ] Who first invaded this privilege] What followed] What was done by Mr. Jefferson ] Why was the embargo law repealed ] — when ] What was substituted] What offer was made by the United States ] What was done by Napoleon's minister ] — by Great Britain ] — by the United States ] What was the first object of attack ] What is said of general Hull ] — cap- tain Hull ] — Decatur ] What happened at Queenstown ] What was done by captain Bainbridge ] — by general Proctor and his Indian allies ] — general Harrison ] What American officer fell in the expedition against York ] Was it success- ful ] What forts were taken by the Americans ] What was done by the British in the Chesapeake ] What naval action is noticed]— what exploit of major Croghan] What naval victory was obtained in September, 1813] What place was taken ] What was done by general Harrison ?— colonel John- son] Why was the invasion of Canada abandoned for this season ? Where did commissioners meet to form a treaty 1 466 aUESTIONS. What passed in Maine ?— at sea? — on the northern frontier'? -—in Washington] — near Baltimore 1 — on lake Champlainl — at Plattsburg- ? — at New-Orleans ] What is said of the treaty of peace 1 From the events of this war, what have the Americans learnt! — what have other nations! What great truth is perceptible everywhere in the history of the world .' What sort of empire is rarely lasting 1 What chiefly distinguishes Modern History 1 What bad effects re- sult from the intimate connexion of nations] — what good ef- fects ] What is the glory of modern times ] Questions to be answered from Maps. In what part of America are the United States 1 What country is north of them ] How does the boundary line run? Where is Michigan territory] — Detroit] — Queenstown ] — Raisin river] — York ] — Erie] — Norfolk] — Hampton] — Chesa- peake Bay ] — lake Erie ] — Sandusky ] — Niagara] — Maine]— Penobscot river] — Washington city] — Baltimore] — lake Champlairi ? — Plattsburg ] — New-Orleans ] END OF THE QUESTIONS.. LB4g?9 4 Deacidified using the Bookkeeper process. Neutralizing agent: Magnesium Oxide Treatment Date: 2002 PreservationTechnologies A WORLD LEADER IN PAPER PRESERVATION 111 Thomson Park Dnve Cranberry Township, PA 16066 (724)779-2111